Skanda Purana 07 (AITM)

Download as pdf or txt
Download as pdf or txt
You are on page 1of 371

TH E

S K A N D A -P U R A N A

PART V U

M O T IL A L B A N A R S ID A S S P U B L IS H E R S
P R IV A T E L IM IT E D • D E L H I
F irs t E d itio n : D e lh i, 1 9 5 1

Also available at;


MOTILAL BANARSIDASS
41 U .A . B u n g a lo w R o a d . J a w a h a r N a g a r , D e lh i I 10 0 0 7
1 2 0 R o y a p e tta h H ig h R o a d , M y la p o r e , M a d r a s 6 0 0 0 0 4
16 S t. M a r k ’s R o a d . B a n g a lo r e 5 6 0 0 0 1
A s h o k R a j p a th , P a tn a 8 0 0 0 0 4
C h o w k , V a ra n a si 221 001

PR IN T E D IN IN D IA
B Y JA IN EN D R A PR A K A SH JA IN A T SH R I JALNENDRA PR ESS.
A -45 N A R A IN A , PH A SE I, N EW D ELH I 110 028
A N D PU B LISH ED BY N A R E N D R A PR A K A SH JA IN FOR
M O T IL A L B A N A R SID A SS PU B LISH ER S PR IV A T E LIM IT E D .
B U N G A L O W R O A D . D EL H I 1 Ю 007
CONTENTS

SKANDA PURANA
Book II: VAISNAVAKHANDA
Section VII: VAISa KHAMASA-MAHATMYA
Chapters
1. The Greatness of the Holy Bath in VaiSakha 1
2. The Benefit of Different Kinds of Charitable Gifts 3
3. Charitable Gifts (Continued) 7
4. The Holy Rites to be Observed in VaiSakha 11
5. The Excellence of VaiSakha 15
6. The Story of a House-Lizard 18
7. Salvation of a PiSaca (Goblin) 23
8. Daksa’s Yajfia; Parvali’s Birth etc. 27
9. The Birth of Kumara 34
10. Glorification of the Gift of UmbrelIas:The Story of Hemakanta 41
11. The Anecdote of King KIrtiman 48
12. Yaina’s Lamentation 57
13. Yama is Consoled 60
14. Liberation of a PiSaca 66
15. Story of a Ruler of PaiicaladeSa 70
16. The Paiicala King Attains Sayujya 76
17. Story of Dantila and Kohala 81
18. Previous Birth of the Hunter 86
19. The Curse of Wind-god 92
20. The Bhagavata Dharrnas 98
21. Birth of Valmiki ч 106
22. Liberation ofPitrs 111
23. The Greatness of Aksaya TrtTya 120
24. Salvation of a Bitch: Importance of DvadaST 124
25. The Conclusion 132

Section VIII: AYODHYA-MAHATMYA


1. The Greatness of Visnuhari 139
2. Brahmakunda and Sahasradhara 149
Skanda Purana

3. The TTrthas: Svargadvara: Candrahari:Conclusion o f


Candra Sahasra Vrata 137
4. The Greatness o f Dharmahari 164
3. The Efficacy o f TilodakT 171
6. The Greatness o f Svargadvara and Gopratara 173
7. Bfhaspati, RukminT and Other Kundas 191
8. Ratikunda and other Holy TTrthas 202
9. The Glory o f Various TTrthas 211
10. Pilgrimage to Ayodhya 216

Section IX: VASUDEVA-MAMATMYA

1. Query by Savarni 225


2. Meeting o f Narayana and Narada 228
3. Sri Vasudeva to Be Worshipped by All 231
4. Sveta-Dvipa 234
3. Uparicara Vasu, a Pious King 238
6. Fall o f Uparicara Vasu 241
7. Uparicara Vasu Attains Liberation 245
8. Curse to Devendra 249
9. Genesis o f Yajfias involving Hiriisa 251
10. The Grace o f Sri Vasudeva 254
11. Churning for the N ectar Birth o f the Poison Kalakiita 257
12. Churning o f the Ocean: Birth o f Fourteen Plecious Jewels 261
13. Gods Drink the Nectar 263
14. The Marriage Festival o f LaksmI and N lriyana 266
15. Eulogy o f Laksmi-Narayana 270
16. Description o f Goloka 277
17. Manifestation o f Vasudeva 281
18. Incarnations o f Vasudeva 285
19. Narada Meets Nara and Narayana 290
20. The Duties o f the Four Varnas 293
21. Duties o f Celibates (Students) 298
22. Duties o f Householders 299
23. Duties o f Forest-Hermits and Recluses 306
24. The Nature o f Knowledge 310
25. Vairagya and Bhakti 316
26. Eligibility for Kriya-Yoga etc. 321
27. Procedure o f Puja Mandala Construction 325
28. Kriya-Yoga: Meditation on the Forms o f Radha and Krsna 333
Contents

29. Kriya-Yoga: Procedure of the Worship of Vasudeva 336


30. Description of Yoga with Eight Limbs 341
31. Eulogy of Nara and Narayana 344
32. Text-transmission of Vasudeva-Mahatmya 346

Index to Section VII 351


” " " VIII 356
” ” ” IX 359
SKANDA PURANA

B ook I I : VAISNAVAKHANDA

S ection V II: VAISa KHAMASA-MAHATMYA*

CHAPTER ONE

The Greatness of the Holy Bath in Vaisakha

Obeisance to &rl Ganesa


After bowing down to Narayana, Nara the most excellent one
among men, Goddess SarasvatT and Vyasa, one should recite Jaya
(the Purana).1

Suta said:
1. Once again, the king (Arhbarlsa) asked Narada, the son of
Brahma Paramesthin, about the meritorious greatness of the month
of Vaisakha.

Ambarlsa said:
2-6. The greatness of all the months has been truly heard by
me from you, О Brahmana, formerly. It was then said by you that
among these months Vaisakha was the most excellent one. Hence,
О Brahmana, I have great curiosity to hear the greatness of the
month of Vaisakha. How is it that this month is dear to Visnu?
What are those holy rites which Visnu likes to be performed in the
month that is a favourite of Madhava? Out of these too, what are
those holy rites most dear to Visnu and worthy of being per­
formed? What is to be given as charitable gift? What is its ben­
efit? With whom (what deity) in view are we to perform these

* Vail&kha is another month which is favourite with Vi$nu. In PdP, Patala Khanda,
Ch. 84, as a background of this Mahatmya, we are told that once Narada went to
Mathura to see King Ambari$a, a great devotee of Krsna (vv 8-10). Vmsakha-Mahatnmt
is thus a dialogue between these two.
1. This benedictory verse shows that Vai£akhm2sa-Mahatmya (VM) is an inde­
pendent work incorporated in SkP. We have a VM in PdP V (Patala-Khanda). Chs.
84-98.
2 Skanda Purana

rites? What are those materials of worship with which Madhava is


to be worshipped at the advent of the month of VatSakha? О
Narada, describe this in detail to me who am full of devotion.

Narada replied:
7. Formerly, on being asked by me, Brahma described the
ancient (traditional) holy rites pertaining to the different months
as had been described previously to Sri by the Supreme Atman
(Visnu).
8. Thereupon, some months were particularly mentioned (such
as) Karttika and Magha. Madhava (Visnu) made Vai£akha the
most excellent one among the months.
9-14. (The month of VaiSakha) is the bestower of the desired
things upon all the living beings, like a mother forever. It is the
destroyer of all sins by means of charitable gifts, holy rites and
ablutions. It is the essence of all virtues (religious acts), Yajnas
and holy rites. It is the essence of all austerities. It is worshipped
by Suras.
Like the Vedic lore among all lores,1 like Pranava among all
Mantras, like the divine Kalpa (wish-yielding) tree among trees,
like the Kamadhenu (wish-yielding cow) among all cows, like
£esa among all serpents, like Garuda among all birds, like Visnu
among all Devas, like Brahmana among all castes, like the vital
air among the dearest objects, like wife among intimate ones, like
Ganga among all rivers, like the sun among luminaries, like discus
among all the weapons, like gold among all metals, like Rudra
among all Vaisnavas and like Kaustubha among all jewels, Vaisakha
is the most excellent one among all the months conducive to piety
and virtuousness.
15-17. There is nothing else like this in the world which is
conducive to the pleasure of Visnu.
The Lord accompanied by LaksmT is much delighted with a
person habitually engaged in the holy bath before sunrise in the
month of Vai£akha (when the Sun is) in Aries.12
Just as creatures are pleased with food, so also Vi$nu is un­
doubtedly pleased with the holy bath in the month of Vaisakha. On

1. VV 11-14 are an echo of BG X ( Vibhuti-Yoga).


2. VV 15-26 describe the meritorious nature of early batk (before sunrise) in
Vaisakha. The deities of Tirthas go away from them after six ghaf/s from sunrise.
II.vii.1.18—II.vii.2.5 3

seeing people engaged in holy bath in the month of VaiSakha, he


becomes highly pleased.
18-22a. By that itself one is liberated from sins and is honoured
in the world of Visnu. By taking bath once in the morning when
the Sun is in Aries and performing the daily round of duties, the
devotee is liberated from great sins. He shall attain Sayujya (iden­
tity) with Visnu.
If a man takes a step for the purpose of ablution in the month of
Vai£akha, he undoubtedly attains the benefit of ten thousands of
horse-sacrifices.
Or a man of crooked mind may simply resolve (this) within his
mind. Even he will obtain the merit of a hundred sacrifices. There
is no doubt in it.
He who goes a distance of a Dhanus (=distance of three and a
half hands) in order to bathe when the Sun is in Aries, shall be
liberated from all bondages. He shall attain Sayujya with Visnu.
22b-26. О eminent king, all the TTrthas in the three worlds
within the Cosmic Egg are present even in very little of water in
streams etc. Sins entered in the records of Yama roar only as long
as a living being does not take bath in cold water in the month of
VaiSakha!
All the deities of the TTrthas etc., О king, are always present in
the external water (i.e., in rivers, lakes etc.,) in the month of
Vaigakha. At the behest of Visnu and with a desire for the welfare
of men they stay there for six ghatikas (24x6=144 Minutes) from
sunrise. If men do not take bath by that time, they curse them
terribly and go over to their respective abodes. Hence, О great
king one should take bath (as stated).

CHAPTER TWO
i
The Benefit o f Different Kinds o f Charitable Gifts

Narada said:
1-5. There is no month equal to VaiSakha.1 There is no Yuga
equal to Krta; there is no holy text equal to the Veda; there is no
Tirtha equal to Gahga.

I . Again an echo of BG X. The comparisons are made to confirm the supreme


position (meritorious nature) of Vatfakha.
4 Skanda Purdna

There is no charitable gift comparable to that of water; there is


no happiness on a par with that of a wife; there is no wealth
comparable to agriculture and there is no gain greater than life.
There is no austerity comparable to observance of fast; there is
no happiness greater than that of a charitable gift. There is no holy
rite equal to mercifulness; there is no refulgence on a par with the
eye.
There is no satisfaction similar to that of taking food; there is
no business activity comparable to agriculture. There is no friend
on a par with virtue; there is no reputation like that of truthfulness.
There is no acquisition on a par with good health; there is no
saviour greater than KeSava; there is no purifier equal to Vaisakha,
as the learned know.
6-10. Vaisakha is the greatest month. It is always a favourite of
Visnu. If anyone were to pass this month dearest to Visnu, without
observing holy rites, he is reborn in the wombs of sub-human
species like birds, animals. He is excluded from all pious activi­
ties.
If any human being spends the month of VaiSakha without
observing Vratas, his Istapurta (performing sacrifices, building
ghats, repairing lakes and wells etc.) is futile.
If there is any (self-imposed) restraint on having food one is
accustomed to have in Vaisakha, certainly, he will attain Sayujya
with Visnu. There is no doubt about it.
In this world there are different kinds of Vratas that can be
observed only by spending much wealth. They cause much strain
to the body and they yield (result in) rebirth. But merely by taking
holy bath in the month of Vaisakha, one is not reborn on the earth.
11. By offering water in the month of Vaisakha one attains
that merit which is obtained by making all types of charitable gifts
and visiting all TTrthas.
12. If one is incapable of offering water, one should induce
others to do it, if one is desirous of prosperity. It is more condu­
cive to welfare than all charitable gifts.
13. If all charitable gifts are placed in one pan and the gift of
water is placed in the other pan and weighed in a balance, the gift
of water excels.
14. One who donates Prapas (free-water sheds) for wayfarers,
uplifts a crore of the members of his family. He is jionoured in the
world of Visnu.
II.vii.2.15-28 5

15. Offering water through Prapas gives excessive pleasure to


Devas, Pitrs and Sages, О excellent king. It is true. There is no
doubt at all.
16. If those who are tired due to long walk along the road are
delighted by means of Prapas, Devas including Brahma, Visnu and
Siva are propitiated by him.
17-19. Water should be given to those who wish for it. An
umbrella should be given to those who desire shade. In the month
of VaiSakha, О king, fans should be given to those who wish for
fans. At the advent of the month of Vai£akha, water, umbrella and
fan should be given to a Brahmana householder. The gift of these
articles is (considered) excellent. By not giving a waterpot, one is
reborn as a Cataka bird (who depends on rainfall for drinking
water).
20. If a person gives cool water to a noble-souled person
oppressed by thirst, О eminent king, by that act itself he shall get
the merit of ten thousand Rajasuyas.
21. He who fans a Brahmana oppressed by heat and fatigue
shall become free from sins by that (act) itself. He shall become
the overlord of heaven-walkers (Devas etc).
22. By not giving fans to Brahmanas in the month of Vaisakha
one becomes afflicted with hundred types of rheumatic ailments
and goes to hell.
23. If a person fans with even a cloth an excellent Brahmana
tired by (a walk) along the road, he shall become liberated by that
itself and shall attain Sayujya with Visnu.
24. By giving a fan made of Palmyra leaf with a pure mind,
one gets rid of all sins and goes to the world of Brahma.
25. If a man does not give the meritorious fan that dispels
fatigue, he suffers torture in hell and is reborn on the earth as a
leper.
26. О lord of men, one shall ardently give an umbrella at least
once in the month of Vaisakha for suppressing the three types of
miseries, viz. those originating in the body, those from other crea­
tures and those from destiny.
27. One who does not give an umbrella in the course of the
month of Vaisakha of which Madhava is fond, is reborn on the
earth as a highly cruel ghost in a place devoid of any shade.
28. He who gives excellent sandals in the month of VaiSakha
is liked by Visnu, disregards the messengers of Yama and goes to
6 Skanda Purana

the world of Visnu.


29. If a person gives footwear in the month of VaiSakha at the
advent of the vernal season, he has not to suffer the distresses of
this world nor will he go to the world of hells.
30. He who gives footwear to a Brahmana who requests for it,
is reborn as a king on the earth in the course of a crore births
undoubtedly.
31. It is not possible even for Brahma to describe the merit of
that person who erects a pavilion on the way that dispels the
fatigue of helpless persons.
32. The limit of the benefit of that person has not been seen
(even) by Brahma, who feeds a Brahmana who has come (to his
house) as a guest.
33. О king, the gift of cooked food is conducive to immediate
satisfaction. Hence there is no other gift on a par with cooked food
in all the worlds.
34. Even Brahma is not competent to describe the merit of
that person who offers shelter to a Brahmana who is weary due to
long walk on the way.
35. If a person does not eat sufficiently, wives, children, abodes
etc., clothes, ornaments, embellishments etc. are unbearable to
him. To a person who feeds himself properly, all these are cer­
tainly tolerable.
36-37. Hence a gift equal to that of food has never been seen
before, nor will ever be seen in future.
He who has not made the gift (of food) in the month of Vaigakha
to a Brahmana who plods his weary way, shall be born on the earth
as a ghost eating his own flesh. Hence cooked food must be given
to Brahmanas in accordance with one’s affluence.
38. О king, the giver of cooked food makes (the recipient)
forget his own parents and others (but not the giver of food).
Hence all the people residing in the three worlds praise cooked
food.
39. Mothers and fathers are mere causes of birth. Learned
men in the world say that the giver of food is the (real) father.
40. All the TTrthas are present in one who gives cooked food.
All the deities are present in one who gives cooked food. О con­
queror of the realms of enemies, all virtues are present in the giver
of food.
II.vii.3.1-1 За 7

CHAPTER THREE

Charitable Gifts (Continued)

Narada said:1
1-6. If a person gives a cot to an excellent Brahmana where he
lies (can lie) down happily and comfortably enjoying the cool
breeze, that person attains freedom from all ailments in his body
that is a means to achieve Dharma.
By giving it he gets rid of all distress and becomes free from
sins. He attains the state of unbroken (bliss) which is very difficult
for even Yogins to attain.
After giving very excellent cot that dispels weariness, to the
Brahmanas tired and distressed due to the heat (of the sun) in the
month of VaiSakha, О lord of men, one never languishes in the
world on account of births, deaths, old age etc.
If a Brahmana accepts a cot and lies down on it all through his
life, all the sins (of the donor) whether committed knowingly or
unknowingly perish, О great king, like camphor in contact with
fire. That man certainly attains absorption in Brahman if the Brahmana
lies on it.
7 -10a. If a person gives food and clothing in the month of
Vaisakha (in) which Hari likes the holy bath, that person will be
endowed with all kinds of worldly pleasures in that very birth.
Along with his family he certainly remains unafflicted with ail­
ments etc. He obtains longevity, very sound health, fame and
fortitude. Till a hundred generations are over, no unrighteous per­
son is born in his family. He will die only after enjoying all
worldly pleasures. After getting rid of all sins, he attains salvation.
10b-13a. If a person gives to a prominent Brahmana well-versed
in the Vedas, a pillow without which no man can sleep happily
anywhere, he shall enjoy a kingdom on the earth after becoming
the supporter of all. Again and again he will enjoy all pleasures
and will be devoted to virtue. For seven births, О great king, he
will be all-conqueror. Thereafter, he becomes competent to go to

1. The last chapter discussed the meritorious nature of charitable gifts of food,
water, shelter and other amenities which relieve the oppressive heat of Vaittkha.
This chapter describes the importance of the gift of a cot. bedstead (vv I -13a), mats,
blankets (vv 13b-18) and other things helping to minimise the heat-effects of Vai£akha.
8 Skanda Purana

the world of Brahma accompanied by the members of his family


up to seven generations.
13b-15. If a person gives a grass-mat or any other kind of mat,
Visnu himself shall lie down there. Paramegvara will stay there.
Just as wool soaked in water is not broken or ruffled by the water,
so also that person living in the mundane world is not bound to the
worldly existence. The person who gives a mat is in every respect
happy while engaged in sitting or lying down on it (?).
16. If a person offers shelter (like a caravanserai) and gives a
mat and a blanket for the purpose of lying down, he shall become
liberated by that much alone. No doubt need be entertained in this
respect.
17. Misery is dispelled by means of sleep. Fatigue is dispelled
by means of sleep. The sleep of a person lying on a mat becomes
sound and happy surely.
18. О king, he who gives a blanket in the month of Vaisakha
at the advent of the spring season shall become free from prema­
ture or accidental death. He will live for a hundred (years).
19. He who gives clothes of fine texture to a good Brahmana
afflicted with heat, shall attain full span of life and the highest
goal hereafter.
20. By giving excellent camphor that dispels internal heat, to
a Brahmana, one attains salvation. His miseries are all over.
21. He who gives flowers and saffron to a Brahmana, shall
become an emperor, a ruler who will win over all the peoples.
22-24a. He shall enjoy all worldly pleasures with sons, grand­
sons etc. and shall attain salvation.
Sandalpaste dispels instantaneously heat and distress of skin
and bones. By giving it (sandalpaste) one shall be free from the
threefold distress and shall attain salvation.
He who gives the different kinds of unguents, viz. AuSTra*,
Casaka (?) and KauSa (?) rendered fragrant by the addition of
water, shall have the assistance of Devas, О great king, in (the
enjoyment of) worldly pleasures.
24b-25. His sins will be destroyed and miseries will disappear.
He shall attain the supreme bliss of salvation. If the devotee con­
versant with the religious duties in the month of Vaisakha gives
Goroca (yellow orpiment) and musk, he shall be rid of the three­

* Prepared from the roots of Andropogon muricatus.


II.vii.3.26-40 9

fold distress. He shall attain the greatest bliss of salvation.


26. He who gives betel leaves with camphor when the Sun is
in Aries, shall share the happiness of an emperor and then attain
the highest bliss of salvation.
27. A man who gives blue lotus and jasmine in the month of
Mesa becomes an emperor. Afterwards he attains salvation.
28. He who gives KetakI or Mallika at the time of the advent
of vernal season shall attain salvation at the behest of the Slayer of
Madhu.
29. Listen to the fruit or reward enjoyed by that person, О
king, who does the good work of giving arecanuts, coconuts and
sweet scents to a Brahmana.
30. For seven births he shall be a Brahmana endowed with
wealth. He shall be a master of the Vedas. Afterwards, accompa­
nied by seven generations of his family, he shall go to the world of
Visnu.
31. О king, I am unable to recount the fruit enjoyed by that
person who erects a pavilion for rest and recreation and gives it to
a Brahmana.
32. He who makes a pavilion with good shade, with sand
scattered properly and endued with a Prapd (shed for free supply
of water) shall become ruler of the world.
33. He who makes parks along the highways, digs lakes and
wells, and erects pavilion, is a righteous-souled one. Of what use
are sons to him?
34-36. Santana (progeny) is proclaimed to be of seven types: a
well, a lake, a park, a pavilion, Prapd, performing holy rites and a
son. If at least one of these is not present, men do not go up (to
heaven).
Excellent men conversant with everything know that these seven
are to be known as Santana (progeny): listening to good holy
texts, pilgrimage to Tirthas, association with good people, gift of
water, gift of cooked food, planting the seedlings of ASvattha
(holy fig tree) and a son.
37. One without Santana cannot attain higher worlds, though
he may perform hundreds of holy rites. Hence one shall seek
Santana. He should go in for one among the Santanas.
38-40. None among animals, birds, deer and trees goes easily to
the higher world. How can we expect it from human beings!
If one gives excellent betel leaves along with arecanuts, cam­
10 Skanda Purana

phor and agallochum, one is liberated from all bodily sins. There
is no doubt about it. The person who gives Tambula (collection of
all the above) certainly obtains fame, courage and glory.*
41-46. If a sick man gives it, he shall be free from illness. A
healthy man who gives it shall attain salvation.
He who gives buttermilk that is destructive of heat and distress
in the month of Vaisakha, becomes learned and wealthy on the
earth.
There is no other gift on a par with that of buttermilk in summer
season. Hence buttermilk should be given to a Brahmana weary on
the way.
He who gives buttermilk mixed with the excellent juice of
Jamblra (citron fruit) and fine salt which removes loss of appetite,
shall attain salvation.
О king, I am not capable of recounting the fruit enjoyed by that
person who gives curds in the month of Vaisakha for quelling
heat.
He who gives excellent rice (in the month of Vaisakha) that is
a favourite of Visnu, shall obtain full span of life. He shall obtain
the fruit of all Yajnas.
He who gives ghee from cow’s milk which is a form of Tejas
(fire element), to a Brahmana, obtains the fruit of a horse-sacrifice
and rejoices in the world of Visnu.
47. (He who gives) a mixture of tender cucumber and jaggery
in the month of Vaisakha when the Sun is in Aries, shall be rid of
all sins and certainly live in SvetadvTpa.
48. Infinite is the merit of that person who gives a Brahmana
a sugarcane stump in the evening or during the day, for the sake of
cessation (cooling) of heat and distress.
49. By giving Pdnaka (mixture of water and treacle) in the
evening in the month of Vaisakha for alleviating fatigue, one shall
be rid of all sins. He shall obtain Sayujya with Visnu.
50. One should give Panaka along with fruits in the evening in
the month of Mesa to a Brahmana. Thereby the Pitrs shall have a
drink of nectar undoubtedly.
51. If anyone gives Panaka mixed with fully ripe mango fruits
in the month of Vaisakha, all his sins shall certainly perish.
52. If anyone gives a (big) pot full of Panaka juice on the
new-moon day in the month of Caitra, undoubtedly a hundred
Gaya£raddhas have been performed by him.
II.vii.3.53— II.vii.4.8 11

53. On the new-moon day in the month of Caitra, a man


should give on behalf of the manes, a potful of Panaka mixed with
musk, camphor, jasmine and the fragrant root of the plant Andropogon
muricatus. It is as good as offering ninety-six Sraddhas.

CHAPTER FOUR

The Holy Rites to be Observed in Vaisakha

Narada said:
1-6. One who observes vows during the month of Vaisakha
shall avoid the (following) eight acts': smearing the body with oil,
sleeping during day-time, taking food in a bell-metal vessel, sleep­
ing on a cot, taking bath in the house, eating forbidden food,
taking food twice a day and taking food at night.
He who observes the vows in the month of Vaisakha and takes
his meal on a lotus leaf, shall be rid of sins. He shall go to the
world of Visnu.
One shall wash the feet of Brahmanas who are tired at midday
in the month of Vaisakha. That shall be a holy rite, the most
excellent one among all holy rites.
If a Brahmana fatigued by travelling on foot comes to one’s
house at midday and if one makes that Brahmana occupy a beau­
tiful seat and washes his feet and sprinkles*that water over his
(own) head, he shall have all the fetters (of Samsara) broken
down. He is certainly on a par with that person who has taken his
holy bath in Gahga and all other TTrthas.
7. A person who does not take bath in the month of Vaisakha,
one who passes the month of Vaisakha without taking food on
Palasa leaf, shall be reborn first as a donkey and thereafter as a
mule.12
8. If a healthy man of a strong constitution, devoid of ail­

1. VV 1-6 enumerate the don’ts and dos in Vai£akha.


2. VV 7-11 describe the punishment for violation of the Vrata-injunctions of
Vaisakha.
12 Skanda Purana

ments, takes bath in the house during Vaisakha, he shall attain


rebirth in the womb of a Candala woman.
9. О great king, if a person does not take bath outside#(i.e.,
in rivers, lakes etc.) in the month of Vaisakha when the Sun is in
Aries, he shall be born as a dog a hundred times.
10. If the month of Vaisakha is passed without the stipulated
baths and charitable gifts, the person shall certainly become a
ghost. By not observing the holy rites pertaining to the month of
Vaisakha, one shall go down (i.e. become degraded).
11. A man of greedy mind who does not offer water and
cooked food in the month of Vaisakha, never gets his sins and
miseries destroyed. There is no doubt about it.
12. He who is devoted to Visnu and takes bath in a river in the
month of Vaisakha, is liberated from the sins accumulated in the
course of three births. There is no doubt about it.
13. If a person takes his bath at sunrise1 in a river that flows
into a sea, he shall at the very instant be released from sins ac­
quired in the course of seven births.
14-15. JahnavT (Ganga), Vrddhaganga (BudhT Ganga), KalindT
(Yamuna), SarasvatT, Kaverl, Narmada and VenT (Krsna)—these
are glorified as the “Seven Gangas”. A man who takes his holy
bath early in the morning in (anyone of) the “Seven Gangas” is
liberated from the sins acquired in the course of a crore of births.
There is no doubt about this.
16. A person who takes the holy plunge in the morning during
the month of Vaisakha in natural reservoirs of water, shall be
liberated from the sins committed ever since his birth. There is no
doubt about this.
17. He who, at the advent of the month of VaiSakha, takes his
bath in wells (outside the house) in the morning, gets (his) great
sins destroyed.
18-20. It is certain that all the rivers including Ganga are present
in water-receptacles outside, even if they be small like the pits
made by cows’ hoofs. He who realizes this, attains the benefit
more than from all the TTrthas.
(Just as) Milk is superior to water, О king, curd is superior to

I. VV 13-19 describe the meritorious effects of morning both, especially outside


one’s house.
II.vii.4.21-30 13

milk and ghee superior to curd, so Karttika is superior to the other


months, the month of Magha is superior to Karttika and VaiSakha
is superior to Magha. The holy rite performed in that month grows
like the (minute) seed of a banyan tree (into a big tree).
21-22. A man may be rich or extremely poor or dependent, but
whatever object he obtains should be given to a Brahmana, whether
it is a bulb, root, fruit, vegetable, salt, jaggery, jujube fruit, leaf,
water or buttermilk. It is conducive to infinite benefit.
23-28a. Nowhere does a man get anything if it has not been
given by him (previously), not from even Devas including Brahma.
One who has never given charitable gifts will become indigent.
Due to poverty he commits (further) sin. Due to sinfulness he falls
into hell. Hence charitable gifts should be made by one who wishes
for happiness.
Just as a house endowed with all good features is not (consid­
ered) splendid if it is devoid of goods and chattels, so also holy
rites and pious observances performed in all the months go in
vain, if the vows of the month of Vaigakha are not observed.1
Just as a girl though endowed with all good qualities and fea­
tures (does not shine) should she not have a living husband, so also
a holy rite may be perfect in every detail with all ancillaries, but
they know that it is futile if it is bereft of the VaiSakha vows.
Just as all other qualities are futile if there is no mercifulness,
so also all holy rites are futile if they are without the VaiSakha
vows. A vegetable dish may have all the good features and ingre­
dients, but it is not relished if there is no salt therein. Similarly a
meritorious deed unconnected with VaiSakha should not be re­
sorted to by good people. Nor is it conducive to the attainment of
the good.
28b-30. A young woman may be exceedingly beautiful and may
have all the ornaments, but she does not shine without (adequate)
clothing. So also a series of holy rites performed exceedingly well
by men does not shine without the VaiSakha rites. So it is decided
that holy rites are to be performed in the month of Vai$akha by all
means by every type of living being.
With the Slayer of Madhu in view, the devotee shall take holy
bath in the morning when the Sun is in Aries and then worship
Visnu. Otherwise he will fall into hell.

1. VV 25-30: importance of observing rites in Vailakha.


14 Skanda Purdna

31-32. There was a king named MahTratha.1 He was lecherous


and lustful without any control over his passions. But due tolioly
ablution in the month of Vaisakha he went to Vaikuntha directly.
VaiSakha is a beneficial month with Madhusudana as the deity. It
yields more benefit for (the various holy rites such as) pilgrim­
ages, austerities, Yajnas, charitable gifts and Homas.

The Mantra for prayer:

33. “O Madhusudana, О lord of the Devas, I shall take the


holy bath in the morning in the month of Vaisakha when the Sun
is in Aries. Make it free from hindrances, О Madhava.”

The Mantra for Arghya:

34. “In the month of Vaisakha when the Sun is in Aries, I am


engaged in the early morning ablution. I shall give you Arghya.
Accept it, О Madhusudana.
35. О ye all rivers including Gahga, accept the Arghya of­
fered by me. О TTrthas and whirlpools, accept the Arghya offered
by me. Be well pleased.
36. О Yama, you are the leader. You are the chastiser of
sinners. You view (everyone) impartially. Accept the Arghya of­
fered by me. Be the bestower of the benefit mentioned.”

37-39. The devotee should offer Arghyas thus and then take the
holy bath. He then wears two clothes and performs all the rites. He
worships Madhusudana with flowers growing in the vernal season.
He shall then listen to the divine narratives and anecdotes of Visnu
praising this month. He shall be liberated from sins acquired in the
course of a crore of births and attain salvation.
40. He will never undergo distress on the earth, neither in
heaven nor in the nether worlds. He is not born anywhere again in
any womb. He does not suck the breasts further (i.e. is liberated).
41. One who takes food in a bell-metal vessel in the month of

1. For the story of MahTratha see PdP V (Patala Khanda), Ch. 99. The king
improved his conduct and performed Vai£akha-rites. After death he expressed his
desire to see hells. When he went to have a view, the hellish beings felt happy. Seeing
their plight, the king offered his merit of Vai£akha-rites and then the hellish beings
went to heaven and only after their redemption the king agreed to go to Vaikuntha.
II.vii.4.42— II.vii.5.4 15

Vaisakha, one who does not listen to good stories, one who does
not take holy bath or make charitable gifts, falls into hells.
42-47. Somehow the sin of killing a thousand Brahmanas can be
dispelled, but the sin of that person who has not taken holy bath in
the month of Vaisakha can never be dispelled. That base man is
undoubtedly dead though living, who does not take holy bath in
the month of Vaisakha, though he has his body under his control,
can freely enter and stay in water and his tongue is free enough to
utter the two syllables HA-Rl (but does not do so). If a stupid and
deluded soul does not worship Madhusudana in the month of Vaisakha,
by some means or the other, he shall be reborn as a pig. He who
worships Madhusudana in the month of Vaisakha with TulasT leaves,
shall become an emperor and enjoy pleasures in a crore of births.
Afterwards, he attains Sayujya with Visnu along with a crore of
the members of his family. The devotee shall serve Visnu both
Saguna and Nirguna (with or without attributes) by means of dif­
ferent paths of devotion. He shall meditate upon him always with
the mind not dwelling on anything else.

CHAPTER FIVE

The Excellence of Vaisakha

Ambarisa said:
1. Why should Vaisakha be considered to be superior to all
the other months and special holy rites, austerities, charitable gifts
and all the other types of pious observances (enjoined during its
course)?

Narada replied:
2-4. Let me tell you, О highly intelligent one. Listen with
single-minded attention.
At the end of the Kalpa, the great Lord, the Lord of Devas, lies
on his couch of £esa, the Serpent. With all the groups of worlds
inside his belly, he lies down in the vast sea of Pralaya. All the
16 Skanda Purana

different categories (of worldly objects.), the multifarious things,


become unified into one mass due to his yogic Maya and the
superior powers. At the end of the slumber he is awakened by the
Srutis. The Lord, the storehouse of mercy, protected all the groups
and species of beings stationed in his belly.
5. He became inclined to create in order to enable the living
beings to experience the fruits of their respective Karmas. From
his navel arose a golden lotus, support pf all the worlds.
6. He created Brahma, Vairaja (son of Virat), called Purusa.
In him the Lord created the fourteen worlds.
7-11. He created various groups of living beings of different
activities and mental proclivities. He created three Gunas, Prakrti,
boundaries and overlords. He made the distinctions (in the duties)
of the different castes and stages of life. He defined Dharma.
He made the sages the custodians of Dharma. The great Lord
made them active workers in the propagation and protection of
Dharma according to the four Vedas, Tantra texts, Smrtis, Puranas
and Itihasas all in the form of his commands. The duties propa­
gated by them are based on the distinction of castes and stages of
life. All the people had faith in the Dharmas befitting them and
giving delight to Visnu.
In order to ensure proper functioning of (the system of) the
stages of life, the immutable Lord is stationed in the heart itself.
Still (he manifests himself outside) in order to test and frighten
(people) (lest they should cease performance of their duties).
12. The wise Lord thought thus: ‘What can be that time when
the people will perform all the excellent Dharmas perfectly?
13-14. The rainy season has been created by me. People are
afflicted and helpless then. Obstructed by mud etc. they are unable
to perform excellent Dharmas.
On seeing them anger alone will arise in me. I shall not be
delighted with them. Let not the people looked at by me become
disturbed and helpless. Hence I do (should) not see them.
15-16. In autumn too there is no fulfilm ent (o f the needs) be­
cause o f agricultural activities. Som e are eagerly attached to ripe
fruits. Som e are afflicted by heavy showers and som e by chillness.
On seeing them I (may) become furious indeed. It does not give
me any satisfaction, when I notice lack o f good qualities.
17-20. When early winter season sets in, people do not wish to
get up early in the morning. I becom e angry on seeing that people
II.vii.5.21-32 17

do not get up even when the sun has risen.


In the same manner people are distressed in the morning during
late winter. So also they are not capable of taking in ripe fruits
with care. Further they are afflicted by chillness and they are
worried about the early morning ablution. There shall be omission
of duties on their part. It will never be recompensed in any man­
ner. This is not the time for survey.’ Thus the Lord became agi­
tated in-his mind. He considered vernal season to be one dispelling
all calamities.
21. “In performing holy bath, charitable gifts, in Yajna, in
holy rites, in the enjoyment of pleasures and in the execution of
different kinds of pious observances and vows, this season is favourable.
22-27. Certainly (some) objects would be accessible to living
beings without much strain. Whatever object will satisfy embodied
beings for whom Visnu is the support, that object is the means of
acquiring virtue and piety to them, since they are endowed with
devotion. In vernal season all objects are conducive to happiness
to living beings. Those objects are worthy of being distributed as
charitable gifts, worthy of holy rites and also of being enjoyed in
every respect. There is no doubt about this, that poor people, those
who are lame and those who are disabled in other limbs, as well as
noble-souled ones (without valuable possessions) can easily get
the things such as water etc. My devotees (lit. to whom I am dear)
perform holy rites conducive to their own welfare with such things
as leaves, flowers, fruits, vegetables and other things, with pleas­
ing words, with flower garlands, betel leaves, sandalpaste and
other things, by washing the feet and similar rites and with humil­
ity etc. Thereby I become the bestower of boons on them.” Think­
ing and speaking thus (to Rama), Lord Visnu started along with
Rama.
28-32. He went along surveying the forests and full-blown flowers.
He saw places inhabited by delighted and well-nourished people
and resorted to by inebriated bees and birds.
He saw the beautiful courtyards of the rich hermitages of the
residents of forests and villages. He saw gardens and vast lands.
He pointed out all these to Rama. Visnu was eulogized by
Siddhas, Caranas, Gandharvas, Kinnaras, Serpents and Raksasas as
well as by Devas and eminent sages. Thus he visited the houses of
those householders who followed the system of castes and stages
of life. Beginning with the month of Mina and ending with the
18 Skanda Purana

month of Karkata, he stayed there along with Rama and Suras.


He tested people by the services (and offerings) perfofmed or
omitted. There he gives to the persons endowed with virtue all
their cherished things.
33-36. He does not brook haughty, intoxicated men. He de­
prives them of their span of life, wealth etc.
In the month of Vaisakha they perform worship of the Supreme
Atman. The Lord brooks it even if omission of rites happens in the
other months in the case of good men who have been otherwise
constant.
If people in the outlying districts go and serve the king who
goes over to their land, offer him presents and humble obeisance,
then the king ignores the deficiencies and shortages in their pay­
ment of taxes and tributes. He considers it as paid in full as it
were. Further, he becomes pleased with them and certainly gives
them something more also.
37-39. If they do not revere and worship him, he metes out
punishment too. In the same manner, Visnu behaves with his own
people in the month of Vaisakha during the advent of the vernal
season. To the persons who offer him worship, he grants all cher­
ished things. In the case of those persons who do not perform
obeisance
_
etc. he deprives them of their wealth etc.*
This is the time when the Lord of Devas, the Sarhga-bearing
Visnu, the protector of Dharma, tests the devotees. Hence this is
the most excellent of all months.

CHAPTER SIX

The Story of a House-Lizard

Narada said:
1. О king, one who does not offer water in the month of
Vaisakha to those who are excessively thirsty and tired of journey
over a long way, shall be born as an animal (in lower species).
2. In this connection they cite the following old story and a
very wonderful dialogue between a Brahmana and д house-lizard.
3. Formerly in the family of Iksvaku, there was a king named
II. vii. 6.4-15 19

Hemanga.1 He was a benefactor of Brahmanas. He was exceed­


ingly munificent. He had conquered enemies and had all the sense-
organs perfectly under his control.
4. He gifted away as many cows as there are particles in the
earth, as there are drops of water (in seas etc.) and as there are
stars in the sky.
5. The whole earth became splendid with plenty of Ku$a
grass as they were left strewn by him after his Yajnas were over.
Many Brahmanas were propitiated by him with the donation of
cows, lands, gingelly seeds, gold and other things.
6. It is well-known that there were no charitable gifts not
made by him. Of course, water was the sole thing not given by
him, О king, because he thought that it was easily available.
7-8. He was advised by Vasistha, the noble-souled son of Brahma.
Yet he argued, “What fruit can a donor acquire—a donor of a
valueless thing which is available everywhere?” With this wrong
notion and arguments in support thereof, he did not offer water to
any Brahmana. His statement (apparently) well-founded was, “There
shall be merit in giving what is not available.”
9. He worshipped Brahmanas wanting in limbs, poor Brahmanas
and those devoid of means of livelihood. He did not adore those
Brahmanas who were well-versed in the Vedas, were knowers of
truth and those who expounded Brahman.
10-11. ‘All people will worship well-reputed persons, offering
them rich presents. Who will help the helpless ones—Brahmanas
without learning, those disabled ones without limbs and the poor
ones? Hence they deserve sympathy/ Thinking thus he, of his own
accord, offered some (wealth) to undeserving persons (without the
concurrence of his preceptor).
12-15. On account of this great sin the king became a Cataka
bird in the course of three births, a vulture in one birth, and a dog
in the course of seven births. Afterwards he was born as a house-
lizard in the abode of a king of Mithila named SrutakTrti. О king,
he sustained himself by feeding on insects. That evil-minded one
remained thus in the loft of the inner apartment for eighty-seven
years.

1. The story of King HemaAga illustrates how free offer of water in Vai£akha is
superior to all other gifts, YajAas etc. and refusal to do it leads to terrible punishment.
Neither PE nor Mbh record any such king. The names may be imaginary but they
emphasize the importance of gifts of water.
20 Skanda Purana

Once an excellent sage named $rutadeva, well-versed in the


Vedas, came to the abode of the king of Videha at midday.
16-17. On seeing him the king was highly delighted. He got up
promptly and adored him with Madhuparka and other things of­
fered by way of reception. He sprinkled over his own head the
water with which he washed his feet. As good luck would have it,
the house-lizard too was sprinkled with a few drops.
18. Immediately the lizard could remember (previous births).
Having remembered the previous Karmas, it became exceedingly
distressed. It cried and prayed, “Save me, save me” to the Brahmana
who had come to that abode.
19-20. The Brahmana was surprised on hearing the sound of a
being of lower stratum. He asked: “O lizard, where are you crying
from? What Karma has brought you to this condition? Are you a
Deva, an ordinary man, a king or a Brahmana? Tell me who you
are, О highly blessed one. To-day I shall redeem you.”
21-28a. On being asked thus the king spoke to Srutadeva of
great intellect: “1 am born of the race of Iksvaku. I was an expert
in the Vedas and scriptural texts. I had gifted away as many cows
as there are particles in the earth or as there are drops of water (in
seas etc.) or as there are stars in the sky. All the Yajnas were
performed by me. I performed acts of public utility such as dig­
ging lakes, wells etc. Charitable gifts were given and the rites due
for the month of Vaisakha were performed. Still I have fallen in
this miserable state to suffer instead of (being rewarded with) a
higher status. Three times I was born as a Cataka bird and once as
a vulture. Previously, О Brahmana, birth as a dog had been gone
through by me seven times. As this king sprinkled himself with the
water after washing your feet, some drops fell on me accidentally.
Thereby I have been reminded of the previous births. All the sins
of mine have been dispelled. I have yet to take twenty-eight births
as a house-lizard. They appear to have been ordained by fate. I am
extremely afraid of the same. I do not see any reason therefor.
Explain to me fully.”
28b-31. On being told thus that sage saw everything with his
vision of perfect knowledge and said: “Listen, О king. I shall tell
you the reason for your birth in the lower species of beings. Water
was not offered by you in the month of VaiSakha, of which Lord
Visnu is fond. Since water is easily available, you decided that it
was worthless. Due to your ignorance even ifi summer season
II.vii.6.32-42 21

water was not offered by you to wayfarers and Brahmanas. Fur­


ther, you made charitable gifts to undeserving persons, ignoring
deserving ones. Oblations are never offered on ash after leaving
aside blazing fire.
32-33. A tree may have different colours. It may possess sweet
fragrance etc. But if it is overgrown with thorns, no one adores it.
Among excellent trees Asvattha has attained the status of one
worthy of being resorted to. Is an egg-plant worshipped after set­
ting aside a TulasT plant?
34. Helplessness is no criterion for worship. Those helpless
persons such as lame and disabled ones are merely to be pitied.
35. Those who strictly adhere to penance, those who possess
perfect knowledge, those who are experts in the Vedas and scrip­
tures are like Visnu incarnate. They should be worshipped always
and never the others.
36. There too, those Brahmanas who are endowed with per­
fect knowledge are always great favourites of Visnu. О king, Visnu
too is always loved by persons having perfect knowledge. Hence a
man with knowledge is worthy of being adored. He is remembered
as the greatest among those who are worthy of being worshipped.
37. Contempt of persons of excellent conduct leads to misery
both here and hereafter. Service rendered to great men is the cause
of achievement of the aims of life.
38. Even if crores of blind people (join together), they will
not be able to see things as they really exist. In the same manner
even an association of ten thousands of dull-witted persons cannot
be fruitful in any manner.
39. TTrthas are not mere waters; the deities are not mere clay
or stone. As for good men, they sanctify merely by their sight but
only after lapse of a great deal of time.
40. Those who are well trained by them do not become dis­
tressed, thanks to the service rendered to good men, just as the
persons nourished with nectar are not afflicted with births, deaths,
old age etc.
41. О scion of the family of Iksvaku, water was not offered by
you, nor were good men served. Therefore, this misfortune (birth
in a low species) has befallen you.
42. For the purpose of quelling the evil and attaining peace, I
shall give you all the merit acquired by me through the holy rites
performed by me in Vai$akha. Thereby you will get rid of all the
22 Skanda Purana

evil fruits of the past, present and future Karmas.”


43-46. After saying this and ceremoniously sipping^water he
donated the excellent merit. When (the merit of) the holy bath
taken in the course of a day was gifted away by the Brahmana, that
king had all his sins quelled. He cast off the body of the house-
lizard. He had divine garlands, garments and ornaments. Even as
all the living beings were watching, he stood with palms joined in
reverence within the mansion of the king of Mithila. He circumambu­
lated them and bowed down to them. On being permitted by them
the king got into a divine aerial chariot. Eulogized by the immor­
tal ones he went to heaven.
47. There without any lethargy (lustily) he enjoyed great plea­
sures for ten thousand years. The great lord himself was reborn in
the Iksvaku-race as Kakutstha.1
48. That great lord was a part of Visnu. He was a friend of
Devendra. He protected the entire earth consisting of seven conti­
nents. He was a patron of Brahmanas and was honoured by good
people.
49. Enlightened by Vasistha, he performed all the fine rites
prescribed for (to be performed in) VaiSakha. Thereby he got rid
of all the inauspiciousness and evils.
50-52. After attaining divine knowledge he obtained salvation
in the form of Sayujya with Visnu. Hence VaiSakha is auspicious.
If the rites are performed by all men, VaiSakha bestows longevity,
fame and affluence. It is destructive of masses of great sins. It is
the cause of the achievement of all aims of life. Visnu becomes
pleased hereby.
In the month of VaiSakha, during vernal season great holy rites
are to be performed by all men of the four castes as well as four
stages of life.

I. Kakutstha: a descendant of Kakutstha. The author probably means Kakusiha,


son of $a£ada (and not Kakutstha), as he was ‘a friend of Indra*. VaP, 11.26.24-25
records how he helped Indra against Asuras—a feat eulogized by Kalidasa in Raghuvamia,
VI.71. Kakustha’s greatness is attributed to the fructification of the merit of VaiSakha-
Vraia performed in his past birth.
II.vii.7.1-10 23

CHAPTER SEVEN

Salvation of a Pisaca (Goblin)

Narada said:
1. On seeing that miracle the king of Mithila was very much
surprised. With palms joined in reverence, the most excellent one
among those conversant with Dharma (Virtue), spoke these words
to (the sage) who was comfortably seated.

Maithilasaid:
2-3. This great miracle as well as the act of a saintly man has
been witnessed. I am eager to hear in detail about that Dharma
whereby this king, a scion of the family of Iksvaku, became a
liberated soul. О learned one, I am endowed with faith. Kindly
describe it in detail.

4. On
*
being specifically asked thus by the king the noble-
minded Srutadeva said, “Good! GoodIм and then addressed the
excellent king thus:

Srutadeva said:
5. О most excellent one among saintly kings, you are well-
resolved. You have decided well, since you are inclined to hear
about the holy rites well-liked by Vasudeva.
6. Without merit acquired in the course of many births no
embodied being can be interested to hear anecdotes of Vasudeva.
7. (Even though) you are a young man and a king of kings,
yet, your mind is inclined like this. Therefore, I consider you a
pure Bhagavata (a devotee of the Lord), the most excellent one
among good people.
8. So I shall recount to you the holy Bhagavata rites, О
gentle Sir. By knowing (correctly understanding) these splendid
rites a living being is liberated from the bondage of births and
worldly existence.
9-10. The excellent hoiy rites of VaiSakha are like various other
rites such as those of cleanliness, holy bath, Sandhya prayer, water
libations, §r£ddha, Agnihotra.
Without performing the holy rites in the month of Vai$akha in
24 Skanda Parana

vernal season one cannot rise up (to heaven etc.)- Among all holy
rites there is nothing on a par with Vaisakha.
11. There are many other rites. They are like subjects without
a king, who are assailed by calamities (i.e., these rites being easily
violable yield only adverse results). There is no doubt about it.
12-21. But those laid down for being performed in Vaisakha are
easy. They are:1 offering of water pot, construction of Prapas
(sheds for free distribution of water), construction of shady places
etc. (for travellers) on the way, gifts of footwear, umbrellas and
fans, gingelly seeds in honey, milk-products for the alleviation of
fatigue, erection of shelters for pedestrians, digging of wells, lakes,
tanks etc., gift of coconuts, sugarcane, camphor and musk, sweet
scents and unguents, gift of beds and cots, tasty mango fruit,
sharbat (sweet drink) made of lemon juice, gift of Damana (Arte­
misia indica) flowers, gift of treacle juice in the evening, varieties
of cooked rice on the full-moon day and cooked rice mixed with
curds everyday, gift of betel leaves, gift of water pot on the new-
moon day of Caitra, early morning bath everyday before sunrise,
worship of Madhusudana etc., listening to the story of the Lord,
avoidance of oil bath, taking food on leaves, fanning off and on
those people who are weary, daily worship of Hari by means of
tender fragrant flowers, Naivedya, offerings of fruits and cooked
rice mixed with curds, offerings of incense and light everyday,
morsels of grass to cows, washing of the feet of Brahmanas, gift of
dried ginger mixed with jaggery, gift of powdered Emblic officinalis,
shelter to wayfarers and gift of rice and vegetables. These are the
holy rites praised and recommended for the month of Vaisakha
which is liked by Madhava.
22. Offering flowers to Visnu, worshipping Hari by means of
sprouts etc. peculair to the season, and offering cooked rice as
Naivedya is the cause of the destruction of all the masses of sins.
23. О noble-souled one, if a woman does not worship Madhava
either in a temple or in her house with the flowers growing in that
season, she will never obtain a son or happiness anywhere. She
will end the life of her husband or of herself.
24-26. In order to test the bridge of Dharma of the subjects in
the month of Vaisakha Visnu goes to their abodes accompanied by

I. VV 12-21 enumerate the various Vratas to be performed if*Vaisakha.


II.vii.7.27-40 25

Rama, Devas and the sages. If at that time any stupid fellow does
not worship him with flowers, he is a deluded soul. He falls into
the Raurava hell. Afterwards he is reborn in the wombs of demonesses
five times.
In this (month) cooked rice and drinking water should be given
always to those who are afflicted with hunger. It is the cause of
sustaining the vital airs.
By not giving drinking water he is reborn as a creature of lower
species. By not giving cooked rice he is reborn as an evil spirit. I
shall tell you a strange experience that I had in connection with
non-gifting of cooked rice or food.
27-28. My father was born as an evil spirit on the banks of
Reva.1 He ate his own flesh when he became utterly exhausted
with hunger and thirst. Due to lack of food he became too weak to
move about. He was staying at the root of a silk cotton tree devoid
of any shade. On account of excessive hunger and thirst and due to
his past Karma the opening of the food pipe in his throat was very
small. Pieces of flesh sticking to his throat gave him a lot of pain
threatening his very life.
29-32a. By chance, on my way to Ganga, I reached the bank of
that river. He looked upon the cool water of a well as well as of a
lake like Kaiakuta poison. At the root of the SalmalT tree I wit­
nessed the surprising thing of his eating his own flesh cutting it bit
by bit and lamenting in diverse ways. He was afflicted with hun­
ger, thirst and sickness on account of his own Karinas.
I pitied him but on seeing me, that spirit of sinful activities
rushed at me to kill. He was restrained on account of my splendour.
He began to run away. With my mind melting with pity I told him:
“Do not be afraid. I have given you freedom from fear. О dear
one, who are you? Tell me immediately the reason for this. I shall
set you free from this difficult situation. Do not be distressed.’'
32b-40. On being told thus, he said to me without knowing that
I was his son: “Formerly I was in the city named Bhuvara (‘most
excellent on the earth') in the land of Anarta (Northern Gujarat).
My name was Maitra. I belonged to the Sankrti Gotra. I regularly
performed penance, Yajnas. charitable gifts etc. and I was learned
too. All scriptures were learnt and taught by me. I took my holy

1. VV 27-44 describe the story how a Brahmana Srutadeva redeemed his own
father from the state of PiSaca.
26 Skanda Purana

baths in all the TTrthas. Out of greediness food was not given by
me in the month of Vaisakha; not even alms were given^at that
time. I now bemoan my lot after being born a Pisaca (Evil Spirit).
There is no other cause. Oh! I have told you the truth. Now my son
named Srutadeva is in my house. He is very famous. My plight
should be reported to that son of mine: ‘Your father has become a
Pisaca for not giving food in the month of Vaisakha. He was seen
on the banks of Narmada. He has not gone up (to heaven). He is
still at the root of the tree. He eats his own flesh and laments over
it. For the sake of liberating your father you must take early
morning bath in the month of Vaisakha. After worshipping Visnu
and offering water libations to me (your father) sincerely, cooked
food should be given to an excellent Brahmana possessing good
qualities. He shall then be liberated and go to the region of Visnu.’ ”
He further said, “Speak this to him; he shall have mercy on me.
There is no doubt about it. Let there be welfare in every respect.
Let there be auspiciousness in your case.”
On hearing the speech of my father, I became miserable. Exces­
sively agitated, I prostrated before him at his feet for a long time.
With tears in my eyes and cursing myself I said: “O my father, I
am your son. I have come here by chance. Since my manes have
not been liberated from distress, I have fallen off from my duties.
I deserve the censure of Brahmanas. Tell me. What is that holy
rite whereby you will be liberated? О eminent Brahmana, I shall
perform it.”
41-42. Then he whose mind was completely satisfied told me:
“After performing your pilgrimage you should return home quickly.
At the advent of the month when the Sun is in Aries, you should
offer excellent cooked food as Naivedya to Visnu. О noble-souled
one, make some charitable gift to an excellent Brahmana. Thereby
the whole family shall attain salvation,”
On being commanded by my father, I completed my pilgrimage
and returned home. I made gift of food in the month of Vaisakha.
43-44. Hence my father was liberated. He came to me and
blessed me. Seated in an aerial chariot he went to the world of the
Lord of Sri—the world that cannot be easily seen and from which
those who have gone there once do not return.
Thus the charitable gift that has been enjoined in all the scrip­
tures has been recounted to you. It is the essence of all Dharmas.
It is highly virtuous.
Il.vii.8.1-11 27

What else do you wish to hear? Tell me. On hearing it 1 shall


tell you everything. This is the truth.

CHAPTER EIGHT

Daksa’s Yajna; ParvatVs Birth etc.

Maithila said:
1-5. О Brahmana, since he did not offer water, the descendant
of Iksvaku was reborn as a Cataka three times. Afterwards he
became a house-lizard in my abode.
Indeed this conforms to his Karma. He deserved it, since he did
not do his duty. It was said (by you) that he was born as a vulture
once and as a dog seven times. This appears to be improper to me.
Good people were not injured or censured by him nor were piti­
ably helpless persons. Since he did not resort (to good people) he
may certainly not have had the benefit thereof. Indeed his act did
not amount to harassing others, because he had not caused harm to
them.
H o w then was he born in a lower womb without any (genuine)
cause? I am your disciple and a favourite as well. Dispel this
doubt of mine.

6. On being asked thus by the king, Srutadeva of great re­


nown exclaimed “Good! Good!’4 and spoke these words:

Srutadeva said:
7-11. О sinless king, 1 shall tell you what has been asked by
you. The same was recounted to ParvatT by Siva on the spotless
(pure) peak of Kailasa.
After creating all these worlds, he evolved two ways of suste­
nance for them, viz. Aihiki (pertaining to this world), and Amusmiki
(pertaining to the other world).
Each of the two ways of sustenance has three factors. The
Aihiki (this-worldly) consists of service through water, service
through cooked food and service through medicine. Whatever these
are, О highly fortunate one, they are the causes of sustenance in
this world.
28 Skanda Purana

In the same manner, О king, three factors have been pro­


claimed in the Sruti, viz. service to good people, service to Visnu
and service to the path of virtue (Dharnm). If these are acquired
earlier (by anyone) they are the causes (of happiness) in the other
world.
12. Just as the food prepared and got ready at the house serves
one’s purpose during the journey on the way, so also the Aihiki
(this-worldly) causes serve their purposes immediately.
13. But, if something desirable and desired by the pious people
becomes unbearable for any reason whatsoever, О king, it causes
harm and injury.
14. Is it to be specially mentioned then as to what is displeas­
ing to them? It is clear that it will cause misery. In this context
they cite this ancient anecdote as an illustration.
15-22. It causes the destruction of sins. It is exceedingly won­
derful. It causes horripilation to those who listen.
Formerly Daksa, the patriarch, got himself initiated for Yajna.1
He went to the silver mountain (Kailasa) in order to invite the
Lord of goblins (i.e. Siva). 3ambhu with a desire for his (Daksa’s)
own welfare did not get up on seeing him. (He thought thus:) ‘I am
the sire of all immortal ones. I am eternal and am approachable
only through the Vedas. These leading Suras including Indra and
Candra (Moon) are my servants who offer tribute to me. A master
should not get up (on seeing) a servant; the husband should not get
up for his wife; the preceptor should not get up for his disciple.
This is the opinion of those who are conversant with the scrip­
tures. Sruti lays down this also that an alliance (by way of mar­
riage) is no cause for seniority at all. He whose strength, knowl­
edge, power of penance and calmness are greater, shall be the
senior to the others. The lower ones shall be the servants. If the
master and other (seniors) get up on seeing the servants and oth­
ers, out of excess of affection, the longevity, wealth, fame and
progeny of those people perish immediately. I, therefore, shall not
stand up as my father-in-law is dear to me.’ Thinking thus with the
welfare (of Daksa) in view, the Lord did not move at all from his
seat. The Prajapati became furious on seeing that Mrda (Siva) did

1. The story of the destruction of Daksa’s sacrifice after the self-immolation of


his daughter (and £iva’s spouse) SatT, is told practically in every Purana. Here the
bias is towards the importance of Vtiisiikha-Vratas. (See Mbh, Santi, Chs. 283. 284;
also PE 193 for other references.)
II.vii.8.23-38 29

not rise up (from his seat).


23-30. In front of the Lord of the Daughter of the Mountain, he
censured him in many ways: “ Alas, the haughtiness! Alas, the
haughtiness of the unlettered indigent fellow! An old bull reduced
to mere skin is his asset, wealth; that is why he holds the skull
bone. He is approachable to heretics. How can fortune grant him
auspiciousness as he is proud for nothing! In this world the knowers
understand pious acts only through their performance.
This poor fellow who is afflicted with chillness, wears the sa­
cred hide of elephant. His abode is cremation ground and his
ornaments, they say, are serpents. He has neither courage nor
knowledge. Both of them had fled from him who is on a par with
a wolf. He is always in close intimacy and association with gob­
lins, ghosts, evil spirits and other vicious beings. Nothing is heard
about his ancestry. He is not honoured by good people. Formerly I
was wrongly led to believe in him by the vicious-minded Narada.
Urged by him I had given my daughter Satl to him. She too has
become one following a separate Dharma. Let her stay happily in
his house. Neither this fellow nor my daughter are to be approved
of in any respect like the pot of a potter that has reached the hands
of a Candala.”
31. Thus Daksa of deluded soul did not invite Uma or Siva.
He scolded him in various ways and went home silently.
32. Thereafter, he went to the sacrificial chamber continuing
to censure the great Lord. In the company of Rtviks and sages he
performed the Yajna as per (sacrificial) procedure.
33. Excepting Brahma and Visnu, all the Devas arrived there.
Siddhas, Caranas and Gandharvas, Yaksas, Raksasas and Kinnaras
too came there.
34. At that time, Satl, the gentle and meritorious lady, was
tempted due to her womanish fickleness. She became eager to
witness the festival and meet the kinsmen who had assembled
there.
35. Though she was prevented by Rudra, though she had been
dishonoured and insulted (by her father), she decided to go due to
the fickle nature of a woman.
36-38. (She was prevented by Siva thus:) “O lady of excellent
complexion, he censures me in the open assembly always. It is
unbearable. On hearing it, it is true, you will forsake your own
body. Though it is unbearable, I too have to bear it because I wish
30 Skanda Purano

to keep up the house (my family life?). О gentle lady, you are
doing as I have done. Hence do not go to the sacrificial hall.
Certainly nothing auspicious will befall you.” Though urged thus,
the goddess did not give up hei fickleness.
39. SatT set out from the house alone on foot. On seeing her
the Bull silently bore the goddess on his back.
40. Crores of groups of goblins followed SatT then. After go­
ing to the sacrificial chamber, she went at the outset to the apart­
ments set apart for ladies.
41. (Everyone) kept quite on seeing SatT. With mental distress
she set out from there. Recalling her husband’s words, she went to
the northern Altar.
42. On seeing her, her father and those who had assembled
there stood silent without giving any blessing to her. She watched
her father’s performance of sacrifice till the time for Ahuti to
Rudra. When her father proceeded dropping Rudra, she said with
her eyes full of tears:

The goddess said:


43-47. Transgressing and insulting the great ones is not gener­
ally conducive to the welfare of persons. Rudra is the maker of the
worlds. He is the administrator of the worlds. He is the immutable
Lord of all. Still how is it that the Havis is not given to Rudra?
Why? Why don’t the others who have come here expose your evil
intentions? Noble-souled ones do not behave thus. Is fate adverse
to these?

As she spoke thus, Lord Pusan began to laugh. Bhrgu whose


auspiciousness had been destroyed, began to stir his moustache
and beard. Others stroked their arms, legs, thighs and sides. Her
unfortunate father censured her in various ways.
48-51. On hearing it, the wife of Rudra became extremely furi­
ous in her mind. In order to perform expiation for having heard it,
SatT immolated her body in the sacrificial fire in the middle of the
Altar, even as everyone stood looking on. There was a great hue
and cry. The Pramathas ran immediately and reported all the de­
tails to the Lord of Devas.
On hearing it Rudra stood up suddenly. He became comparable
to Kala, the annihilator of the world. He plucked up his matted
II.vii.8.52-70 31

hair with his hand and dashed it against the floor. Therefrom arose
the exceedingly powerful VTrabhadra of huge body with a thou­
sand arms. He assumed the refulgence of Kala, the annihilator (of
the universe).
52-55. With palms joined in reverence he spoke to Нага then:
“Employ me in the task for which I have been created.” On being
told thus, the infuriated Dhurjaci (Siva) spoke to VTrabhadra who
stood in front of him: “Do kill Daksa who has censured me and on
account of whom my beloved wife killed herself. Let the groups of
goblins and spirits of great strength go along with this (VTrabhadra).”
On being commanded thus by the Lord, they all went to the
sacrificial assembly. They struck all those great heroic Devas,
Asuras, human beings and others.
56. VTrabhadra who was born of the matted hair, broke the
teeth of Pusan who had laughed. He uprooted the moustache of the
vicious-minded Bhrgu.
57. The powerful VTrabhadra cut off the different limbs that
had been stroked before. He exerted himself much in order to
remove the head of Daksa.
58. As his head had been well-protected by the Mantras of the
sages, it could not be cut off with force. Knowing it Нага himself
came there and cut off the head of the wicked one.
59. After killing those who had come for the sacrifice, he
went to his own abode along with his followers. Some who sur­
vived the slaughter, went and sought refuge in Brahma.
60-61. Accompanied by them Brahma went to Kailasa, the abode
of Siva. With diverse kinds of words he pacified Rudra. The great
Lord went along with him to the sacrificial chamber and resusci­
tated all those who had come to the sacrifice.
62. Then Siva gave Khyati the goat-head of Daksa(?). The
goat-beard he gave to the noble-souled Bhrgu.
63. He did not give back the teeth to Pusan but made him able
to eat flour without teeth. Siva straightened some of his limbs that
had been distorted.
64-70. All of them attained welfare. The Yajna of the noble-
souled one was begun again as before by Brahma and Siva. At the
end of the Yajna, all the Devas went to their respective abodes.
Rudra adopted a very severe vow of celibacy and performed a
great penance. Rudra performed the great penance at the root of a
Punnaga tree (Calophyllum inophyllum) on the banks of Ganga.
32 Skanda Purana

The chaste goddess Satl, the daughter of Daksa, abandoned her


body and was born again as the daughter of Mena and Himalaya.
She grew up in his abode.
At this time the great Asura named Taraka propitiated Brahma
Paramesthin by means of severe penance. He chose the boon that
he could not be killed by Devas, Asuras, human beings and ser­
pents with weapons and all groups of missiles of great strength.
Excepting a son of Rudra, the Daitya could not be killed by any­
one. Such was the boon that Brahma, the grandfather of the worlds,
granted him saying “So be it”, because Rudra had (then) no son
and no wife too.
71. Receiving the boon, the demon went back to his abode
and began to harass the worlds. For the work of cleansing the floor
etc. in his abode Devas became his servants and Deva women were
his servant maids.
72. Then Devas who were harassed by him sought refuge in
Brahma. On hearing about their misery described by them, Vedhas
(Brahma) said this to Suras:
73-75. “O Suras, at the time of granting the boon I have given
the wicked one the boon that he could not be killed by anyone
except a son of Rudra. Formerly Satl, the wife of Rudra, aban­
doned her body in the sacrifice. She was reborn as the daughter of
Himalaya. She is known as ParvatT. Rudra is engaged in a severe
penance on the top of Himalaya. Unite Rudra, the Lord of the
worlds, with ParvatT.”
76-77. Again, in the abode of Devendra, the Lord of Devas, the
chastiser of Рака had consultations with the leading Devas who
had assembled there along with Dhisana (Brhaspati). For the sake
of his task he remembered Narada and Smara. They came there
and the enemy of Bala (i.e. Indra) spoke these words to him:1
78-81. “Kindly go to Himavan and enlighten him with your
words: ‘Your daughter was formerly Satl, the daughter of Daksa
and wife of Нага. Separated from him, she is engaged in penance
on your peak along with ten girl companions. Mrda is also en­
gaged in penance on your peak. Employ his beloved one in the
service of Mrda. She will become definitely his wife. He alone
will be her husband.* ”
I. The story of burning of Kama, the god of Love, is another popular story told
in Puranas. Bringing together Siva and PSrvatT and shooting his arrow at him by
Kama was a clever plan though unfortunately it was not successful.
II.vii.8.82-99 33

On being directed by Indra thus, Narada approached the Moun­


tain and did everything as directed by Devendra. Afterwards Indra
called Kama and spoke this to him:
82-84. “For the sake of the welfare of Devas and for the good of
Mrda too you go to the penance grove of Rudra accompanied by
Vasanta (Spring Season). Manifest the features of Vasanta that
cause flutter of love in the heart. When Goddess ParvatT is near
Mrda, discharge your arrows and allure the great Lord (to her).
When their union takes place our task shall become immediately
fulfilled.”
85. On being commanded thus, Smara said, “So will it be”
and immediately set off. He went to that forest along with Rati,
Vasanta and his entire retinue,
86-89. By means of his power, he created an untimely spring
season throughout that beautiful forest, served by a gentle breeze.
Once the Lord of Devas was delighted with ParvatT’s service.
He took her on his lap and began to speak to her something. Smara
decided that it was the time for the Lord’s union with his beloved
wife. He took up his beautiful and delifcate bow and stood behind
Нага. Making a tree as his screen (to hide himself behind) he
discharged an arrow. He fitted a second one too and exerted him­
self to discharge it.
90. Becoming agitated in his mind, Mrda began to think, ‘My
mind will not waver thus at all. By whom has it been defiled?’
91-92. Worried thus, he turned and saw Kama at his side. With
great fury he opened his eye on the forehead and kept the goddess
away from his lap. From his eye a blazing fire issued forth terrify­
ing all the worlds. By it Manmatha was burned immediately along
with his bow.
93-94. Observing the fulfilment (?) of their task and suspecting
punishment to themselves, Devas, Vasanta and Rati fled to heaven.
The goddess became frightened. She closed her eyes and ran far
off. In order to avoid the presence of a woman, Mrda vanished
from the scene.
95. Indra who was desirous of doing something pleasing to
Rudra and at the same time what was conducive to his good,
attained unfortunate result. One should expect the worse in the
case of one who does somethin^ very displeasing!
96-99. Hence the descendant of Iksvaku, the dull-witted one,
who was always unfavourable to saintly persons, did not perform
34 Skanda Purana

the rite of serving good people which would have been conducive
to his own welfare.
Great misery was experienced by him and further he was born
in a lower stratum of beings. Hence one should render service to
good people, which accomplishes all purposes.
Since he did something displeasing to Rudra, Smara experi­
enced misery very much in his next birth (though he was) a great
lord.
Those who listen day and night to this meritorious legend shall
undoubtedly be liberated from births, deaths, old age etc.

CHAPTER NINE

The Birth ofKumdra*

Maithila said:
l-2a. О holy Sir, how was Kama who had been burned born again?
What was the misery that he experienced as a result of his Karma, i.e.
offending Rudra. О Brahmana, recount this to me. I have great eagerness
to hear.

Srutadeva said:
2b-4.1 shall narrate to you the birth of Kumara, which, when listened
to, is destructive of sins. It is conducive to fame and virtue. It grants sons
and is destructive of all ailments.
When Kama was killed by Sambhu, his wife named Rati fainted on
seeing her husband reduced to ash in front of herself. Within a MuhQrta
she regained consciousness and lamented in various ways.
5-6. Due to her pitiable lamentation the forest too became equally
miserable. She desired to cast off her body in the funeral pyre (of her lord).
She remembered Madhava (Spring), her husband’s companion, in order
to get the necessary work carried out. That great lord came in order to
arrange for the funeral pyre on behalf of the wife of the hero.
7. On seeing his friend he became alarmed for a short while and was

* The birth of Karttikeya after the marriage of Siva and Parvati is a favourite
theme of all Purana-writers His birth is also the theme of Kalidasa’s epic called
Kumarasambhava.
II.vii.9.8-21 35

about to swoon. He then consoled Rati with many kinds of words of


pacification.
8-9. “ O gentle lady, I am like a son unto you. When I am present, it
does not behove you to cast off your body which is the means of achieving
Dharma.” In spite of these and other words of pacification in diverse
ways, she did not feel inclined to remain alive, though Rati was restrained
by him (Vasanta). On seeing her firm decision, Vasanta arranged the
funeral pyre on the banks of the river.
10-14. She took her plunge in the celestial river (i.e. Ganga) and
performed all the obsequies. She controlled all the sense-organs and
concentrated her mind in the soul. She got ready to step on to the funeral
pyre. Then an unembodied voice was heard: “ O auspicious lady devoted
to your husband, do not enter fire. Your husband will be reborn twice,
once from Нага and later again froni Visnu in the form of a Yadava. There,
in the latter case he will be born as Pradyumna, the son of Maha-Visnu
Krsna and RukminT. Due to the curse of Brahma you will stay in the abode
of Sambara. You will become united with your husband named
Pradyumna.”
After saying this, the ethereal speech ceased.
15. On hearing that voice she who had decided to die, gave up her
resolve.
When Kama was killed by Нага while acting on their behalf, Devas too
came there.
16. On observing Rati’s act Suras led by Guru (Jupiter), Indra and
Fire made that chaste lady desist from it by means of great boons.
17. ‘‘Though he is Anahga (bodyless, having been reduced to ash)
he shall become Sanga (possessing a body) and though dead he shall be
visualized.” Thus they made her refrain from (committing suicide) and
advised her about her righteous duties.
18-21. “ In the previous Kalpa he was a king named Sundara; he was
a great lord. You alone were his wife then but caused a confused
intermingling of Rajoguna (rajahsahkarakarinll). That was why this
plight befell you. Perform expiatory rites now. In the month of VaiSakha
take early morning bath in Ganga.1Worship the Slayer of Madhu and
listen to the divine narrative. О beautiful lady, begin the Vrata named
Asunyasayana1 (‘non-vacanl bed’). By means of this pious act and12
1. This is how VaiSakha- Vralas are brought in this episode both in place and out
of place.
2. ASunya-Sayana'Vrata: A Vaisnava Vrata to be observed on the 2nd day ot the
dark half of Sravana (for details see Matsxa Parana. Ch 67). It confers perpetual
conjugal happiness.
36 Skanda Рига па

through the Vrata of the VaiSakha month you will certainly regain your
husband. There is no doubt about this.”
22-23. After granting her boons like these Devas went back in the
manner they had come. That gentle lady, the chaste wife of Kama, after
surmounting the difficulty took her holy plunge in Ganga when the Sun
was in Aries. The noble-minded lady performed the Vrata of Ashnyasayana
also.
24-27. By the power of that meritorious deed Kama was immediately
visualized by her, О great king. Kama whose power was irresistible in the
world was a king in the previous Kalpa. He was devoted to holy rites. But
he did not perform the great holy rites laid down for the month of
Vaisakha. Therefore, Smara met with the destruction of his body, though
he was the son of the Supreme Soul. If the month of Vaisakha when the
Sun is in Aries is spent in vain, such is the plight of Devas even; still more
so in the case of human beings.
Afterwards, when the Three-eyed Lord vanished, the Daughter of
Mountain became desperate.
28. On seeing her bewildered and sitting quiet, Mountain Himavan
became agitated, embraced her with his pair of arms and took her to his
abode.
29-31. Observing the handsome features, liberal-mindedness and
other qualities of the noble-souled Нага (the Daughter of Mountain)
decided: “ He alone shall be my husband.”1Her mind was fixed to him.
Observing holy rites, she came to the banks of Ganga in order to perform
penance, although she was prevented from it by her father, mother and
other kinsmen. The goddess observed fast and kept matted hair and began
to worship the great Linga. At the end of a thousand years according to
the divine reckoning Mahesvara appeared before her.
32-34. The Lord assumed the form of a religious student and came to
the entrance of the hut (one day) in the evening. By means of different
kinds of words (of discussions) he knew the steadfastness of the mind of
Parvati, which was fixed on him. The great Lord said, “ O gentle lady,
choose an excellent boon.” That lady of excellent countenance requested
Rudra, “ You be my husband.” After granting the same boon, he
remembered the Seven Sages. They came and stood before him with
palms joined in reverence.

1. The story of Parvati’s performance of penance for Siva, Siva’s interview with
her, proposal of marriage to Himalaya, the marriage-ceremony of Sfva-P3rvatT have
been favourite topics of Puranas and classical poets.
II.vii.9.35-52 37

35-39. The Lord directed the Sages to request Himalaya on his behalf
for the hand of his daughter. Commanded thus by the Lord they proceeded
towards the abode of Himavan for the sake of his daughter. They travelled
by air brightening the ten quarters and reached the abode of Himavan. The
Mountain welcomed all the Seven Sages, the most excellent ones among
the knowers of Brahman. He duly worshipped all of them. When they
were comfortably seated he addressed them: “I am blessed. (I feel) Ihave
fulfilled all my tasks since you people have come to my abode. I consider
your arrival as the beneficial fruit of my birth. Noble-souled men who
have realized all their objectives have not left anything for us to do. Still,
recount to me what is to be done by me now.” On being told thus they said
to Himavan, the great Mountain:
40-43. “O Lord of Mountains, certainly a statement befitting
yourself has been made by you. We shall mention the object of our
arrival for your own prosperity. Your daughter named ParvatT was
formerly the daughter of Daksa, Sat! (by name). After abandoning
her body in the Yajna, she is reborn as your daughter. In all the
three worlds none else but Sambhu is competent to marry her.
That goddess must be given (in marriage) to Sariibhu by you, if
you wish for infinite benefit. In the course of thousands of your
previous births good and meritorious deeds were performed by
you. Fortunately now they have fructified.”
44-47. On hearing their words the great Mountain became highly
delighted in his mind. He spoke these words again: “ Wearing bark
garments and observing fast my daughter is engaged in a very
severe penance on the banks of Ganga. She is desirous of getting
Sarnbhu as her husband. Hence this (proposal) will be liked by her.
My daughter has been (already) given to that noble-souled Three-
eyed Lord. О holy Sirs, kindly go quickly to the place where
Sambhu, the great Lord, is present. Report to him, ‘Accept (the
daughter) lovingly offered by Himavan*. Let yourselves alone
perform this marital rite.”
48-52. On being told thus by Himavan they took leave of him
and went to Siva. All the ladies including LaksmT and all the
Devas including Visnu, the six Mothers (viz. Brahml, KaumarT,
Vaisnavl, VarahT, IndranT, Camunda) went to witness the ceremony.
Accompanied by all the groups of immortal ones, the sages and
the Mothers and the groups of Pramathas, Siva set out seated on
his bull. There were various musical instruments such as BherTs,
Mrdangas, conchshells, trumpets, Pa(aha drums etc. Bards recited
38 Skanda Purana

poems. Sags chanted Vedic Mantras.* Thus Siva entered the city
of Himalaya. In an auspicious Muhiirta (auspicious hour) aryi in a
splendid Lagna the Mountain celebrated the marriage with ex­
tremely delighted mind. О king, all the living beings in the three
worlds were overjoyed.
53. When the festivities were over, Sankara, the benefactor of
the worlds, sported with the goddess as he pleased. He followed
the ways of the world.
54-55. Sankara had his sports in many places, e.g. in the luxu­
rious, well-furnished abode of Himalaya, comparable to the abode
of Devendra, on the banks of NandinT and in the clusters of woods
at night.
He sported in a park reverberating with the sounds of birds,
peacocks and inebriated bees. The Lord thus sported as he pleased
for a period of thousands of years according to divine reckoning.
56-59. At that time, О excellent king, women had not yet been
granted boons by Indra. Hence subsequent intercourse with men
caused miscarriage in women who had conceived earlier. Since
Нага sported everyday, the goddess did not conceive at all.1 Since
no son could be begot by the Lord, Devas became worried. All of
them joined together and consulted one another. “Нага, the Su­
preme Lord, is always attached to the goddess like a lustful one.
Our task will not be fulfilled because of frequent miscarriage.
Something should be done by us to prevent subsequent intercourse.”
60. After discussing thus together, they began to seek (an
expert for their job). Having decided that Agni (Fire-god) was the
proper one, they spoke to him with due deference:
61-64. “ O Agni, you are the mouth of Devas, you are our
kinsman and resort. Now itself you go to that place where Нага
sports about. At the end of the intercourse show yourself up so
that there will be no further intercourse. On seeing you the god­
dess will shy away and will certainly go away from that place.
At the end of the intercourse be his disciple and ask the De­
stroyer of Smara about some point. Under the pretext of asking
questions about various things see that a great deal of time is

^Auspicious Mantras like svasti na indro etc. of Punyahavacana and others ex­
pressive of blessings.
1. This is why Agni was deputed to disturb the sexual intercourse of Siva-
ParvatT. Unfortunately the plan flopped and Agni became pregnant. The story of
transfer of foetus seems an explanation of why Skanda had six heads ($adanana).
II.vii.9.65-80 39

taken, О lord. After the lapse of much time the goddess will
deliver Kumara.”
On being requested thus by Devas, Agni said “ Yes” and went
to Нага.
65-69. Even before the discharge of the semen virile in the
middle of the intercourse itself, Agni went there. On seeing him
the goddess who had no clothes on became ashamed and went
away dejected, leaving off the sexual dalliance in a hurry. There­
upon Rudra became infuriated. He said to Agni, “Take this, О
sinful and vicious one, my discharged and unbearable semen vir­
ile. There has been an interruption during the intercourse due to
your presence. Hence, О Havyavahana (‘Bearer of oblations’), I
am discharging the semen virile into your mouth.”
After saying this, Нага released the semen virile into the mouth
of Agni. Fire-god held that immensely powerful semen virile within
his belly. He began to be burned thereby. Worried with this thought,
he went to the abode of Devas. It was with very great difficulty
that he could save his own life. He recounted it to the Devas.
70-72. On hearing what was said by Agni, the Devas experi­
enced both delight and dejection. They were delighted because the
semen virile had become established (into Fire-god). They were
dejected because they did not know how to effect the delivery (of
the child). The semen virile of Sambhu within the belly of Agni
grew up and ten months passed by. He did not know the means of
delivering the child. Hence he became excessively unhappy. He
sought refuge in the Devas for the release of the foetus.
73-75. Accompanied by Agni, those Devas went to the famous
Ganga. By means of eulogies and prayers they earnestly requested
Ganga : “You are the mother of all Devas. You alone are the
sovereign of all the worlds. On behalf of Devas, О gentle lady,
hold the semen virile of Sambhu. The foetus grows and develops.
But since Agni is not a woman, there has not been the delivery of
the child. Hence redeem him as well as all of us. Take pity (on
us).”
76. On being requested thus, the goddess spoke: “Let it be
so.”
The Devas imparted the Mantra for the release of the foetus.
77-80. Thanks (to the efficacy) of that Mantra, Fire-god left off
the refulgent semen virile of £ambhu into Gahga, the semen virile
that was highly unbearable to all the worlds. She held it for a few
40 Skandci Purana

months but could not continue beyond that on account of its great
power. Her waters became dried up and her body became red­
dened. The goddess became exceedingly miserable. But thanks to
the power of chastity, (Ganga) the sole sanctifier of all the worlds
cast off the foetus within her into a cluster of Sara reeds. It was
highly blazing all round. It split into six due to the Sara reeds.
81-84. Urged by Brahma, the six Krttikas came there. They
unified the foetus of Sambhu that had been split into six among
the reeds. They made it one person with a single body but six
faces. The Krttikas who had been commanded by Brahma, did so
perfectly well.
That body in the form of a man with six faces remained among
the reeds unprotected for a long time.
Once ParvatT and ParameSvara who were desirous of going to
Srisaila riding on the Bull came to that spot.1
85-91. At that time milk began to ooze out suddenly from the
breasts of Goddess ParvatT. She became surprised and spoke to
Rudra, “Why did the milk issue forth from the breasts? Tell me the
cause thereof, О soul of the universe.”
On being asked thus Нага said: “Listen, О gentle lady, I shall
tell you. Your son is present below. I had not discharged my
semen virile into you. Before that Agni came there. On seeing him
you became ashamed and went away to another place. In great
fury the immensely powerful semen virile was discharged by me
into the mouth of Agni. With the favour of Devas Fire-god cast it
into Ganga. She herself became burned and so Ganga discharged it
among the reeds. There it split into six and was unified and stabi­
lized by the Mothers. It took the shape of a man. It was on seeing
him that your breasts oozed out milk. He should be protected. He
has great vigour. In exploits he is on a par with Visnu. This alone
appears to be your bosom-born son certainly. Hence take him
quickly. You will become famous through him.”
92. On being commanded thus by Sambhu, she held that child
immediately on her lap. The goddess then fed the child at her
breasts.
93-94. Enchanted by the Lord, the goddess had tender emotion
for the son. Then the son of Sankara went to Kailasa along with
the Lord. The goddess attained great pleasure and satisfaction in

1. This explains the reunion of mother (ParvatT) and the child Sadananu.
II.vii.9.95— II.vii.10.4 41

fondling her son. Thus the mysterious and miraculous birth of


Kumara has been described to you.
95-99. He who always listens to this birth of Kumara, of great
auspiciousness, undoubtedly obtains increase in the number of
sons and grandsons. At his birth even Нага had to experience great
sorrow. One who has listened to the holy rites of Vaisakha lov­
ingly,1 shall become matchless. So Vaisakha rites are destructive
of all the masses of sins. It is meritorious. It yields life-long
conjugal felicity. It brings about all riches. By its power even the
unembodied god of Love (Kama) became Sdhga (endowed with all
limbs). If one spends the Vaisakha month without holy bath or
charitable gifts, there shall be a series of miseries even if he
performed all other holy rites. If only this one is performed, all
Dharmas shall be conducive to welfare.

CHAPTER TEN

Glorification of the Gift of Umbrellas:


The Story of Hemakanta

Maithila said:
1-2. О Brahmana, describe in detail the procedure of Asunya-
sayanavrata that was advised by Devas and performed by the wife
of Kama. What is the charitable gift thereof? What is the proce­
dure? How is the worship to be performed? What is the benefit
thereof? Describe this, О Brahmana. I am very eager to hear.

Srutadeva said:
3. Listen once again. I shall recount the Vrata that is named
Asunyasayana that is destructive of all sins and that was recounted
by Hari to Rama.12
4. If that Vrata is performed, the Lord of Devas having the
lustre of cloud, the Lord of the universe, the destroyer of all

1. VaiSakha-Vratas have a tenuous relation with the birth of Sadanana


2. VV 3-30 describe the details of the Asunva-iayana-Vrata whereby a man or a
woman is never separated from his/her spouse. Some of the details are a bit different
from those described in MtP.
42 Skanda Purana

masses of sins, the husband of LaksmT, becomes pleased.


5. If a person does not perform this Vrata, О king, that is
destructive of sins and continues to lead the life of a householder,
that shall be fruitless unto him.
6-11. On the second day in the bright half of the month of
Sravana, О king, this excellent Vrata named Asunyasayana should
be taken up.
When the four months (of the rainy season) have arrived, men
should regularly eat only the Havisya (food). О lord, the Parana
should be completed in the course of the four months. Janardana,
the Lord of the universe, should be worshipped along with LaksmT.
When the day of Parana arrives, four types of foodstuffs should be
given as present to a Brahmana having a large family.
The Lord’s idol should be beautiful and made of gold or silver.
The Lord shall be clad in yellow garments and adorned with syl­
van garlands. The idol should be exquisitely made. The devotee
should worship Purusottama with sweet-smelling white flowers.
The worship should be accompanied by gifts of beds, garments,
feeding of Brahmanas, feeding of couples and monetary gifts.
12. After worshipping Janardana during the four months thus,
the devotee should worship Hari as before, in the months begin­
ning with MargaSTrsa.
13. He should meditate on Hari, red in complexion, and ac­
companied by RukminT. Thus he should worship the Lord during
four months beginning with Caitra.
14-15. Then he should devoutly worship the Lord stationed
along with Bhumi (Earth), the Lord devoid of sins and eulogized
by Sanandana and other sages. He should conclude the worship on
the second day in the month of Asadha. He should perform the
Н ота in the auspicious fire with the eight-syllabled Mantra (от
namo narayanaya).
16. In the Parana of the months beginning with MargasTrsa, О
king, the devotee should perform Н ота with Visnu-GayatrT.1 Note
the procedure for the months beginning with Caitra.
17-19. He should perform Н ота in the auspicious fire, with
Paurusa (Sukta) Mantra (RV X.90). (The Naivedyas) should be

I Visnu-Cayatn Mantra: от naravanaya vidmahe, vasudevava dhlmahi/ tanno


visnuh pracodavat//
Il.vii. 10.20-30 43

Pancainrta, milk pudding and sweet pie cooked in ghee. The mate­
rials are to be given in this order. Note (the procedure) for the (gift
of) idols. He should (in the beginning) give a golden idol of
LaksmI-Narayana. He should give a golden image of Krsna, the
Supreme Atman, in the middle. He should give a silver idol of the
noble-souled Varaha in the end.
20-21. He should then feed Brahmanas with the names begin­
ning with Kesava. After honouring them with pairs of clothes and
ornaments in accordance with his financial position, he should
adore them and offer sweet pies cooked in ghee as presents. He
should offer these to twelve Brahmanas.
22-25a. Then he should give the image fashioned in advance to
the preceptor. The bed as planned before should be complete and
embellished with all ornaments. The great deity LaksmI-Narayana
should be duly worshipped on it. That should be given to an
excellent Brahmana,'a Vaisnava with a large family, along with a
bell-metal vessel and many sweet pies. The present should be
made along with garments and ornaments as well as monetary
gifts. He should duly worship other Brahmanas too and feed them.

The Mantra for the gift: 1


25b-26. “Just as your bed, О Janardana, is not devoid of LaksmI,
so also, О KeSava, let my bed too be not vacant by the merit of
this charitable gift.”
After requesting the Lord of Devas thus, he should take his food
himself.
27-30. This Vrata can be performed by a man, a chaste woman
or a widow. This excellent Vrata should be performed for the sake
of Asunyasayana ( ‘non-vacant bed’ i.e. life-long partnership of the
spouse).
Thus, О excellent king, the Vrata has been recounted to you in
detail. When Jagannatha is delighted, there shall be different kinds
of progeny; when the Lord of Devas is pleased, those inaccessible
to even Devas (can be acquired). Hence, by all means, one should
perform this Vrata. It should be necessarily performed by one who

I. Cf. the Dana-mantra occurring in MtP:


laksmya na sunvam varada yathd te fayanam sudd /
savyd manuipyasunyastu tathaiva madhusudana //
44 Skanda Ригана

is desirous of going to the great region of Visnu. Thus everything


has been described by me. What else do you wish to hear?

31-33. On being told thus by him the saintly king requested the
sage once again: “ Describe in detail the greatness of the gift of
umbrellas in the month of VaiSakha. I am not satiated by listening
to the holy rites mentioned for the month of Vaisakha. They are
conducive to auspiciousness.”
On hearing* these words of his that bring about fame and in-
crease merit, Srutadeva of great fame replied to (the king) of great
fortune.
/■
Srutadeva said: 1
34-35. Infinite is the merit of those persons who offer protec­
tion from sunshine to noble-souled men heated by the sun.
In this context they cite this traditional legend of yore pertain­
ing to the holy rites of VaiSakha.This is the incident that happened
formerly in Krtayuga.
36. Formerly there was an intelligent king in Vangadesa, well-
known as Hemakanta. He was the son of Kusaketu. He was the
most excellent one among those who bore weapons. Once, as he
was much interested in hunting, he entered a deep forest.
37. There he killed different kinds of animals such as boars
etc. At the time of midday he became completely exhausted. He
went to hermitages of sages.
38. At that time the sages of good holy rites named Satarcins
were engaged in meditation. They were not at all aware of any­
thing that was going on outside.
39. On seeing those Brahmanas motionless, the king became
furious and was inclined to kill them. At that time ten thousand
disciples restrained the king.
40. “O evil-minded one, listen to our words. Our preceptors
are engaged in meditation. They do not know anything that hap­
pens outside. Hence it does not behove you to be angry.”
41. Thereupon, excited with fury he spoke these words to the
disciples: “ O Brahmanas, I am exhausted in my journey. Treat me
with hospitality.”

I. VV 34-83 describe the story of prince Hemakanta to explain the efficacy of


the donation of umbrellas in Vaisakha.
Il.vii. 10.42-56 45

42-43. On being told thus by the king, the disciples said to the
king: “ We have not been directed by our preceptors, О king.
Further, we eat what we get by way of alms. We are dependent on
our preceptors. How are we competent to entertain you?” (Thus)
refused by the disciples, the king took up his bow in order to kill
them.
44-48. ‘These have been saved by me in various ways from
dangers due to animals, robbers etc. Now they who were given
monetary gifts by me, try to teach me. These are ungrateful and
excessively proud. They are (like) murderous assailants. Even if I
kill them, there is no harm.’
Infuriated thus, he began to discharge arrows from his bow.
When they fled, he chased them. Thus he killed three hundred
disciples.
In their fright, they left the hermitage and fled away quickly.
When the disciples were driven away, the evil-minded soldiers
seized the various articles stocked in the hermitage forcibly and
ate them up. In this they were encouraged by the king himself.
49-50. Thereafter the king returned to the city by the end of the
day accompanied by his army.
On hearing about the action of his son, KuSaketu reproached his
son very strongly. As he was devoid of patience and unsuitable to
the kingdom, the king banished him from the city as well as from
his land itself, О king.
51-55. Banished by his father, king Hemakanta became exces­
sively bewildered. He entered the thick forest and was very much
afflicted by Hatyas ( ‘Sins of Slaughter’).
He stayed for a long time in the deep forest devoid of men. He
followed the practice of hunters and maintained himself. He could
not permanently stay anywhere because he was (hotly) pursued by
the Hatyas continuously. Thus the vicious one passed twenty-eight
years.
(Once) A great sage named Trita came to that forest in the
course of his pilgrimage. It was the month of Vaisakha and the
time was midday with the sun blazing furiously.
As he went along, he was oppressed by the sun’s heat and was
extremely afflicted with thirst. He fell into a swoon in a place
where there was no tree at all.
56. As good luck would have it, King Hemakanta saw the
great sage named Trita. Being overwhelmed with fatigue, he had
46 Skanda Purana

swooned. He was much distressed due to thirst. The base king took
pity on him.
57. He made an umbrella with leaves of Palana tree (Butea
frondosa) and warded off the sunshine by holding it above the
head of the sage. He gave him some water kept in a gourd.
58-63. By this service the sage regained his consciouness. He
held the umbrella made of leaves which was handed over to him
by that Ksatriya. Thereby he recovered from fatigue. He went to a
certain village and got back the regular functioning of the sense-
organs.
On account of the power of that meritorious deed the three
hundred Brahmahatyas perished instantaneously. He became a noble-
souled one.
Thereupon Hemakanta, the mighty warrior, became surprised.
T have been afflicted in various ways. Where have those Brahmahatyas
gone? How have they gone? Have they been dispelled by anyone?
What is the cause thereof?’
He was thinking in this manner about his relief from Brahmahatyas.
Even as the king stood thus ignorant of the cause thereof, the
messengers of Yama came there in order to take away this high-
souled Hemakanta who was staying in the forest. They made him
sick with dysentery in order to take away the life of this noble-
souled one.
64-72. Agitated due to the deathpangs, he saw three beings who
were terrible with hair on their heads standing up erect. They were
the messengers of Yama instilling fear in him.
Thinking about his (evil) deeds, the king remained silent then.
As a result of the charitable gift of an umbrella. О king, he was
reminded of Visnu.
Recollected by him, Mahavisnu said to his minister Visvaksena:
“ You go quickly and restrain the-messengers of Yama. Protect
Hemakanta who was engaged in the holy rite pertaining to VaiSakha.
Go to his city and hand over this devotee of mine free from sins to
his father. Enlighten Ku$aketu through these words uttered by me:
‘Whether one is devoid of all Dharmas, or bereft of celibacy etc.,
if he is engaged in VaiSakha Dharmas, he shall undoubtedly be my
favourite. Though your son has committed grave offences, he was
engaged in saving the sage. Since he has made a gift of an um­
brella in the month of VaiSakha, he is rid of his sins. There is no
doubt about it. By the power of that meritorious deed he has
Il.vii. 10.73-84 47

become Santa (quiescent), Danta (self-controlled) and Cirdyusa


(long-lived). He is endowed with the qualities of heroism, liberal­
mindedness etc. and is on a par with you in good qualities. Hence
establish this powerful prince in the administration of the king­
dom.’ Command, that excellent king that he has been directed thus
by Visnu. Leave Hemakanta with his father and come back to
me.”
73-74. On being ordered thus by the Lord, Visvaksena, the
mighty one, came near Hemakanta and restrained the messengers
of Yama. With his propitious hand he touched the limbs of the
king. By the power of the contact with the devotee of the Lord, he
became rid of all ailments in an instant.
75-78a. Visvaksena went to his city along with him. On seeing
him, Kusaketu, the great lord, became surprised. He bowed down
his head devoutly and prostrated flat on the ground. He took the
attendant of the Supreme Being into his abode. He eulogized him
with different kinds of prayers. He adored him with his great
affluence. Delighted with him Visvaksena, the mighty one, told
him everything that had been previously spoken to him by Visnu
in regard to Hemakanta.
78b-81a. On hearing it, Kusaketu installed his son in the king­
dom. Permitted by Visvaksena, he entered the forest along with
his wife.
After taking leave of Hemakanta with due deference Visvaksena
went to 3veladvTpa. The intelligent and noble-minded Visvaksena
returned to the side of Visnu.
King Hemakanta thereafter performed all the holy rites pertain­
ing to Vaisakha causing auspiciousness and pleasing to Visnu. He
performed those holy rites every year.
81b-83. He was a favourite patron of Brahmanas, strictly ad­
hered to the path of virtue. He was quiescent. He subjugated all
the sense-organs and the mind. He was merciful to all living be­
ings. He was initiated in all Yajnas. He flourished with all afflu­
ence. He was surrounded by sons, grandsons etc. After enjoying
all worldly pleasures he attained the world of Visnu.
84. I do not see any other holy rite on a par with those per­
taining to Vaigakha. Effort in this regard is pleasant. They are the
cause of plentiful merit. They are like fire unto the fuel of sins.
They are easily accessible. They are the giver of all aims of life
beginning with Dharma and ending with Moksa.
48 Skatuia Parana

CHAPTER ELEVEN

The Anecdote of King Kirtimdn

Maithila said:
1. The holy rites pertaining to VaiSakha are easily accomplishable.
They bring about abundance of merits. They directly cause delight
to Visnu and are the means of realizing the great aims of life.
2. Why are they not well-known in the world in spite of their
being eternal and laid down in the Srutis, though many Dharmas of
Rajasa and Tamasa nature are very well-known?
3-4. They (i.e. the latter) are very difficult to perform and they
involve a lot of effort. They require great expenditure. Some people
praise the month of Magha. Others praise the four months (of
rainy season). They extol in various ways the Dharmas of VyatTpata
etc. I am desirous of hearing about the distinction of these cases.
Explain it in detail to me.

Srutadeva said:
5. Listen, О king, I shall recount why these are not popular.
I shall explain how the other rites are well-known in the world.
6-8. There are many people in the world of Rajasa and Tamasa
types (nature). They are lustful. They wish for worldly pleasures,
sons, grandsons, riches etc. Somewhere and somehow you may
find with great difficulty some people who may endeavour for
heaven. Hence they perform good holy rites such as Yajna etc.
with great effort. No man seeks and strives for salvation (Moksa).
People with petty hopes and desires go in for desired benefits and
engage themselves in great many holy rites.
9. Therefore, the Dharmas of Rajasa and Tamasa types have
become popular and well-known and not these Dharmas of Sdttvika
nature, (though) they are pleasing to Hari.
10. These Dharmas of Niskama (desireless) type are (certainly)
the bestowers of worldly pleasures and heavenly benefits too. But
the foolish people deluded by the Maya of the Lord do not know
that.
11-12. When one attains lordship, one’s desires are entirely
realized. If one succumbs to temptations, one is deprived of the
lordship.
II.v ii.ll. 13-23 49

I shall tell the reason for keeping this a secret in the world
scrupulously, in regard to the Dharmas pertaining to Vai£akha.
They are of the Sattvika type and are intended for men of Sattvika
type here.
13-15. Formerly there was an emperor in Ka$T well-known as
KTrtiman. He was an ornament unto the family of Iksvaku. He was
an illustrious son of Nrga.1He had conquered anger as well as the
sense-organs. He was a patron of Brahmanas. He was the most
excellent one among all kings.
Once he was engaged in hunting and he came to the hermitage
of Vasistha. The month was VaiSakha, fierce on account of the
oppressive heat (of the sun). While proceeding ahead, he saw on
the way the disciples of that noble-souled sage constantly engaged
in various activities.
16-20. In some places they were setting up Prapas (free-water
stalls) and shady pavilions. Some were engaged in repairing tanks
by stopping the breaches in the embankments. In other places,
they were engaged in fanning some persons comfortably seated at
the foot of trees. Some were seen offering sugarcane stumps in
some places, sweet scents in some other places, and fruits in still
other places. At midday they made the gifts of umbrellas and of
Panaka (sweet drinks) in the evening. In some places they offered
betel-leaves and in some camphor ointments for the eyes. Some
were seen spreading smooth sands in shady places in the forest and
in the well-swept courtyards. О king, some were seen tying up
swings suspended from branches of trees. (When) he asked them,
“ Who are you?” , they replied, “ We are Vasisthas (i.e. disciples
of Vasistha).”
21-23. “ What is this?” ( “ What are you doing?” ), He asked.
They told the excellent king, “ These are the holy rites laid down
for the month of VaiSakha. They are the means of attaining the
aims of life. These rites are being performed by us scrupulously at
the bidding of Vasistha.”
The king then asked, “ What is the benefit that men attain by
performing these? Who is pleased (thereby)? Say this in detail in
the manner you have heard.”

1. Nfga was the younger brother of Ik$viku. He was famous for performance of
sacrifices and charity (Mbh, Van 88.5-6; Anuiasana 76.23). He was cursed to be a
chameleon and was redeemed by Кгзда (Mbh, Anuiasana 70. 2*28). But no son
called KfrtimSn i:» attributed to him in Mbh and BhP.
50 Skanda Purana

On being asked thus by the king, they replied to him:


24-27. “ We are carrying out the orders of our preceptor. We
perform the various holy rites on the path. Hence we have no time
(to spare). You would better ask our preceptor in a befitting man­
ner. That sage of great renown understands these Dharmas thor­
oughly and correctly.” On being replied thus by the disciples of
Vasistha, the king quickly proceeded to the meritorious hermitage
of Vasistha well-known for imparting knowledge of various sci­
ences and Yoga.
On seeing the king coming, Vasistha became pleased in his
mind. He duly entertained the noble-souled king along with his
retinue. After receiving the hospitality and having seated himself
comfortably, the delighted king asked that preceptor:

The king said:


28-33a. On the way a great, wonderfully auspicious thing was
observed by me. It was the splendid work performed by your
disciples. I asked them about the auspicious rites which were
being performed by them. Nothing was explained by them. They
said, “ We do not have sufficient leisure to explain these holy rites
(adequately). We have to carry out the work as directed by our
preceptor. You would better ask our preceptor.”
When this was said by them, I have approached you. Since I am
engaged in hunting, I have become tired. Desirous of some hospi­
tality (I halted here). There this meritorious work performed by
your disciples was seen by me on the way. О eminent sage, I have
a great desire to know more of these holy rites. You are the first
(sage) and inasmuch as you perform all the holy rites from the
beginning, О eminent sage, explain them in detail to me. I am
desirous of hearing about them. I am your humble disciple and I
have faith (in these rites).

33b-36a. On being asked thus by the king belonging to the


dynasty of Iksvaku, the sage of great reputation was very much
pleased in his mind to note that he had been properly asked by him
then. (He said) “ O king, your intellect is well employed and well
trained. Since your mind is enthusiastically interested in the talk
about Visnu and the performance of holy rites pertaining to him,
your merit has come to fruition.” After remarking thus with great
delight, he spoke to the king thus:
Il.vii.l 1.36b-48 51

36b-41a. “ Listen, О king, I shall speak what I have been asked


by you now. By listening to that, one is liberated from all sins.
Granting that a person abandons all (other) holy rites and is com­
pletely engrossed in sensual pleasures, if he is engaged in the holy
bath during the month of VaiSakha, he becomes a favourite of
Visnu. Even if a person performs all other holy rites along with
their ancillaries but Vai$akha is not duly honoured by means of
holy bath, charitable gifts, worships and other meritorious deeds,
Hari is far way from him.
If VaiSakha is passed without taking the holy bath and making
charitable gifts, he becomes a Candala through this omission. There
is no doubt about this.
If Hari is propitiated by means of the great holy rites laid down
for the month of Vai$akha, he becomes satisfied and grants what­
ever is desired.
4 lb-45. The Lord of the universe, the Consort of LaksmT is the
destroyer of the entire mass of sins. He is pleased with the subtlest
of holy rites and not with gross (physical) efforts or expenses in
terms of money. If he is devoutly worshipped, Visnu grants what­
ever is desired.
Hence, О king, devotion to Visnu should always be practised.
Even if he is adored with water, Hari, the Lord of the universe,
dispels all pain and strain. He becomes satisfied like a thirsty man
with water.
Even a great Karma may yield only a small benefit. Even a
small Karma may yield a great benefit. The greatness or smallness
of the Karma is not the cause of the greatness or smallness of the
benefit (accrued). But the nature of the Karma (is the cause). The
way of Karma is inscrutable.1
46. These holy rites prescribed for the month of Vai$akha can
be performed with very little effort. They are auspicious and pleasing
to Visnu. They prevent increase in expenses.
47. Hence, О king, you too perform the holy rites laid down
for the month of Vai$akha. Make all the people in your kingdom
perform these auspicious rites.
48. The base one who does not perform the holy rites laid
down for Vai£akha should be rebuked in various ways, О king. (If

1. The discussion in vv 4 lb-45 indicates that though Vratas in Vai£3kha appear


easy, they are great in their efficacy.
52 Skanda Purana

he does not perform even then) he should be punished by y o u /’


49. Thus (the sage) clearly explained to him the necessity of
performing those holy rites by expounding the scriptural texts.
Afterwards he described to him the nature, procedure etc. of the
Vai£akha holy rites completely.
50. After hearing everything about all the rites, he devoutly
revered the preceptor. The king thereafter returned to his abode
and performed all the rites.
51. О king, he was a great devotee of Ke£ava, the unsullied
Lord of Devas. The king did not see (i.e. worship) anyone other
than Visnu (Padmanabha), the Lord of Devas.
52-55. A great Bhen-drum was placed on an elephant and this
was proclaimed throughout his kingdom through soldiers:1“ If any­
one over the age of eight years and under eighty does not take
early morning bath when the Sun is in Aries, all those people will
be liable to be punished by me. They may be executed or banished
from the kingdom surely. Even if it is (my) father or son or wife or
an intimate friend, if he shuns (the performance of the holy rites in
Vai£akha), he should be bound over by me like a robber. After
taking the holy bath in the splendid water, gifts should be made
over to eminent Brahmanas. О sinless ones, perform other holy
rites too, such as establishing Prapas etc. in accordance with your
capacity.”
56. He appointed a Brahmana expounder of holy rites in every
village. He appointed a special officer for every five villages.
57-60. That officer was entrusted with the duty of punishing
those who had forsaken their Dharmas. He had at his disposal ten
horses (i.e. ten soldiers from the cavalry).
The tree of Dharma and pious activity thus planted everywhere
at the bidding of the emperor flourished in every land profusely.
All those men who died in the realm of that king, went to Hari’s
abode, О excellent king.
О excellent king, even those who go to Hari's abode (temple)
accidentally, go to Hari's abode (Vaikuntha) after death. Certainly
the world of Visnu is attained by men quickly. One who takes a
bath but once in the morning under some pretext when the Sun is
in Aries, shall be rid of all sins and go to the great region of
Visnu.
1. VV 52-58 show the king’s efforts to popularize (even by compulsion) the
Vailakha Vrat as.
II. vii. 11.61-78 53

61-64. By taking the holy bath in Vai£akha even once one does
not go to the world of Yama. О king, at that time the son of the
Sun-god (i.e. Yama) had nothing to record. Then Citragupta got
complete rest from his writing and accounting (of Karmas etc.).
The previous records about the sins of people were erased quickly
in a moment by the people who went to the world of Visnu for
their own (good) Karmas.
All the Narakas (Hells) became empty as they were devoid of
sinful creatures. By the power of VaiSakha the path (to hell) be­
came devoid of all traffic. All people became free from impurities
and of brilliant form and went to the region of Hari.
65-68. All the abodes of the heaven-dwellers became empty
similarly. When the heaven became empty, when all the Narakas
too became void, Narada went to Dharmaraja and spoke thus: “ O
king, no usual lamentation is heard in Naraka; nothing is being
written about the evil-doers. Citragupta is observing a vow of
silence like a sage. Tell me the reason, О king, why men of evil
actions, great imposters and tricksters do not come to your abode.”
69. When these words were spoken by the noble-souled Narada,
the king, the son of Vivasvan (i.e. Yama) said thus somewhat
helplessly:
70. “ O Narada, the king who is ruling the earth now, is a
great devotee of HrsTkeSa, the ancient excellent Purusa.
71-73. He enlightens the people in the holy rites of Vai£akha by
means of BherT sound: ‘He who is over eight years and under
eighty and who does not perform holy rites of VaiSakha will be
undoubtedly punished by me.’ Because they are so afraid, there­
fore all the people never transgress. By means of that Karma, О
Narada, they go to the abode of Visnu. People will go to the abode
of Hari by resorting to holy rites of VaiSakha.
74-78. The path to my place has been destroyed by that king
now, О excellent sage. Ail the Narakas have been evacuated. So
also the worlds of heaven-dwellers. The accountant Citragupta has
taken rest. What has been already written has been now erased by
people. The greatness of the holy rites of the month of Vai£akha is
of such (efficacy), О sage. О Brahmana, people have been rid of
the sins like that of slaughter of Brahmanas. By performing their
duties in the month of Vaiiakha, they go to the great region of
Vi$qu. I have now become a mere log of wood (unable to punish
or bless people). I shall fight with him and kill him (though) he is
54 Skanda Purdna

very mighty in every respect. The (servant) who does not carry out
the tasks of his master, who remains inactive but who yet receives
his wages, certainly goes to Naraka.
79. If he is indestructible by a Deva, I will go to Brahma,
intimate to him everything and afterwards will be free from worry.”
80-86. After saying this he took leave of the Brahmana. Kala
lifted up his terrible staff, rode on his buffalo and went to the earth
along with his followers.1He was surrounded by his excessively
fierce attendants like Mrtyu, Roga, Jar a etc. and the messengers
numbering fifty crores. He immediately besieged the entire capital
of that saintly king. He then blew his exceedingly fierce conch
that instilled fear in all the worlds.
On hearing it, that saintly king knew that it was Yama, the son
of Vivasvan. He got ready with all preparations and angrily set out
from the city.
The fight between those two was terrifying and caused hair
stand on end. Within a trice that saintly king subdued Mrtyu, Kala,
Roga, Yama and Dutapati. He routed them in great anger. There­
upon the infuriated king Yama himself approached him and fought
with him with many arrows. He roared like a lion. With three
arrows the king cut off his bow.
87-91. Taking up his sword and shield, Yama came down to kill
him. On seeing him, the king became furious. He cut off the sword
and the shield and planted in his forehead an arrow that had the
lustre of a black serpent. On being struck by it Yama became
furious and took up his staff. He charged it with the Mantra of a
Brahma missile and discharged it towards him (the king). The
onlookers shrieked “ Alas!” At that time, for the sake of the pro­
tection of his own devotee, Visnu hurled his Discus. The Discus
hurled by Visnu came to the battleground, quickly clashed with
the staff of Yama and checked that Brahma missile. The devotee
of the Lord (i.e. the king) became frightened and immediately
eulogized the Discus.
92-94. “ O Thousand-spoked (Discus), the ornament of the hands
of Visnu, obeisance to you. Formerly you were held by Hari for

]. Conquest of the god of Death (Yama) and his torturous realms (Narakas) is
looked upon as the highest efficacy of a Vrata. It is attributed to Ek&dali in NP and
to Vailakha-Vratas here. It is a device of popularizing a Vrata, used here in vv 52 to
the end of the Chapter and Chapters 12 and 13 later. **
II. vii Л 1.95-110а 55

the sake of protecting all the worlds. I beg of you today to protect
Yama, the highly powerful devotee of Visnu. You alone are the
deity of death unto men who are inimical to Devas. No one else.
Hence, О lord of the universe, be merciful. Protect this Yama.”
95. The Discus that was eulogized by the king thus left Yama
and came near the king, О great king, even as the Devas stood
watching in the firmament.
96-100. Then Yama who was exceedingly dejected went to the
abode of God Brahma.1There he saw the Grandfather of all the
worlds seated, surrounded by embodied and unembodied beings.
He is the support of Dhruva, the seed (creator) of the universe. He
was attended upon by ail the Devas, the Guardians of the Worlds
and Lords of the Quarters, Itihasas, Puranas and other (sacred
texts) assuming the bodies of Devas, oceans, rivers and lakes in
embodied forms, all the trees such as A£vattha etc. having physi­
cal bodies, tanks, wells and lakes as well as mountains with physi­
cal forms, the units of time such as days, nights, fortnights, months,
years, Kalas, Kasthas, Nimesas, seasons, Ayanas (transits of the
Sun) and Yugas.
101-103. He was surrounded by Samkalpas (resolve), Vikalpas
(doubts), winkings and openings of the eyes, stars, Yogas, Karanas
(astrological positions), full moons, declinings and wanings of the
moon, happiness, misery, fears, profits, losses, victories, defeats,
Sattva, Rajas, and Tamas, Santa (calm), Mudha (deluded), Atipraudha
(mature), the effects of Prakrti, Vayu (Wind-god), the lord of
Devas, phlegm, bile and others.
104-110a. In the middle of all these, Yama entered like a
bashful bride. He was glancing at the floor and he exhibited a pale
face. On seeing Yama entering and standing nearby along with his
followers, all those beings became surprised. They said to one
another:
“ Why has Yama come here? Why has he come here to see Lord
Brahma, the creator of the worlds? This son of Ravi never remains
inactive even for a moment. Why has he come? Are the Heaven-
dwellers hale and happy? This is the greatest wonder that his
scroll is without any writing. The writer also has come with him.

1. VV 96-103 describe the assembly of God Brahma. It is supposed to be at­


tended by even impersonal principles in their embodied forms.
56 SkandaPurana

He is also exceedingly dejected. His scroll is never kept without


any writing (clean) because he is afraid of Dharma. What has
never been seen or heard is present now.”
Even as those beings were commenting thus, Yama, the chas­
tiser of living beings, the son of Sun-god, fell on the ground in
front of Brahma like a tree uprooted. He cried, “Save me, save
me!”
110b-112. ” 0 Lord of Devas, I have been humiliated. My scroll
has been rendered clean (without writing). О Lotus-seated One,
when you are the Lord, I have never seen hitherto any defeat or
failure.”
After saying this, О excellent king, he became motionless. Thereupon
a tumultuous sound arose in the assembly.
113-117. “ Yama, the son of Vivasvan, who makes all mortals,
mobile and immobile beings sad, is himself miserable now and he
cries. Why does he cry? He who distresses people shall ere long
meet with mishaps and calamities. A man who commits evil deeds
does not gain auspiciousness.” Then Wind-god prevented them
from talking. Brahma took note of the opinion of all those beings
present there. Warding off the other people, Wind-god lifted up
Yama slowly with his brawny arms as stout as Sala trees. The
liberal-minded Wind-god made him occupy his seat as he was
utterly agitated and thoroughly helpless. Then Wind-god asked
Yama as he sat on his seat:
118-120. “ By whom have you been attacked? By whom have
you been prevented from your office. О lord, by whom was this
scroll wiped off? Tell me everything. What for have you come? О
dear one, he who is the Lord of all is your maker and my maker
too. Whence is this misery in your heart?” On being asked thus by
Wind-god, Yama told him the truth and said these words. On
seeing the face of the son of Ku£aketu his words were choked. He
was greatly agitated.
ILvii.12.1-13 57

CHAPTER TWELVE

Yama's Lamentation

Yama said:
I- 2 Listen to my words, О Grandfather (Brahma). I have been
ignored and deprived (of my job), I take the transgression of my
office as worse than death. If an employee does not do his duty, О
Lotus-seated One, and if he appropriates the money of his master,
he shall become a worm in a log of wood.
3. An intelligent man who, out of greed, misappropriates the
wealth (of the master), is reborn, О Lord of the earth, as a lower
animal and falls into hell (where he remains) for a period of three
hundred Kalpas.
4. If (the empioyee) is disinterested in his work and does not
carry it out properly, О Lotus-born One, he suffers (the tortures of)
terrible hells. The man is reborn then as a crow.
5. He who is devoted to his own selfish ends and spoils the
work of his master, is a sinning soul. He is reborn as a domestic
mouse and continues thus for three hundred Kalpas.
6. The employee who is capable of doing his work but (does
not do it) and stays behind in his house is reborn as a cat.
7. О Lord, I keep the subjects under discipline on the basis
of justice at your bidding—the meritorious through merit and the
sinful through sinful act.
8. The sages equipped with (the knowledge of) Dharma Sastras
(Ethical Texts) discussed and thought in detail at the beginning of
the Kalpa. They decided the tortures to be meted out by me (by
way of punishment).
9. I belong to you. Still I am not able to carry out your
behest. Your decree on the earth has been broken by King KTrtiman.
10. Iam afraid of him, О Lord of the universe. He is staying
somewhere ruling the oceangirt earth with the help of holy rites of
Vai£akha.
II- 13. People have abandoned all holy rites; they do not wor­
ship the ancestors; they have discarded holy service to the sacred
fire; they do not perform such holy rites as pilgrimage to the
TIrthas; they have abandoned both the paths, i.e., that of Karma
and that of knowledge; they have ceased to practice control of the
58 Skanda Parana

vital breath; they refrain from performing Homas and study of


Vedas and they commit many sins. Still, they go to the world of
Visnu by performing the holy rites of Vaigakha. Those men go
there along with their fathers and grandfathers.
14-19. Not only that. All the dead forefathers, parents of the
forefathers, their maternal grandfathers and their fathers and oth­
ers go (to Visnuloka).
They take along with them many others too including the ances­
tors of their mothers. There is a further headache, a further misery,
О Lord.
The fathers of their beloved ones too go (to Visnu’s world) after
wiping off my record (of their Karma). A son bom of the seed of
the forefathers held in her womb by a maid servant, О lord (also
goes to Visnu’s world).
One does an act and the same one enjoys its fruit. But this rule
is broken. One who knows everything, a person who has become
omniscient in a family, redeems more than twenty-six generations
of both the sides (that of the father and that of the mother). This is
more than enough, О Lord. О dear one, all those born of their
beloved ones, go to the highest region of Visnu. I have nothing to
do with this type of job and service.
20. One who is engaged in the holy rites of Vaigakha leaves
me behind and goes to Hari. He becomes highly refulgent after
ridding himself of all sins. He uplifts and redeems twenty-one
generations of his family.
21. He leaves off my path and goes to Hari’s abode. О Lord,
no man obtains that goal by means of performing Yajnas.
22. One who is equipped with (the merits of) all the Tirthas,
charitable gifts etc., austerities, holy Vratas and entire range of
pious and devout activities does not obtain that goal.
23. By dying in Prayaga, or in the middle of fighting in a
battlefield or by falling off the precipice (Bhrgupatana) or at KagT,
people do not attain that goal which is attained by one strictly
adhering to the holy rites of Vaigakha.
24. By taking the early morning bath, by worshipping the
Lord, by listening to the narrative called “The Greatness of the
Month”, and by performing the requisite holy rites pertaining to
Visnu, one shall become the sole lord of the world of Visnu.
25. I consider the world of Visnu, the Lord of the universe,
limitless, О Lotus-seated One, because it is not yet filled up com-
Il.vii. 12.26-38 59

pletely though flooded with crores and crores of people.


26-27. (Defective Text partially) By the entire abode of Madhava
the Grandfather (is ignored). Those who perforin forbidden rites,
those who perform only what is laid down (in the Vedas), the pure
ones, the impure ones—all these perform the duties pertaining to
Vai£akha and they go to the world (of Visnu) at the behest of the
king who is our great enemy and more so of yours in particular.
28-3la. This king is to be curbed by you, О Lord of the worlds.
Abandoning all other holy rites but by taking the Vai£akha holy
bath only once cultured people go to the abode of Hari, to Vaikuntha.
If this king whose sole resort is the feet of Visnu is neglected by
us, he will take the entire world (to Vaikuntha). There is no doubt
about it. This staff and record of Karmas is placed at your feet.
The matchless guardianship of the worlds has been acquired by
that king.
31b-35a. Of what avail is a child that is born causing pain to the
mother, if it does not cause the downfall of the enemy (terribly
hot) like the Sun in the month of Jyestha? If a young woman gives
birth to a worthless child, or has a wicked son, her fame does not
spread like the lightning of the cloud.
If a child does not redeem the forefathers from sin through his
learning or strength, he, delivered on the earth, is only a disease
affecting the belly of his mother.
If a son behaves perversely in regard to the pursuit of virtue,
wealth and love, that son is called a slayer of his mother by good
men. He is the meanest of all men.
35b-38. The mother of this king and the wife of this king have
become well-known in the world through their holy rites. There is
only one woman in the world who has given birth to a real hero.
There is no doubt about it (his being the hero) as this (king)
KIrtiman is born for wiping off my records.
О Lord, this has never (before) been attempted by any Ksatriya.
Wiping off of the records is never heard of in the Puranas, О Lord
of the worlds.
Excepting that king who is devoted to Hari, I do not know
anyone else, О Lord of the chiefs of the worlds, who encourages
others through proclamations by beating"Pataha drums and ob­
structs the path to my place.
60 Skanda Purana

CHAPTER THIRTEEN

Yama is Consoled

Brahma said:
1-2. What is the miracle seen by you? Why do you feel exces­
sively sad? Distress caused to saintly people will cause trouble to
one till one’s death.
Merely by uttering (the name of Hari) the greatest region is
attained. Won’t the people then go to the world of Hari at the
bidding of the king?1
3. One obeisance offered to Govinda is on a par with the
valedictory bath after a hundred horse-sacrifices. A person who
performs a sacrifice undergoes rebirth, but obeisance offered to
Hari prevents further birth.
4. Of what avail is Kuruksetra and of what use is SarasvatT to
him, if the two syllables HA and RI are present at the tip of his
tongue?
5. A Brahmna might have had sexual intercourse with a Candala
woman, particularly when she is having her monthly course. Even
then, if he remembers Visnu at the time of death, he will attain his
(Visnu’s) region.
6. Since, remembering him is liked by Visnu, one attains
Sayujya with Visnu in spite of a mass of sins produced as a result
of eating forbidden food.
7. Such is the month named VaiSakha as Visnu is fond of it,
О Yama. Even by listening to the holy rites thereof one is liber­
ated from all sins.
8. Then, does it need to be particularly mentioned that one
who is devoted to the performance of holy rites goes (to the world
of Visnu)? When one sings about (the greatness of Vai$akha rites),
Purusottama becomes pleased.
9. How then does a person who is devoted to the perfor­
mance of holy rites not attain salvation? The Lord of the worlds,
Purusottama, is our progenitor.
10. This (king) performs these holy rites in the month of Vai£akha

I. In consoling Yama in vv 2-15, God Brahma extols the glory of Vi$nu, his
name Ha-Ri (v 4) and the efficacy of Vaiiakha-Vratas—the main objective of the
Purana-writer.
Il.vii.l 3.11-24 61

which he (the Lord) likes. (Hence) Visnu is delighted with him.


He always stands by him and assists him.
11. О Yama, you are not competent to punish him or teach
him. Nothing inauspicious exists in the case of the devotees of
Vasudeva. They need not be afraid of births, deaths, old age and
sickness.
12. An employee should eagerly engage himself in the tasks
of his master to the maximum of his capacity. He should become
contented with that much. He does not fall into Narakas.
13. When the task (entrusted to him) is beyond his capacity,
the employee should inform his master. By that much the servant
becomes free from indebtedness and attains happiness.
14. Once he has intimated (to the employer), he becomes free
from indebtedness and sin. If endeavour is made in regard to his
duty, the embodied one (i.e. employee) has no offence whatsoever.
15 Therefore it does not behove you to bewail when the task
has become impossible.

16. On being told thus by Brahma, Yama became further de­


jected. With his eyes bedimmed with flowing tears he spoke these
words giving expression to his pitiable plight:
17- 18a "O dear one, everything that I have acquired has been
obtained by means of the worship of your feet. О Lotus-born Lord,
I will not go to (my) duty once again as long as this excessively
powerful king rules this earth.
18b-21a. О Lord, I shall get that king removed from his holy
rites and then alone be contented like a son who has offered rice-
balls (to his ancestors) at Gaya. О merciful one, enable me to
attain this and fulfil my task without fail. Thereafter I shall be free
from ailments once again and shall carry out your behest."
On hearing what was requested by Yama, Brahma became wor­
ried once again. Consoling him in various ways, Brahma spoke to
him once again:

Brahma said:
2 lb-24. The king who is devoted to Visnu’s holy rites cannot be
restrained by you. If, out of anger, you wish to outwit him (wait),
we shall (first) approach Hari and intimate everything to him.
What he says thereafter, we shall carry out.
He alone is the maker of the world. He is the protector of
62 Skanda Purana

Dharma. He alone is our guide, chastiser, maker and controller.


О Dharma, after he has said anything, there is nothing to> say
further; there is no scope for any argument. It is not proper for us
to dispute further. On the earth too, nowhere do we find anyone
arguing after the king has decisively ordered anything.

25-29a. Having consoled Yama thus, Brahma went to the Ocean


of Milk along with him. He eulogized Purusottama who is the
Supreme Lord devoid of Gunas (attributes) and is (of the form of)
knowledge alone, who (can be attained) only through Samkhya
and Yoga, who is single and without a second.
Then Visnu manifested himself before them, on being eulo­
gized by Brahma.
Yama and Brahma hurriedly made obeisance to him. In words
and tone as majestic as the rumbling sound of a cloud, Mahavisnu
spoke to them : “What for have you both come here? Is there any
misery caused by demons? Why is the face of Yama pale and
faded? Why is he stooping down his head? Explain this, О Brahma.”
On being told thus, the Lotus-born Lord said:
29b-33. “When the king, the most excellent one among your
servants, is engaged in administering the kingdom, men who are
devoted to the holy rites of Vai£akha attain the immutable great
region. Hence Yama’s city has become vacant. Therefore, Yama is
exceedingly sad. He fought with the king. In order to kill him, he
raised his staff. But he has been defeated by your Discus. He
therefore, came to me.
We are not competent to mete out punishment to your noble-
souled devotees. Hence we have sought refuge in you alone, О
great Lord. Chastise that king and protect Yama who is your own
(favourite).”
On being told thus (the Lord) laughingly said to Brahma and
Yama :
34-37a. “I will forsake Laksml,1my vital airs and body, Srivatsa,
Kaustubha, my garland named VaijayantI, SvetadvTpa, Vaikuntha,
the Milk Ocean, $esa and even Garuda, but I am not at all inter­
ested in forsaking my devotee. How can I feel interested in aban-

]. Popularization of devotion to Visnu is the aim of this author. This firm prom
ise of Visnu is meant to contribute to it.
II.vii.l3.37b-47 63

doning my devotees who leave off all worldly pleasures for my


sake? They are ready to abandon even their lives for my sake; the
blessed ones identify themselves with me. So I shall find out other
means of suppressing your misery.
37b-40. That king has been given by me a life span of ten
thousand years on the earth. Of them eight thousand years have
passed by, О annihilator of men. If the remaining part of his life is
spent, he will attain Sayujya with me. Thereafter, a vicious person
named Vena1will become king. He will destroy all these holy rites
laid down in the Srutis. At that time the VaiSakha holy rites too
will become extinct. On account of the sins committed by him
alone, Vena will perish.
41-43. Afterwards I will incarnate as Prthu12and spread the holy
rites once again. Then I will popularize the rites of Vaigakha
among people. Only one in a thousand will be my true devotee
who will dedicate his own vital airs to me and will renounce the
desire to hoard more and more possessions. These holy rites will
be current only among such men. One (among many) will come to
be conversant with these holy rites of mine on the earth. Thereaf­
ter your task will be fulfilled, О annihilator of men. Do not be sad.
44-47.1 shall make all noble-souled men observing the Vai€akha
rites give you your share in this month of VaiSakha. After some
time I will make the king also (give you your share). Therefore,
pacify your grief. One enjoys your share with heroism as the
present, because you are an enemy superior in strength (?) One
who continues to partake of his share does not feel miserable. Men
should give Arghya unto you everyday at the time of their holy
bath. On the last day of VaiSakha they must, with you in view,
offer a pot filled with water and cooked rice mixed with curds.3If
they do not do so, all their observances of the holy rites of Vai€akha
shall be fruitless.

1. A notoriously vicious king of yore; born of Manu and Sunithi; cursed to death
by sages. The famous king Prthu, an incarnation of Visnu, was churned out of Vena’s
right hand (Mbh. Santi, Ch. 59; VP 1.13; also PE 844-45.) It is narrated as a
prophecy.
2. Son of Vena. The first emperor coronated by Devas. He established Law,
Order and Dharma and made arrangement for the livelihood of people of all castes
and communities as symbolized by his milking of the Earth-Cow (VaP 1. 126-74).
3. This has become an integral part of daily Vai&kha observances (see vv. 55-
58).
64 Skanda Purana

48-52. Hence eschew anger towards the king who is devoted to


me. He will give you your share. Those men who give ygu your
share and perform the great holy rites of VaiSakha should not have
any hindrance on account of you. If they manifestly worship only
me and shun you, the protector of Dharmas, О blessed one, you
will punish them at my bidding. I shall send Sunanda to make the
king give you your share. At my behest, he will go and make him
give your share.”
Even as Yama stood waiting thus near him, the Garuda-vehicled
Lord despatched Sunanda to enlighten the king to pay Yama’s
share. He went there, advised the king and came back once again
near (the Lord).
53-54. Having consoled Yama thus, Visnu vanished there itself.
Brahma also consoled Yama himself and allowed him (to go)
quickly. He was extremely surprised and he went to his abode
along with his followers. Somewhat delighted in his mind, Yama
went back to his city.
55-57. Thereafter, urged by the directive of Visnu and the ad­
vice tendered by Sunanda, all the people who observe holy rites of
Vaigakha give the share (unto Yama).
If men do not honour Dharmaraja (and offer the share), he
himself takes away their merit accruing from VaiSakha rites. Ev­
eryday in the month of Vai£akha the devotee should take his holy
bath and offer Arghya to Yama. If this is done there is merit;
otherwise everything shall be futile.
58. At the outset a pot filled with water and cooked rice
mixed with curds should be offered by people to Dharmaraja on
the full-moon day in the month of Vai€akha.
59-60. Afterwards the man should offer the same on behalf of
the manes and his preceptor. Thereafter, he should offer the same
to Lord Janardana, the slayer of Madhu. Cold water, cooked rice
mixed with curds, betel leaves, fruits and monetary gifts—all placed
in a bell-metal vessel should be given to a Brahmana.
61-63. He should give a divine image of the deity Madhusudana
to a Brahmana who expounds the monthly holy rites and may
happen to suffer due to poverty. The devotee should honour the
same expounder of holy rites with all his riches.
Thus directed by Sunanda, the king did everything accordingly.
He spent the remaining part of his life enjoying all worldly plea­
sures as he pleased. Accompanied by sons, grandsons and others
Il.vii. 13.64-72 65

he went to Hari’s abode.


64-67a. When that king went to Vaikuntha, the base ruler Vena
became king. All the holy rites, particularly the VaiSakha rites,
were destroyed by that vicious one. They lost their popularity on
the earth once again. They were mostly the cause of salvation. No
one knew these splendid holy rites laid down for the month of
VaiSakha.
The mind will become fervently inclined towards VaiSakha holy
rites only when the merits acquired in the course of many births
fructify.

Maithila said:
67b-69. Indeed the vicious king Vena was present in the earlier
Manvantara. This king, the scion of the family of Iksvaku, is
present in this Vaivasvata Manvantara. This has been heard by me
before. It is being described by you now also. He (KTrtiman) has
gone to Vaikuntha; Vena will be the king afterwards. (How can
this be?) О £rutadeva of great intellect, clear this doubt.1

Srutadeva replied:
70-72. There is conflict in Puranas only because of this differ­
ence in the arrangement of Yugas and Kalpas. You shall not have
any doubt about its authenticity, if the story happens to involve
(apparent) contradictions.
When the daily Kalpa has passed(?), this (story) is permanent
and splendid. It was narrated to me by Markandeya and that has
been recounted to you, О king.
Hence the Vaisakha rites should not become popular. Only one
(among many) will know it. He will be unattached (to the worldly
pleasures). He will be devoted to Visnu.

I. Puranas have conflicting versions of the same story and the usual explanation
is their occurrence in different Yugas and Kalpas (see vv 70-72).
66 SkandaPurana

CHAPTER FOURTEEN

Liberation o f a Pisaca

Srutadeva said:
1-6. He who takes the holy bath in the morning in the month of
Vai£akha when the Sun is in Aries, worships Madhusudana and listens
to this story of Hari, shall be rid of all sins and go to the highest region
of Visnu.1
He who leaves off (in the middle) when the story (of Visnu) is being
read and expounded and stupidly resorts to any other thing shall fall
into Raurava Naraka and then he is bom as a PiSaca (evil spirit). In
this context they cite this ancient traditional legend as an illustration.
This story is destructive of sins. It is holy and conducive to virtue. It
is an ancient tale which should be respected forthwith.
Formerly, on the banks of Godavari in the splendid holy place of
Brahme£vara there lived two holy spiritual preceptors, the disciples of
Durvasas, well-known in all the three worlds as Satyanistha, and
Taponistha.12 They were firmly devoted to Supreme Brahman. They
were always devoted to the Upanisadic teachings. They were indiffer­
ent (to worldly pleasures). They were meritorious. They subsisted only
on what was received as alms. Both of them lived in a cave.
7-11. Of these two, Satyanistha was always devoted to the stories
of Visnu. Even if there were no listeners or expounders, the great sage
used to carry on (leisurely) his daily round of duties. If there was
even one listener, he used to expound to him (Visnu*s story) day and
night.
If anyone expounded the auspicious and meritorious story of Visnu,
he used to curtail his religious rites and listen to the story, because
he was interested in listening to the same.
He used to avoid going to pilgrim centres and sacred shrines situ­

1. The object of this chapter is to describe the importance o f early bath in


the month of Vai$akha.
2. Out of these Satyanistha realized by Upanisadic studies the importance of
devotion to Vi$nu and became less inclined to Karmakinda. He is a representative
of the cult of Vi$nu-bhakti (vv 7-22), while Taponistha as a staunch adherent to
the path of Karma, did not care to hear Vi$nu tales and thereby became a Pi&ca
(vv 23-31).
II.vii.l4.12-23a 61

ated very far off, because they conflicted with his interest in the sto­
ries (of Visnu). He avoided performing most of the rites. He used to
listen to the divine stories and to expound them to listeners himself.
О king, excepting the stories (of God), he did not know anything else
worthy of being resorted to.
12. If, being afflicted with sickness, an expounder (of Visnu-sto-
ries) happened to give discourse in his house (instead of in a public
place like a temple), the sage resorted to bath at a well and was
devoted to listen to the stories.
13-17. At the conclusion of the story, he used to perform his (reli­
gious and other) duties duly.
One who habitually listens to the holy stories does not get involved
in bondage of births. He shall attain intrinsic purity. Absence of at­
tachment to Visnu will disappear. Attachment to Visnu and friendship
with saintly people shall be engendered. The attributeless Brahman
free from Rajoguna will be retained in the heart immediately. Karma
is futile in the case of a man devoid of perfect knowledge. Even if it
is performed in diverse ways repeatedly, it will be like showing a
mirror to a blind man.
Karma repeatedly performed by those whose hearts are absorbed in
deep meditation shall definitely be conducive to the purity of nature.
Due to the purity of nature capacity to listen will improve. By listen­
ing one attains perfect knowledge and then he becomes competent to
meditate.
18-23a. Sravana (listening), Dhyana (meditation) and Manana (re­
flection) have been laid down in the Vedas in many places.
If there is no (narration of) tales of Visnu, if there are no good men,
that place should undoubtedly be abandoned even if it be the banks of
GaAga itself.
If in any land there is no TulasI plant, nor the auspicious abode of
Vispu, nor the (narration of) story of Visnu, a person who dies there
shall attain dense darkness (i.e. hell).
If in any village there is no abode (temple) of Visnu, nor a black
antelope, nor the story of Visnu, nor saintly people knowing it, one who
dies there shall immediately be reborn as a dog and continue thus for
a hundred births.
The sage (Satyanisfha) pored over the Upani$ad Texts and pondered
over the teachings therein and came to this decision. He was always
attached to the tales of Visnu; he was devoted to the memory of Visnu.
He did not consider anything superior to this listening.
68 SkandaPurana

23b-27. The other one, Taponistha, strictly adhered to the rituals.


He was foolishly obstinate. He did not expound, nor listen to good tales
(of Visnu) himself. He left off even while the story was being ex­
pounded and set out for holy bath in TTrthas.
At a TTrtha too, when the tale was begun, О king, he used to go far
off due to the fear of omission of holy rituals because of fickleness.
After coming into contact with him people used to go for doing their
domestic activities. There were no listeners or expounders (of tales of
Visnu) at his side but only Karmins (those interested only in perform­
ing riturals—Karmas).
The time of that evil-minded, vicious (sage) passed off thus. The
tale of the Lord did never reach his tongue or ear.
28-31. The sage later on died and immediately became a Pisaca
(Evil Spirit) on account of his Adharma since he was not one who
listened to or expounded (divine stories) and because he was vicious
and pertinacious. He then occupied a Sami tree. He was named Chinnakarna
(one with ears cut: deaf). He was not strong. He had no support. He
did not get anything to eat. His throat, lips and palate were parched.
He underwent torture thus for more than ten thousand years according
to divine reckoning. He did not see anyone ready to save him. He
continued to be devoid of food. He was extremely miserable.
Thinking about what he had done he wandered like one inebriated
and mad. Wandering here and there and oppressed with hunger, that
evil spirit of deluded intellect did not attain peace and happiness.
32-34. Wind that blew against that spirit that had no control over
itself, was like fire (scorching) his limbs. Water appeared (extremely
hot) like fire of universal destruction. Fruits, flowers etc. appeared like
poison. This Karmatha (‘one who valued Karma very much’) did not
attain happiness anywhere. He was excessively dejected in mind.
When these things were like this in that forest devoid of people, in
that spot devoid of (divine) tales and good men, in the place which he
had resorted to, Satyanistha came then to the city of PaithinasT.'
35-36. Going along the path he saw Chinnakarna who was subjected
to a great deal of suffering. On seeing him crying due to hunger and
appearing sick and depressed causing the melting of his heart, he spoke
to him, “Do not be afraid”. Then the great sage said: “Who are you?
Why have you come to this plight? You will have no more suffering.”
37-42. On being consoled by him thus Chinnakarna who was exceed-1

1. Paithan in Aurangabad Distt. of Maharashtra.


n.vii. 14.43-50 69

ingly agitated said thus: “I am Taponistha, an ascetic and disciple of


Durvasas. I was a resident of the holy spot Brahme£vara strictly de­
voted to Karma. I was foolishly pertinacious. Since I was afraid of
break in my performance of rituals out of foolishness, О sage, the
meritorious story of Visnu that was being expounded by good men was
not at all honoured by me, foolish that I was. The story that destroys
Karma was not expounded to the listeners. As a result of the great
fructification of those Karmas I met with death. I became a Pi€aca,
Chinnakarna by name. I am agitated and bewildered due to misery. I
do not find any saviour to redeem me from this misery somehow. Fortunately
I have been seen by you. I have become free from sins. Today deities
are pleased with me. The preceptors, good men and Hari too are de­
lighted with me today, since I met you.’*
43-48a. He then fell at his feet on the ground crying “Save me, save
me.” Then Satyanistha of great fame was overwhelmed with pity. With
his extremely pleasing and blissful pair of arms the great sage raised
him up. Then water was ceremoniously sipped and the excellent merit
that he had acquired in the course of a Muhurta by listening to the
greatness of the month of Vai£akha was given to him. As a result of
the power of that merit all his inauspiciousness was destroyed imme­
diately. He was released from the form of Pi£aca. He assumed a divine
body. He got into a divine aerial chariot. After bowing down to that
great sage, he took leave of him and circumambulated him. Then he
went to the great region of Visnu.
Thereafter, the intelligent Satyanistha went to the city of PaithinasT
repeatedly thinking about the efficacy of listening to the greatness (of
the Vai€akha rites).

Srutadeva said:
48b-50. Where there is the meritorious and splendid story of Visnu
that dispels the impurities of the world, all the holy spots and Tirthas
of diverse kinds are present there. Where the holy river of the meri­
torious and splendid story of Visnu flows, salvation is within the reach
of the people staying in that land. There is no doubt about it.
70 SkandaPurana

CHAPTER FIFTEEN

Story of a Ruler of Pahcaladesa

Srutadeva said:
1-5. Listen further, О king, to the sin-destroying supreme efficacy
of the month of Vai£akha, a great favourite of Visnu.
Formerly in the land of Pancala, there was a king named PuruyaSas.'
He was son of Bhiiriya£as who was intelligent and righteous.
When his father passed away, О king, he was installed in the king­
dom. He was eager to maintain Dharma. He was endowed with the
qualities of heroism and liberal-mindedness. He was an expert in the
science of archery. The highly intelligent king ruled the entire earth
through his pious and righteous activities.
Since he had not offered water (to the needy) in the previous birth,
he had incurred a great fault.12 О sinless one, after a lapse of some
time, he suffered a great loss of wealth. Horses and elephants met with
death after being afflicted with a fatal disease.
6. A great famine of unprecedented fury swept the land and the
entire realm was denuded of its population. The kingdom and treasury
became empty like a wood-apple (tree) eaten up by an elephant.
7-9. On coming to know that the king had become weak and bereft
of strong army, treasury and (stable) kingdom, hundreds of other kings, the
enemies of this king, thought that that was the proper time to defeat him.
They came in and conquered the overlord of Pancala land in battle.
Defeated by them, the king resorted to mountain caves along with
his wife $ikhinl and accompanied by nurses and other attendants.
10-14. Others could not know his whereabouts. He was agitated on
account of various kinds of miseries. Remaining concealed thus, he
spent fifty-three years.
The king pondered over the why and wherefore (of his condition) on
many occasions. (He thought thus:)
T am pure by birth and activity. I am engaged in the welfare of my
parents. I am a sincere devotee of my preceptors. I am endowed with

1. Though no such king is traced in Puranic dynasties that ruled Paficala, the
object of the author is to emphasize the efficacy of VaiSakha-Vrata. Pancala is
modem Rohilkhand (De 145).
2. Arrangement for distribution or supply of cool water in the hot month of
VaiSakha is a part of VaiSakha-Vrata. The king failed to make it in his previous
birth. Hence he met with calamities mentioned in vv 5-10.
n.vii. 15.15-25 71

chivalry and courtesy. 1 am a benefactor of Brahmanas. 1 am interested


in Dharma. I am kind and considerate towards all living beings. 1 am
a devotee of Devas and have conquered the sense-organs. Neither my
brother nor my son nor my friends are my well-wishers now, although
I am of noble birth and they are famous for their kindness and man­
liness. Why? For what Karma has poverty overtaken me? It gives me
much misery. Why have I suffered defeat? What is the reason for my
stay in the forest?’
15-19. Worried by these thoughts, the king remembered his precep­
tors. He was utterly dejected. Two excellent sages named Yaja and
Upayajaka who were omniscient, highly intelligent, eminent sages and
who were invited by the king, came there. On seeing them the lord of
Pancala got up promptly. With great devotion, he bent down his head.
He had been excessively afflicted on account of his exile. He was
devoid of all royal insignia. His whereabouts were not known to any­
one. He stood silent for a short while and fell on the ground at their
feet. With their hands they raised him up and wiped off the tears from
his eyes. With the splendid materials available in the forest he duly
worshipped them. Bowing down with humility he asked those Brahmanas
when they were comfortably seated:
20-23. “O ye Brahmanas, tell me the cause of my misery. I was lord
of the earth. I am pure by birth and activity. I am a favourite of the
manes and Devas. 1 am afraid of sins. I am compassionate. I am a
devotee of my preceptors. Still, why am I beset with poverty, loss of
treasury and humiliation at the hands of my enemies? What is the
reason for my exile in the forest? What is the reason for my loneliness?
I have no son. I have no brother. I have no well-wishers. 1 have no
friends: Why was there a famine in the splendid land protected and
administered by me? Explain this in detail. Tell me the reasons, О
eminent sages.”
24. On being asked thus by the king who was extremely miser­
able, those noble-souled excellent sages meditated for a short while
and then replied:

Yaja and Upayajaka said:


25. Listen, О king. We shall tell you the cause of your misery. In
all the previous ten births you were a highly sinful hunter.1
1. Karmav&da is a basic belief in Hinduism (Buddhism & Jainism as well).
The circumstances in this birth are explained as a result of acts in previous births.
Such stories are found in Pali and ArdhamagadhI also (e.g. Jataka Tales).
72 SkandaPurana

26. You were ruthless and always engaged in violently injuring


all the people in the world. You did not perform even the slightest and
smallest of holy rites at all. You had no control over the sense-organs
or the mind.
27. Your tongue did not utter the names of Visnu in any way. Your
mind did not remember the lotus-like pair of feet of Govinda.
28. You never bowed down your head to the Supreme Atman. Like
this, О king, nine of your births passed by, when you continued to be
vicious.
29. In the tenth birth you were a hunter on the Sahya mountain.
You were pitiless towards all the people in the world. You were like
the god of Death unto all men.
30. You were devoid of mercy. You lived by means of your weap­
ons. You were always after violence and harmful activities. You had
no good qualities at all. You were knavish and accompanied by your
wife you harassed wayfarers.
31-36. You were like a man-eating Raksasa to the subjects belong­
ing to Gauda land.1Thus years rolled by in your ignorance of what was
conducive to your own welfare.
Since you had been mercilessly killing infants, children, animals
and birds and were very vicious, no son was born to you in this birth.
Since you had been treacherous previously, you have no uterine broth­
ers. Since you had been harassing wayfarers, you are now devoid of
friendly people. Since you had been disrespecting and reproaching
good people, you have now been defeated by enemies. Poverty has
beset you and your abode (family) on account of the sinful defect of
having never given (anything to anyone). Since you had always caused
agony and heart-bum (to others), you have had to undergo the unbear­
able sufferings of exile. Since you had displeased all, a misery exceed­
ingly impossible to bear has beset you now. Your (present) inability to
take food is also due to the same reason. Formerly you were very cruel
in all your activities. Hence, О highly intelligent one, you have been
deprived of your kingdom in the course of this birth.
37-42.1 shall tell reasons also for your birth in a good and noble
family.
When you were an inhabitant of the Gauda land during your ulti­

1. The association of the Sahya mountain with Gaudade€a (vide vv 37-42 also)
can be explained if we accept a Southern Gautja on the bank of I£fiveri mentioned
in Padma Purdna (De 63).
Evii. 15.43-55 73

mate birth as a hunter, you engaged in your own job of ruthless (killing
of everyone) in the forest full of thorns. You stood on the path as the
merciless annihilator of all living beings.
At that time two rich and brilliant VaiSyas came that way. They
were afflicted with heat. A sage named Karsana who had mastered the
Vedas and the Vedahgas also had come. He had matted hair and was
clad in bark garments. The meritorious sage had the sole possession
of a waterpot. On seeing these, you took up your bow and stood there
obstructing their path. You rushed at the Vai£yas and pierced their
bodies with your arrows. You killed one of them and seized all his cash
and other possessions. When you attempted to kill the other one, he
hurriedly fled out of fear. He hid the cash and the valuable possessions
in a hedge. Utterly frightened, he tried to save his life.
43-5la. Afraid that he would be killed by the hunter, the sage Karsana
hurriedly ran in the hot sun. He was oppressed by heat and thirst. He
perspired profusely and then swooned. He was only very slightly con­
scious. The Vai£ya, eager to save his life, left the sage and fled.
You pursued them. But on seeing the Brahmana unconscious on the
path you wanted to ask him, "Where are the valuable possessions kept
hidden? How far has the merchant gone?” In order to ask him about
this, you attempted to revive the Brahmana who was too much tired.
You blew into his ears and put powdered ginger to make him recollect
properly. You wiped his eyes with the water from the puddle full of
mud and worms. As he lay tired, you fanned his face with leaves. After
making the sage conscious, you felt mentally relieved and spoke to
him:
"Do not be afraid or suspicious of me in this forest, because I hold
weapons. One who is poor and without any possessions is happy in this
world. Wherefore need you be afraid so much? Nothing will I gain from
an old broken pot. О learned one, say only this much. Where has that
merchant fled? In which hedge is the valuable possession hidden by
him as he fled hurriedly. 1 will kill you if you tell a He.”

Karsana said:
5lb-55. The wealth is hidden in (this) hedge. He fled by this path.

So said he out of fear and desire to save his life, when he was so
questioned. (You told the Brahmana,) "Go happily along this path, О
Brahmana. You need not be afraid of me at all. A little farther from
here, there is excellent water in a lake. Drink that pure water and be
74 Skanda Purana

relieved of your fatigue. Then go to the village. Now itself royal


officials will be coming along this path. They will be engaged in tracing
my footsteps after hearing the shrieks and shouts of the prominent
merchant. It is not possible for me to accompany you, О Brahmana,
although you are oppressed by thirst. Fan yourself with this leaf. The
heat will subside a little.”
56-57. You went away into the forest again after giving him the
Palana (leaf-fan?) (Butea frondoza). This was your meritorious deed
during the month of Vai€akha with oppressive heat, though the same
was performed for the sake of your own selfish ends. It resulted in
saving the sage on the way. By the power of this merit you took birth
in the highly meritorious and big royal family.
58-63. If you wish for happiness, kingdom, wealth, foodgrains and
other riches, heavenly pleasures, salvation, Sayujya with Hari or the
region of Hari, perform the holy rites prescribed for the month of Vaigakha.
You will obtain all sorts of happiness. This is the month named Vai$akha.
This is the third day called Aksaya (i.e. Aksaya-Trtlya).
Fetch a cow that has delivered a calf only and give it to a Brahmana
who is undergoing sufferings. Thereby your treasury will become filled
up. Donate a bed; you will gain happiness. Make the gift of an um­
brella; you will get back your empire. Take the holy bath in accor­
dance with the injunctions. Similarly worship Madhava. Get an excel­
lent idol made and give it away. Thereby you will be victorious. If, О
king, you desire to have sons having good qualities on a par with those
of yours, make a gift of Prapas (free-water booths) for the sake of the
welfare of all living beings. Scrupulously perform all these holy rites
prescribed for the month of Vai£akha.
64-68a. Thereby all the worlds will be under your control. There is
no doubt about it.
If you perform these holy rites with a mind free from desires, in the
meritorious month of Vai$akha, for the gratification of the Slayer of
Madhu, Visnu will become visible to you as your mind is devoid of
impurities.
The seers mentioned in the Puranas know that everlasting worlds
will be attained by those people who have performed all these excel­
lent holy rites. All this has been recounted to you as we have seen and
heard.

After saying this the Brahmana priests Yaja and Upayajaka took
leave of him and went away the way they came.
ILvii.l5.68b-85 75

68b-70. Then the king of great prowess, enlightened by his precep­


tors, performed all the Vai£akha rites with great faith. He worshipped
the Slayer of Madhu in the manner he had been advised.
Thereupon he regained his power. Surrounded by all his kinsmen and
accompanied by the survivors of the army, he reached the city of Pancala.
71. His old enemies, the kings (of neighbouring realms), heard
that this king had re-entered his city. Therefore, they haughtily came
(to attack him).
72. A battle ensued between those kings and the king of Pancala.
That great warrior single-handedly conquered all the mighty kings.
73. When those kings fled along the paths leading to different
realms, this powerful king confiscated the treasuries, horses and el­
ephants of those kings.
74-76. He brought to the city one hundred millions of horses, thirty
millions of elephants, one hundred millions of chariots and ten thou­
sand camels as well as three hundred thousand donkeys. Due to the
greatness of the Vaisakha rites all the kings were suddenly turned into
payers of taxes. They were crushed under his feet and their plans were
smashed and frustrated. There was unprecedented and matchless pros­
perity in the Pancala land.
77. He held sway over all the realms brought under a single um­
brella. With the favour of the Slayer of Madhu he begot five sons
endowed with the qualities of heroism and liberal-mindedness.
78. They were DhrstakTrti, Dhrstaketu, Dhrstadyumna, Vijaya and
Citraketu. They were all on a par with Karttikeya.
79. The subjects who were virtuously protected became lovingly
attached to him. By the efficacy of Vaisakha, he instantaneously gained
the credence of all.
80. Again the lord of Pancalanagara performed those holy rites
with a mind free from any desire whatsoever, for the gratification of
the Slayer of Madhu.
81. Delighted with this holy rite, Lord Madhusudana appeared before
him on the Aksaya TrtTya day.
82. On seeing Acyuta, the Supreme Atman, Narayana with four
arms holding the conch, discus, iron club etc. he became awe-struck.
83-85. The Lord clad in yellow robes was adorned with garlands of
sylvan flowers. He was seated on Garuda along with all his followers
as well as Goddess LaksmT.
On seeing the unbearable refulgence, he immediately closed his
eyes. He began to dance with delight. He moved about and whirled like
76 Skanda Purana

a mad and inebriate man. All his limbs were marked with horripilation.
Tears welled up in his eyes. He prostrated on the ground. With palms
joined in reverence he eulogized with great devotion.

CHAPTER SIXTEEN

The Pahcala King Attains Sayujya

Srutadeva said:
1-3. With his mind flooded with the delight at his vision, the king
got up immediately and bowed down his head. With his excited eyes
he looked at the Supreme Lord of the worlds, the immanent soul of the
universe, for a long time. He washed his feet and held that water on
his head. Indeed the river that arises from his feet sanctifies the entire
universe including Brahma. He worshipped the Lord with plenty of
materials, very costly and invaluable garments, ornaments and unguents,
garlands, incense, lights and nectar-like foodstuffs etc. He dedicated
unto the Lord his entire person, limbs, wealth and his very soul. He
eulogized Visnu, the ancient Purusa, Narayana, devoid of Gunas, one
without a second:
4. “ I salute the unsullied overlord of the makers of the universe,1
the supreme one, saluted by the Lotus-born Lord and others. I salute
the overlord of the creators of the universe, whose Maya has deluded
excellent men conversant with reality.
5. Wonderful indeed is the activity of the Lord. Stupid ones be­
come deluded in the Gunas activized by the Maya. The one and only
Lord devoid of desires and ambition creates by himself this (visible
universe) in diverse forms, protects it and consumes it. He is not
defiled thereby.
6-7. You are one who have completely realized your desires. Yet,
for the sake of the acquisition of happiness by Devas and misery by
all the Asuras (you do endeavour). In that connection, at the proper

l. The eulogy of Visnu is a blend of Upani$adic and Puranic concepts of the


deity and the influence of MSyav&da. The outpourings of the heart of a sincere
Bhakta (devotee) in this prayer are touching.
H.vii.16.8-19 77

time, you adopt Sattva Guna for the sake of protecting your own people;
for the sake of curbing the rogues and knaves you adopt Tamoguna and
for the sake of binding the Raksasas you adopt Rajoguna, О Cosmic-
formed One, devoid of Gunas. Fortunately, your foot is destructive of
the sins of those who bow down. When it is held in the heart by means
of well-practised and (highly advanced) mature Yogic exercises, it
becomes the abode of TTrthas.
8-10. Those who have matured well by means of devotion their
emotional existence as individual souls, have attained salvation merely
by remembering your feet.
But I am fettered by the noose of the deadly black serpent called
worldly existence accompanied by the repeatedly recurring births, old
age and other miseries. I wander from one species of beings to another
because I have forgotten your feet. My yearning (for worldly pleasures)
increases like that of a mouse on seeing the edible stuff (placed in
front of it for trapping it). Certainly no charitable gift has been given
by me; nor your story has been heard. No honourable men of good
disposition have ever been served by me. Therefore my vast fortune
and glory was destroyed by enemies and I entered the forest. Recol­
lecting my enormous sins, I remembered my preceptors. When they
were remembered they approached me. They are the kinsmen of the
distressed ones. They addressed me (and consoled me).
11. They enlightened me in the splendid Vaigakha rites laid down
in the &rutis. They are the causes of attaining the aims of life such as
heavenly pleasures, salvation etc. Induced by them I have performed
all the holy rites pertaining to the month of Vai€akha conducive to
auspiciousness.
12-14. Hence, I have been enormously favoured. There have come
all these excellent riches. Neither fire, nor the sun, nor the moon and
the stars, nor the earth, nor water, nor ether, nor wind, neither speech
nor mind (are like you). On being served they remove sin after a long
time. Learned ones destroy (sins) when they are served only for a short
while. But you consider these learned men Bhavins (men engrossed in
worldly existence), though they have mostly eschewed their desires
and kept their minds fixed in your feet.
Obeisance to the independent one of wonderfully variegated activi­
ties. Obeisance to the greatest one blessing the noble ones. Deluded
by your Maya, I have my vision riveted to meaningless objects. Hence
I wander among the Gunas in the form of wives and wealth.
15-19.1 do so in spite of the fact that your lotus-like feet are the
78 SkandaPurana

destroyer of the root cause, Avidya. You are the dispeller of all the
sins and are devoid of impurities. With a desire for happiness I am
possessed of ‘Му-ness* with respect to sons and wives who are but the
causes of calamities.
A person engrossed in worldly pursuits with increased thirst and
desire for the same, does not get peaceful sleep or welfare. Though I
have been bom a king, which is rare, though you are the cause of the
attainment of all aims of life involving effort, I do not worship your
lotus-like feet because my mind is deluded and I am covetous of worldly
pleasures. I perform my duties firmly and devotedly, but yearning for
pleasures does increase proportionately.
‘I shall become again (a more prosperous one); I shall today become
one’—such and hundreds of similar thoughts make my mind waver. At
that time, О Lord, let there be your mercy on the individual soul. О
Lord of cosmic form, your power is limitless.
By your mercy there shall be the association of great men whereby
the ocean of worldly existence becomes a small pit made by the hoofs
of cows. Once there is the association with good people, О Lord, the
mind is inclined towards you, the lord and master.
20. I consider, the removal of the entire kingdom (from my pos­
session) has become a blessing to me, got easily from you because you
are being approached by Brahma, Suras and Asuras and hosts of honour­
able and saintly men, when they cease to have thirst and yearning (for
worldly pleasures).
21. Hereafter, I shall remember only Acyuta with eagerness and
respect. О Lord, your lotus-like feet are destructive of worldly exist­
ence. They are worthy of being prayed to by impoverished persons.
They bestow a great deal of fortune. I do not desire anything other than
your lotus-like feet.
22. Therefore I do not desire the kingdom, the treasury, sons etc.
(I have nothing to do) with the body that falls always (i.e. is transient)
and that is the result of Rajoguna. I continuously worship those lotus­
like feet which are fit to be pondered upon and adored by sages.
23. О Lord of Devas, О abode of the universe, be pleased so that
I shall always remember your lotus-like feet. О my Lord, let my at­
tachment for these groups cease, the groups symbolized by wives, sons
and wealth.
24-26. Let my mind be directed towards the lotus-like feet of Krsna;
my speech to the narration of your divine story; these eyes of mine in
viewing your form and image; the ears in listening to your stories; and
n.vii. 16.27-35 79

the tongue towards what has been offered to you (as Naivedya)\ my
nose towards the fragrance of your lotus-like feet; my hands shall be
engaged in applying the unguents etc. frequently on your devotees as
well as in sweeping and other activities in your temple permanently.
Let my feet be engaged in going to the holy spots of the Lord as well
as to the places where the story of the Lord (is being recited). Let my
head be engaged in saluting you constantly. Let my love be directed
towards your holy story. Let my intellect be turned towards constant
thought on you.
27. Let my days dawn with your stories being sung by sages who
come to my abode. Let there not be even a moment or half of it devoid
of episodes about you, О Visnu.
28. I do not crave or yearn for the position of Brahma or that of
an emperor. I do not wish for salvation too, О Visnu. I earnestly desire
for perpetual service of your feet, which is requested for even by Sri
and Suras including Brahma, Bhava etc.”
29. On being eulogized by the king thus, the delighted lotus-eyed
Visnu spoke to that king in a voice as majestic as the sound of a cloud.

Sn Bhagavan said:
30. I know that you are the most excellent one among my ser­
vants. You are free from desires and sins. Still I shall grant you a boon
inaccessible even to Devas.
31. You will have a life of ten thousand years, О king, according
to the reckoning of Devas. You will have riches. Your devotion to me
shall be steady. In the end you will have Sayujya.
32. There is no doubt about this that I will grant worldly pleasures
and salvation to those who eulogize me with this prayer composed by
you. I shall be delighted with them.
33. This Trtlya (third lunar day) shall become well-known in the
world by the name Aksaya,1 being the day on which I am delighted
with you and have granted worldly pleasures and salvation.
34. Even ignorant men who perform such holy rites as ablution,
charitable gifts etc. naturally or under some pretext, attain my immu­
table region.
35. If men perform &raddha rites with the manes in view on the
Aksayatrtlya day, that will be conducive to infinite benefit.

1. VV 33-38 glorify the importance of Ak$aya ТрТуа day.


80 SkandaPurana

36. There is no other Tithi in the world equal or superior to this.


Even if very little is done on this day, it shall have everlasting benefit.
37. If, О excellent king, anyone gives a cow to a Brahmana
householder, worldly pleasures showering all sorts of riches as well as
salvation shall be within his reach.
38. He who gives away a bullock, destructive of all sins, shall be
liberated from death and he shall attain long life.
39. If persons perform holy rites causing pleasure to me in the
month of Vai$akha, I dispel the fear of death, birth and old age of those
persons.
40. I am not delighted with the rites of all other months as much
as with the Vai£akha rites. The month of Vai£akha is my most favourite
month.
41. Those who have forsaken all other holy rites and those who
are devoid of the vow of celibacy, attain my immutable region, if only
they are engaged in holy rites pertaining to the month of Vaisakha.
42. Men engaged in Vaisakha rites attain that great abode which
is very difficult to attain by means of sacrifices, austerities and Sahkhya
and Yoga.
43. Just like the remembrance of my feet, О sinless one, this
month removes even a thousand sins without expiatory rites.
44-46. You became engaged in the VaiSakha rites on being advised
by your preceptors in the forest and you propitiated the Lord of the
universe. Thereby everything was obtained by you, О king. Pleased
with this holy rite I have become visible to you. You shall enjoy all
worldly pleasures, as you please. They are difficult to be obtained even
by Devas.

After having granted boons to him thus, Janardana, the Lord of Devas,
vanished there itself even as all were watching.
47-51. Thereupon, this excellent king became extremely surprised,
О king. Like one who has regained the wealth that was lost, he became
delighted and strong in the body. Everyday he was enlightened by great
men and his own preceptors.
He ruled the earth with his mind dwelling on him and with him as
his greatest resort. The king did not love anyone better than Vasudeva
by whose contact alone wives, ministers, sons and others became pleasing
to him. He performed all the holy rites laid down for the month of
Vaisakha again and again. As a result of the merit thereof, he was
surrounded by sons, grandsons and others. He enjoyed all his desires
ILvii. 16.52—ILvii. 17.8 81

inaccessible even to Devas. In the end he attained Sayujya with the


Lord holding the discus.
52. All those who listen to or expound this great narrative shall
be rid of sins, and then attain the greatest region of Visnu.

CHAPTER SEVENTEEN

Story o f Dantila and Kohala

Srutaklrti said:
1. О bestower of honour, I am not fully satisfied on hearing about
all holy rites of Vai£akha that yield benefit both here and hereafter.
2 There is no satiety in listening to that sacred text that con­
tains truthful instructions about Dharma and splendid and auspicious
stories of Visnu.
3. The meritorious deeds done (by me) in the previous births
have fortunately matured, because you have come to my abode in the
guise of a guest.
4. After having heard the exceedingly wonderful nectarine words
issuing from your lotus-like mouth, I am fully contented. I do not desire
the position of Brahma or even salvation.
5. Hence recount in their fullest detail those holy rites that be­
stow worldly pleasures and liberation, rites thrt are exceedingly good
and cause delight to Visnu.

6. On being told thus formerly by the king, £rutadeva of great


renown, became delighted in his mind and began to recount the aus­
picious holy rites once again.

Srutadeva said:
7. Listen, О king, I shall narrate the story that is destructive of
sins. It has the Vai$akha rites for its theme, which have been discussed
frequently by sages.
8. On the banks of Pariipa there was a certain Brahmana of great
reputation named $aftkha. When Jupiter entered the Zodiac Leo, he
came to the auspicious rivet Godavari.1
1. Hindus believe that when Jupiter enters Zodiac Leo, GaAgS visits GodSvan
and pilgrims flock to Godivari to have a bath therein, as it is a bath in GaAgi
itself.
82 Skanda Parana

9-13. After crossing the holy Bhlmarathl he reached the forest


Kantakacala. It was a place devoid of people and water. In the terrible
month of Vaigakha he became oppressed with the heat. At midday that
Brahmana sat at the foot of a tree.
Then a certain roguish hunter of evil conduct came there holding
a bow (in his hand). He was devoid of mercy for all living beings. He
was like another Kala, the annihilator.
The Brahmana who was initiated in holy rites wore rings in his ears.
He was resplendent like the sun. On seeing the Brahmana, the hunter
of fierce temperament bound him down and seized the ear-rings. He
snatched off his sandals, umbrella, rosary of beads and waterpot. Af­
terwards he released the Brahmana saying, “Go away”. Such was the
hunter of deluded intellect.
14. He went along the path full of pebbles, scorched by the sun,
rough and rugged and devoid of water. His feet were oppressed by the
heat. That Brahmana of sublimated sexual instinct walked slowly rest­
ing in places where grass grew and covered the ground.
15-19. At times he ran quickly; in some places he was relieved and
happy and in some places sadly exclaimed, Ha ! Ha ! Thus he moved
hurriedly.
On seeing the sage suffering thus when the sun was in the middle
of the sky, the hunter who was averse to piety and evil in intention
usually, pitied him to a certain extent. He thought thus, ‘I shall give
him the comfortable footwear which I had taken away in the other
forest. This has been righteously agreed by hunters that everything
belongs to him alone who snatches by force and robs it. Therefore, I
shall give away the sandals for the sake of lessening his suffering. If
any merit comes from the act, let it be mine, of this sinner. These are
two worn-out sandals on my feet. 1 have nothing to do with them.
Therefore I shall give them away/ He decided like this in his mind,
went to him immediately and gave them to the excellent Brahmana
whose feet had been scorched by the heated pebbles and who was much
distressed.
20-25. By taking muse sandals, the Brahmana attained great plea­
sure. “Be happy”, said he to the hunter and blessed him, “Indeed this
(hunter) is one whose merit has become mature, because he made this
gift in the month of Vai€akha. Visnu becomes delighted even with a
hunter of wicked nature. The happiness that I have now is as though
that of having obtained everything.”
On hearing these words, the hunter became surprised. He spoke again
ILvii. 17.26-36 83

to the Brahmana, the learned, pious expounder of Brahman, “What is


yours has been given to you. How can it be meritorious unto me? You
praise Vai€akha and say, Hari becomes delighted. О Brahmana, tell me
what is this Vai$akha? Who is Hari? What is meant by Dharma? What
is the benefit to one who is desirous of hearing, О storehouse of mercy?”
On hearing these words of the hunter, £aAkha became delighted in his
mind.
26-31. Surprised in his mind he praised Vailakha again. “ Now this
roguish hunter has given me the footwear and has acted contrarily to
his usual evil-mindedness. It is surprising. All holy rites yield their
fruit in the succeeding births, but holy rites of Vai€akha yield benefit
unto men immediately, in a moment.
The hunter is wicked in mind and evil in conduct. Fortunately by
making the gift of the sandals he has attained purity of nature.
The rite that is pleasing to Visnu, the rite that is devoid of impu­
rities, the rite that gives satisfaction, that alone, according to Manu
and others conversant with Dharma, is Dharma. Those holy rites of the
Vaisakha month are exceedingly pleasing to Visnu.
Ke£ava is not satisfied with all kinds of gifts, austerities and great
sacrifices as much as (he is) with the holy rites of the Vaisakha month.
32-36. There is no other Dharma like this among all the Dharmas.
People need not go to Gaya or to Gariga, Prayaga or Puskara. They
need not go to the holy spot of Kedara, Prabhasa or Syamantaka
(Samantapancaka1) at Kuruksetra.
Do (i.e. you need) not go to Godavari or Krsna or Setu (RameSvara)
or Marudvrdha12. The holy river of (i.e. in the form of) the divine story,
praising the greatness of Vai$akha-Dharma, is very sacred. Visnu is
immediately held within the heart of one who takes his holy bath there.
In the month of Vaisakha much is gained through (doing or offering)
very little, that cannot be achieved through charitable gifts, sacrifices
or other holy rites involving great expenses (at other times).
О hunter, this month named Madhava (Vaisakha) is conducive to the

1. The pools of K$atriya blood collected by Paragurama for the Tarpana of


his Pitrs (Mbh, Adi 2.4-5; Vana 117.9-10). It became a holy TFrtha by the blessing
of Paragurama’s Pitrs (Mbh, Adi 2.8-11). This is at Kuruksetra. According to Mbh,
Adi 2.13-15, it came to be called Samanta-Pancaka, as “ it marked the end of all
(K$atriyas) who assembled there (for war); sametanam onto yasmin tat samantam.
2. This river of the Nadi-Siikta (RV Х.Ш.75.5) is probably modem Mamwardwan,
a small rivulet in Kashmir flowing from North to South and joining Chenab near
Kashtwar (A. Stein).
84 SkandaPurana

increase of merit. In this month these sandals that destroy the distress
resulting from heat (of the sun) have been given to me by you.
37-38a. Thereby your merit of the old times has become ripe. Gen­
erally, О hunter, the delighted Lord will cause welfare. Otherwise how
can you have a splendid inclination of this type?"
38b-43a. Even as the sage was saying thus, a powerful lion urged
by god of Death furiously rushed at a tiger to kill it.1 But seeing an
elephant brought there by fate, he attempted to kill him. The lion
attacked him with his paw and stood ready (for fighting). О king, a
battle ensued between the lion and the elephant in the forest. Having
become tired, they stopped fighting and stood staring at each other.
Fortunately they heard what was said by the noble-souled sage to
the hunter. It was destructive of all sins. By listening to the greatness
of the month they became pure in heart. They were liberated from their
sins. Leaving off their bodies, they went to heaven immediately.
43b-47. They had assumed divine forms. They were smeared with
divine unguents. They were seated in a divine aerial chariot. They
were served by divine damsels. Suddenly they stood with palms joined
in reverence and head bowed down before the hunter. The great sage,
the expounder of the holy rites, was surprised on seeing them. He stood
motionless and said, “Who may you be? How did it happen that you
were bom in the lower species of animals? How did it happen that both
of you died together? With no apparent cause you were engaged in the
attempt to kill each other. Describe in detail all these things, О sinless
ones.”
On being requested thus by that sage they replied as follows:
48-53. “We are sons of Sage MataAga12 called Dantila and Kohala.
It was on account of a curse that Dantila and Kohala were reborn (as
lion etc.).
We were endowed with handsome features and prime of youth. We
were experts in all lores. Our father, the Brahmana-sage named MataAga,
an expert in the affairs of Dharma, the most excellent one among those
conversant with all holy rites, spoke to us: ‘O my sons, in the month
of Vai£akha which is a great favourite of Madhusudana, erect (free)
water-booths on the way, fan the people for a while, make shades on
the way, give abundant food and cool water, take holy bath in the

1. The following story illustrates the beneficial effect of hearing the descrip­
tion of Vai&akha-dhartnas.
2. This Sage MataAga is different from that mentioned in VR, the guru of
Sabari or the ones mentioned in Mbh, Vana 84.101 or Anuidsaha, Ch. 27.
n.vii. 17.54-67 85

morning and worship the Lord. Listen to the story (of the Lord) too
regularly, whereby the bondage (of Samsara) will cease.'
Thus we were advised by means of various words of advice like
these. Still we were vicious. I, Dantila, became angry. This one named
Kohala became more furious than I and also haughty.
54-58. Our father who was very devoted to Dharma became angry
and cursed us.
He followed this dictum: One should abandon immediately the son
who is averse to righteousness, the wife who speaks displeasingly and
the king who is averse to Vedic learning and Brahmanas; otherwise he
will fall.1Out of courteousness or of covetousness for money, those
who associate with them fall into hell and remain there for a period
of fourteen Indras (a Manvantara). Therefore he cursed us who were
overwhelmed with haughtiness and anger.
He said: This Dantila who has become angry and is carried away
by fury shall be born as a lion. The haughty Kohala shall be a big
elephant in rut.' We repented afterwards and requested for liberation.
On being entreated by us, our father granted us redemption from the
curse.
59-65. ‘You will be bom in the lower species. After a lapse of some
time you will meet together and want to kill each other. At that very
time conversation between a hunter and (sage) £ahkha will reach your
ears. Within a moment you will be liberated. After your redemption,
after having assumed your previous forms, О my sons, come back to
me and stay with me. My words will not be otherwise.'
Thus we, those two wicked ones, were cursed by our father. We
were reborn as lower animals, met together fortunately, became desir­
ous of slaying each other and heard your conversation that was excel­
lent and auspicious. Thereby we were immediately liberated."
Thus they recounted everything, bowed down to the great sage and
took leave of him. On being permitted by him, they went to their fa­
ther. Pointing this out, the sage, the storehouse of mercy, said to the
hunter:
66. “See the great benefit of listening to the greatness of Vaigakha.
By listening to it for a short while, liberation came within their reach."
67. While the sage was speaking thus, the hunter laid down his
arms before the sage who was a storehouse of mercy, of excellent

1. A traditional Subh2$ita. A number of Subh2$itas were orally handed down


and are found in all Purirtas. The sources of these stray verses are not traceable.
86 SkandaPurana

intellect, devoid of desires, of very pure nature and the sole receptacle
of merit.

CHAPTER EIGHTEEN

Previous Birth of the Hunter

The hunter said:


1-4. I have been blessed by you, О sage, (though) I am a sinner and
very wicked-minded. Indeed great men are compassionate and good by
nature. Where am I, a hunter of ignoble birth? Where is the mind such
as this (of yours)? (There is such a great difference between us!) I
value only your excellent blessings.
0 pious Sir, I am worthy of being guided and instructed by you. О
bestower of honour, I am a deserving person to receive your mercy.
1 should be blessed. I am your son. Be merciful, О storehouse of
mercy, so that I will no longer have this vicious inclination that causes
harmful and adverse results. By association with good people no one
ever experiences any misery anywhere.
5. Hence, О Brahmana, enlighten me with such wise sayings as
are destructive of sins, whereby those who are desirous of salvation
certainly cross the ocean of worldly existence.
6. In the case of honourable and pious men of impartial mind,
endowed with kindness and compassion for all living beings, no one is
lowly and vulgar or high and excellent; no one is one’s own or a stranger.
7-8. Whoever thinks with mental concentration and enquires about
(the means of) mental purity and whoever repents even though he may
be contaminated by all defects, and though he be deprived of all holy
rites, whenever he enquires about this of his preceptors, they immedi­
ately impart to him the knowledge that certainly liberates one from the
worldly existence.
9. Just as Ganga is the cause of destruction of sins of men, so
also pious and noble persons are proclaimed as the natural redeemers
of the stupid and dull-witted people.
10* Do not hesitate in the matter of enlightening me, О compas­
sionate one, favourably inclined towards your devotees, as I have a
D.vii.18.11-24а 87

desire to hear (serve), have bowed down to you and have become pure
due to the contact with you.

11. On hearing these words of the hunter, the sage became sur­
prised in his mind once again. After exclaiming “Excellent ! Excel­
lent !” he spoke of these holy rites.

Sahkha said:
12. If you wish for welfare, О hunter, perform these holy rites in
the month of Vai€akha. They are excellent and cause delight to Visnu.
They liberate the devotees from the ocean of worldly existence.
13-15a. A fierce heat oppresses us here. There is neither shade nor
water here. So we shall go to some other place where there is plenty
of shade. After drinking water I shall resort to the shade. There I shall
describe unto you the greatness (of the holy rites) destructive of sins.
I shall recount the greatness of the month of Vai£akha that pertains to
Visnu. I shall recount it in the manner as has been heard and seen (by
me).

15b-17. On being told thus by the sage, the hunter said with palms
joined in reverence: “A little away from here, there is water in an
excellent lake. There are wood-apple trees there fully laden with fruit.
We shall go there. There is no doubt about this that you will be sat­
isfied.”
On being directed thus by the hunter, the sage went along with him.
18-24a. After going a little distance from there he saw the excellent
lake. It was full of cranes and Karandava ducks. It was rendered beau­
tiful by ruddy geese. There were swans, Sarasa ducks, storks etc. all
round rendering it very splendid. Bamboo-reeds with holes therein produced
a loud and sweet musical note along with the humming of bees.
It was very charming with tortoises, crocodiles, fish etc. swimming
about. It was a large lake abounding in lilies, blue lotuses, red lotuses,
white lotuses etc.
There were hundred-petalled lotuses of the Kokanada variety all
round, beautifying the lake splendidly. The sweet chirping sounds of
the birds reverberated. The lake was one that afforded the pleasure of
a festival unto the eyes.
There were hedges of bamboo reeds and many trees adorning the
banks. It was rendered beautiful by various trees such as banyan trees,
Karanja, NTpa, tamarind, margosa, Plaksa, Priyala, Campaka, Bakula,
88 SkandaPurana

Punnaga, Tumbara, Kapittha, Amalaka (Emblic Myrobalan), NTspesana


and Jambu (rose apple tree) all round.
24b-29a. There were many types of animals all round such as wild
elephant, deer, boar, buffalo etc. There were hares, porcupines, blue
oxen etc. beautifying the place. There were rhinoceroses, musk deer,
antelopes etc., tigers, lions, wolves, the fabulous eight-footed Sarabhas
that killed donkeys, CamarT deer, etc. adorning the forest all round.
There were monkeys leaping from branch to branch quickly. The
place was rendered fearful by (wild) cats and bears as well as Ruru
deer. There were the sounds of crickets, the ‘Kreh’ sounds of great
harshness as well as the sounds of bamboo reeds. Agitated by violent
gusts of winds, the trees produced great rustling sounds.
The tiger among sages, who was much oppressed by thirst, saw the
lake of great excellence like this as pointed out by the hunter.
29b-34. He took his midday bath in this fascinating lake and wore
his clothes once again. Then he performed religious rites prescribed for
midday. After performing the worship of the Lord, he eagerly ate the
very tasty wood-apple and other fruits brought by the hunter that dis­
pelled his fatigue.
Thereafter, he seated himself comfortably and asked the hunter who
was interested in Dharma: “O (hunter) interested in Dharma, what is
it that has to be said by me at the outset to you now? There are many
holy rites of several and separate kinds. Among them those holy rites
that are specially laid down for the month of Vai$akha, yield great
benefits though they are subtle. They bestow benefits on all living
beings both here and hereafter. What you have in your mind as worthy
of being asked, ask it at the outset itself’.
On being told thus by that sage, the hunter said with palms joined
in reverence:

The hunter said:


3S-36. What was that Karma as a result of which (I got) this birth
as a hunter full of Tamoguna? What is the reason for such an incli­
nation as this? How did I come into contact with (you) the noble-
souled one? Relate this as well as other things, О holy lord, if you
consider me worthy of the same.

On being requested thus, the great sage named £ahkha spoke once
again in a majestic tone like that of a cloud. There was smile on his
lotus-like face.
n.vii. 18.37-55 89

Sahkha said:
37-41. Formerly you were a Brahmana named Staihba in the city of
$akala (modern Sialkote, Panjab). You had mastered the Vedas and
were very brilliant. You were born of Srivatsa Gotra. You had a pros­
titute as your beloved. On account of the fault of associating with herf
you had forsaken your daily rites. You returned home like a £udra. You
were devoid of good conduct. You were vicious with all holy rites cast
off.
You had a Brahmana wife named KantimatT. That beautiful lady
served you along with that prostitute (though) you were a base Brahmana.
In order to please you, she washed the feet of both of you. She obeyed
the words of both of you. She slept below on the ground allowing both
of you to sleep (on the cot).
42-48a. Though she was prevented by that prostitute (your Brahmana
wife) adhered to her chaste activities. Serving her husband and the
prostitute together, she continued to be miserable on the earth. A great
deal of time elapsed thus.
One day the husband consumed the Masa pulse along with radish.
Following the custom of $udras, he ate the Nispava pulse mixed with
gingelly seeds. Having consumed those unwholesome things, he suf­
fered from vomiting and diarrhoea.
On account of the unwholesomeness of the food, he became a prey
to the dreadful disease of fistula of anus. On account of that ailment
it appeared as though he was being burned day and night.
As long as there was ample wealth in the house, the prostitute con­
tinued to stay there, but having deprived him of his wealth, she no
longer stayed in his abode. The terrible, merciless courtesan went away
and stayed with someone else. Afflicted very much with the ailment,
with his mind agitated on account of the pain, he spoke to his wife
cryingly in a pitiable tone:
48b-51. “Protect me, О gentle lady, ruthless though I was due to my
attachment to a prostitute. О holy and beautiful lady, I have not at all
helped you so far. О gentle lady, that despicable sinner who does not
honour his wife who bows down to him, shall become a eunuch in the
course of fifteen births. О highly fortunate lady, day and night I am
censured by honourable and virtuous men. Since I have disrespected a
chaste lady like you, I will be reborn of a sinful womb. I bum within
myself with the anger arising from the dishonour done to you.”
52-55. When her husband said thus, she spoke these words with palms
joined in reverence:
90 SkandaPuram

“You need not feel any wretchedness or shame, О my husband, on


account of me. I do not entertain any anger towards you, wherjby, you
say, you bum within yourself. Sins committed previously turn into mis­
eries. A chaste lady or man who brooks the same is the most excellent
one. I am (must have been) a sinful woman. If I reap the fruit of sin
committed by me in the previous birth, I feel no remorse or sorrow
thereby.”
Saying thus she rendered all help to her husband.
56. The lady of excellent complexion brought money from her
father and other kinsmen (in order to help him). She considered her
husband (on a par with) the Lord (Visnu) who resides in the Milk Ocean.
57. By day as well as by night, she regularly washed the urine and
excreta of her husband. With her nails, she pulled out slowly the worms
(from the ulcer).
58. Neither at night nor during the day did the fair-complexioned
lady get a wink of sleep. Sad and dejected on account of the misery
of her husband, she said thus:
59-63. “May Devas and Manes who are well-known protect my
husband. Let them absolve my husband of sins and free him from sick­
ness. For the sake of the health of my husband, I shall offer to Candika
excellent and well-cooked food mixed with blood and flesh along with
(products of) buffalo-milk. 1 shall get Modaka sweets prepared for the
noble-souled VighneSa (GaneSa). I shall observe ten fasts on Saturdays.
I will not take sweet things. I will not use ghee. I will not smear oil
over my body, Undoubtedly I will remain thus. Let this husband of
mine live for a hundred years free from ailments.”
That gentle lady said like this everyday as it rolled by.
64. Then a noble-souled sage named Devala came to his abode in
the evening on a day in the month of VaiSakha. He was distressed due
to heat.
65. At that time your wife said: “The physician has come to our
house. Therefore, the sickness will be removed. I shall be hospitable
to him.”
66. Knowing that you were averse to pious activities, she tricked
you and got him in under the pretext that he was a physician. Washing
the feet of the sage, she sprinkled the water on your head.
67. Encouraged by you, she gave sweet drink to that noble-souled
one, distressed with heat in the evening. It dispelled all the heat.
68. In the morning, when the sun arose, the sage went back on his
way. Then within a short while you had an attack of Sannipata (a
H.vii. 18.69-76 91

combined derangement of all the humours of the body).


69-74. When she was administering the three pungent substances
(ginger, black pepper and long pepper), the husband bit off her finger.
The two teeth (upper and lower ones) suddenly came close together.
The tender finger remained within the mouth of the husband. After
biting the finger off, the husband died on the excellent bed thinking
about the beautiful courtesan. On coming to know that her husband was
dead, your wife KantimatT sold her bangles and bought fuel. The chaste
lady made up a funeral pyre thereby, keeping (the dead body of) her
husband in the middle. She embraced him with her hands, entwined the
feet with his feet, placed her face against his face, kept her chest close
to his chest and placed her pudenda over his. Thus placing herself on
his body, that auspicious lady burned the sick body of her husband
along with that of hers in the burning fire.1
75. Embracing her husband, she forsook her body and went to the
world of Murari, due to the merit of giving sweet drink in this month
of Vai£akha, as well as that of washing the feet (of a sage). She at­
tained the world worthy of being attained by Yogins.
76. You got rid of all your sins, but since you were engrossed in
the thought of a courtesan at the time of death, you attained the birth
as a hunter with a terrible form. You became interested in violence.
You always caused heart-burn (to others).

1. The self-immolation of the widow along with the dead body of the husband
described here, is called Satl. This was a respectable practice in higher castes
as recorded in various mediaeval inscriptions. Curiously enough the practice has
no Vedic sanction. The two Mantras, RV X. 18.8 and AV XVI1I.3.1, mention some
pre-Vedic custom when the widow, as a formality, used to lie by the side of the
deceased husband on the funeral pyre and return to "life". The first ‘historical’
reference to Satl, viz. queen Madri's self-immolation with king Pandu in Mbh.
Adi 116.31 is nullified by Mbh, Adi 118.21-22 which states that the dead bodies
of Pandu and Madri were brought to Hastinapura and were given a royal funeral
on the same pyre. How Madri died is a matter of anybody’s conjecture. Her
inability to fulfil Pandu’s last desire for sexual intercourse must have broken the
heart of the pious lady. Old Grhya Sutras, and old Smrtis like Manu and Yajnavalkya
do not support Satl. In the dark middle age of India (to which SkP belongs) the
so-called Dharma£astra writers even distorted older texts to support widow-burn­
ing. Thus Kamalakara Bhatta in Nirnaya Sindhu quotes an imaginary Manu’s
authority to advocate widow-burning as an alternative to life-long celibacy of a
widow as follows:
brahmacaryam cared vd 'pi, provided vd hutdfanam /
On the contrary Medhatithi (9th cent. CE), the famous commentator of Manusmfti,
on Manu V.I56 plainly states that ‘Dying after the husband is against the Vedas'
{Sruti-virodho ’yam).
92 SkandaPurana

77-78. Permission was given by you for the gift of the sweet drink
in the month of Vai£akha, О (hunter) with a chaste wife. Hence when
you were bom as a hunter, you had the good inclination of asking about
holy rites that cause all happiness. You got your head sprinkled with
the water with which the feet of the sage were washed. It was con­
ducive to the destruction of all sins. Therefore, you had the opportunity
of contacting me in this forest now, and due to this you will have
further riches etc.
79. Thus whatever was done by you in the previous birth has been
recounted to you. Your meritorious and sinful Karmas have been seen
by me through divine vision.
80. Whatever you wish to hear, I shall recount unto you even if
it be a secret. Your mind has become purified, О highly intelligent one.
Hail unto you!

CHAPTER NINETEEN

The Curse of Wind-god

The hunter said:


1-3. Earlier this was said by you that the splendid holy rites of the
Lord should be performed with Visnu in view, and that the Vai€akha
rites are also among them. О Brahmana, of what nature is that Visnu?
What is (his) characteristic feature? What is the proof of his exist­
ence? By whom can this great Lord be known? Of what nature are the
holy rites of Visnu? By which (rite) is Hari pleased? О highly intel­
ligent Brahmana, explain this to me, your servant.

4. On being asked by the Vyadha (hunter) thus, the Brahmana


spoke once again after bowing down to Narayana, the Lord of the worlds,
free from ailments.

Sankha said:
5. Listen, О hunter, I shall describe the form of Visnu. It is
spotless (devoid of sins). It cannot be (adequately) comprehended by
Brahma and others and by sages of pure, sanctified souls.
6. The Lord of all has been described as one with full powers and
one full of good qualities. The Lord whose form consists qf existence.
n.vii.19.7-18 93

knowledge and bliss, is devoid of attributes. It is devoid of Kalas (parts)


and is infinite.
7. This entire universe consisting of mobile and immobile be­
ings, has never been otherwise (i.e. this has continued to exist from the
beginning). The Lord is the support of all the desires and hopes of this
universe. The universe is always under the control of the Lord.
8-10. Now I shall tell the features of Brahman, the Supreme Soul,
to you. He is called Visnu; from him all these take place: origin,
sustenance, annihilation, repetition, control, knowledge, bondage, sal­
vation and livelihood. This Lord is termed Brahman too. He is honoured
by the wise seers. They call him the veritable Brahman. Afterwards
Brahma and others too (were called so). The word ‘Brahma* along with
its attributes is interpreted as Brahma (the creator) etc. by persons who
know it.
11. No one else has the status of Brahma because they have only
a part of his power. The birth etc. of this great Lord can be known only
through scriptural texts.
12. О highly intelligent one, the scriptural texts are Vedas, Smrtis,
Puranas which have Vedas and Smrtis for their soul, Itihasas (epics,
legends and mythology), Pancaratra and Bharata.1
13. Mahavisnu can be known only through these and not through
anything else at all. No man who is not conversant with the Vedas
thinks (can think) about Visnu anywhere.
14. Neither through the sense-organs nor through inferences, nor
through arguments, is it possible to know Lord Narayana, the eternal
lord who can be known only through the Vedas.
15. Individual souls that are always under his control, become
liberated by knowing his good qualities, manifestatiohs and activities
in accordance with their intellectual attainment.
16. The power of Visnu is present in each of these: Devas, sages,
Pitrs and Mothers. It shall be comparatively more or less in each of
these.
17. Through perception, verbal testimony and inference one should,
at the outset, understand the Excellent Man in regard to strength, knowledge
and happiness.
18. Bhuta (goblin?) is hundred times more than he. One should

1. These are the authoritative texts (Pramana-granthas) for knowing Vi$nu.


The Brahma Sutra is not mentioned as it was too tough for common people.
*Itihasa* and *Bharata* are separately stated, perhaps to emphasize the special
importance of the latter.
94 Skanda Ригала

know that it is endowed with knowledge etc. One shall know that
human beings and Gandharvas are hundred times superior to BJiuta.
19. One should know the Devas who identify themselves with the
Tattvas as superior to them. The Seven Sages are more excellent than
the Devas who identify themselves with the Tattvas.
20. Agni is more excellent than the Seven Sages. The Sun and
others are superior to Agni. Guru is superior to the Sun. Prana (Vital
Air) is superior to Guru. Indra of great strength is superior to Prana.
21. Goddess Girija is superior to Indra. $ambhu, the sire of the
universe, is superior to the Goddess. Buddhi (Cosmic Intellect), the
great goddess, is superior to (individual?) Buddhi and Prana is superior
in strength to Buddhi.
22. There is nothing greater than Prana. Everything is established
in Prana. This universe is evolved out of Prana. This universe has Prana
for its soul.
23. All this (visible world) is as if sewed to Prana. It is active
only through Prana. They say that it is the support of everything and
has the lustre of the blue cloud. It is the Sutra (that which makes
everything function).
24. This Prana is sustained merely by the side-glance of LaksmI.
That LaksmI gets a portion of the mercy of the Lord of Devas.
25-26. There is nothing greater than Visnu nor even on a par with
him in any respect.

The hunter asked:


How did this Prana called Sutra become superior to individual souls?
How can this be decisively said? О holy lord, how is the superiority
of Prana? Explain this also, О Brahmana, how the Lord is greater than
Prana.

Sahkha said:
27. Listen, О hunter. I shall recount to you what you have asked
about the decision in regard to the superiority of Prana in all the JTvas
(Individual Souls).
28. Formerly in the Padmakalpa, Narayana, the eternal Lord,
Janardana, created Devas beginning with Brahma and said thus:
29-32. “O prominent Devas, I shall instal god Brahma as your pro­
tector and master of this empire (universe). You appoint that Deva as
a crown-prince who is superior to you, who is richly endowed with
II.vii.l9.33-44b 95

excellent moral character and possesses qualities of heroism, liberal­


mindedness, etc.”
On being told thus by the Lord, all Devas with &akra as the leader,
began to contend with one another: “I shall become so. I shall become
so”. All of them then began to argue. Some knew that the Sun-god was
the greatest (god). Some said that £akra (was the greatest) and some
(said that) Kama (was the greatest). Some kept quite. Unable to come
to a decision, they went to Narayana with a view to seek his decision.
33-34. After bowing down to him, all the immortal ones said with
palms joined in reverence:
“O Mahavisnu, all of us have pondered over the matter clearly. We
do not know at all what Deva is superior to all the others among us.
You alone proclaim your decision, as the Devas are indeed in doubt.”
35-36. On being requested thus by all the immortal ones, the Lord
laughingly said thus:
“This is the Vairaja body. When he goes out of it, it (the body) will
fall. When it enters the body, it rises up. Hence this god is certainly
superior to you all and none else at all.”
37-38. On being told thus, all of them said, “So be it”. At the
outset, the leading Sura named Jayanta came out through the foot.
Then they called it lame. The body did not fall. It continued to hear,
drink, speak, smell and see though not (able) to walk.
39-43a. Then the patriarch named Daksa came out through the pri­
vate part. Then they called it a eunuch. The body did not fall. It con­
tinued to hear, drink, speak, smell, see and move about.
Afterwards, Indra, the lord of all immortal ones, came out through
the hand. They called it one devoid of hands. The body did not fall
then. It continued to hear, drink, speak, smell, see and move about.
The Sun-god, the most excellent one among the refulgent bodies,
came out through the eyes. Then, they called it “One-eyed”* (Blind?).
The body did not fall. It continued to hear, drink, speak, smell and
move but not see.
43b-44a. Afterwards Nasatyas, the physicians of the universe, came
out through the nostrils. They called it “One who did not smell”. The
body did not fall. It continued to hear, drink, speak and move about but
not smell.
44b. The Quarters came out through the ears. Then the body did not

* 4Капа* should be interpreted as 'blind* here as 4one-eyed( man can see. He


is not totally blind. But here 'complete blindness* is stated as a result of the
absence of Sun-god.
96 SkandaPurana

fall. They called it “deaf” but not dead at all.


45. It continued to drink and speak but not hear or move about.
Thereafter Varuna came out through the tongue. Then the body did not
fall. They called it “One who cannot relish the taste.”
46-47. It continued to be alive, move about, eat, understand and
breathe.
Then Vahni, the lord and presiding deity of speech, came out through
the organ of speech. Then they called it “dumb”. But the body did not
fall. It continued to be alive, move about, eat, understand and breathe.
48-49. Afterwards Rudra came out through the mind, Rudra of the
nature of enlightener of the mind. Then they called it, Jada (sluggish,
dull). The body did not fall then. It continued to be alive, move about,
eat, understand and breathe.
Afterwards Prana (Vital Air) came out. Then they came to know
him to be dead. The Devas who were surprised in their minds said thus:
50. “He who makes this body rise up, shall be the most excellent
one among us. He will become the Crown Prince.”
51-52. Afterwards they came to an agreement among themselves
thus. They entered the body in due order.
Jayanta entered the feet. That body did not rise up. Daksa entered
the private parts. That body did not rise up. Indra entered the hands.
That body did not rise up.
53. The Sun entered the eye. That dead body did not rise up. The
Quarters entered the ears. That body did not rise up.
54. Varuna entered the tongue. That body did not rise up. The
divine physicians (A€vin Devas) entered the nose. That body did not
rise up.
55. Fire-god entered the organ of speech. That body did not rise
up. Rudra entered the mind. That body did not get up.
56-57. Afterwards Prana entered. Then that dead body rose up.
Thereupon the Devas came to the decision that Prana, the lord, is
the most excellent one among all the Devas in strength, knowledge,
courage, absence of attachment and in living. They crowned it Yuvaraja
(Heir-Apparent).
58-60. They recited an Uktha (Saman hymn) as he was the cause
of excellent maintenance. Hence the entire universe has Prana for its
soul. The entire universe consisting of mobile and immobile beings is
complete with all parts and wholes endowed with strength. It (Prana)
is complete (Supreme) lord of the worlds.
There is nothing in the universe devoid of Prana. It (thing devoid
n.vii. 19.61-72 97

of Prana) has no existence. That which is devoid of Prana does not


flourish. There is no existence without Prana. Nothing can subsist de­
void of Prana. Hence Prana became superior to all JTvas. It is more
excellent in strength. It is the immanent soul of all Individual Souls.
61-62. Nothing superior to or on a par with Prana has been seen or
heard about before in the scriptural texts. Though Lord Prana is one,
it is diversified inasmuch as it follows the different effects. Hence
they say that Prana is the most excellent one. Those who are eager to
worship Prana say that Prana is competent to create, sustain and an­
nihilate the universe playfully.
63. Excepting Vasudeva, no one is competent to assail or excel
it, whether it be conscious like the serpent $esa, Siva, Sakra and others,
or inert.
64. Prana is identified with all the Devas. He is the soul of all
the Devas. He is a perpetual follower of Vasudeva. He is always under
the control of Visnu.
65-66. He neither hears nor sees anything opposed to Vasudeva. The
Devas, the leading Suras, including Rudra, Indra etc. do act in oppo­
sition to (Vasudeva), but Prana which is present in all, never opposes
(Vasudeva). Hence learned men say that Prana is the strength of Visnu.
67-71. After knowing thus the greatness and characteristics of Maha-
visnu, a devotee should cast off the subtle body like a serpent casting
off the slough. The subtle body which follows the Purvabandha (Avidya:
Nescience)1is to be left off. He then attains Narayana, free from ill­
ness.

On hearing the words uttered by Sarikha, the hunter became de­


lighted in his mind. He bowed down with humility and asked that sage
once again: “O Brahmana, the greatness of this magnanimous Prana,
the sire of the universe, is not known in the world. How is it that the
greatness of Devas, sages, kings and other noble-souled ones is heard
about in the world and in the Puranas thousands of times? Tell me this,
О Brahmana. I am very eager to hear.”

Sankha said:
72. Formerly Prana was desirous of performing horse-sacrifices in

1. Purvabandhah is explained as follows: PUrva—beginningless; bandha—bond­


age. It is the characteristic of Avidya. This concept is similar to Anava-mala o f
K&fmira Saivism. But here it is the Lihga-Sarira which is characterized by Avidya.
98 SkandaPurana

order to propitiate Narayana, Hari, free from ailments. So he joyously


went to the banks of Gaftga.
73-74. He sanctified the ground by means of ploughs, surrounded by
various groups of sages. There was a sage named Kanva, hidden within
an anthill in the course of his transcendental meditation. He was dug
up by means of these ploughs. Coming up, he spoke furiously. He cursed
Prana, the great lord, as he saw him standing in front:
75-76. “O Lord of Devas, from now onwards your greatness will not
be known in the three worlds, especially in the terrestrial worlds. Your
incarnations will, however, become very well-known in all the three
worlds.”
On being told thus by the sage, Wind-god (i.e. Prana) spoke to him
furiously:
77-78. “I have been cursed without any offence, though I am free
from sin and I am competent to suffer adversities. Hence, О Kanva,
you will become inimical to your preceptor at once.” Wind-god said
this also: “Be one of censurable conduct in the world.” Ever since
then the greatness of the great lord, Prana, is not known in this world,
particularly on the earth.
79-80. On account of the curse, Kanva1ate his preceptor and became
a disciple of Sun-god.
Thus what has been asked by you has been entirely recounted. What­
ever further has to be heard by you, О hunter, ask me. Do not hesitate.

CHAPTER TWENTY

The Bhagavata Dharmas

The hunter said:


1-2. Why were fivas (individual souls) created by the Lord in
thousands and crores? They are seen engaged in different activities,
diverse paths and pursuits. They are eternal. They are not of the same
nature. Why is it so, О highly intelligent one? Describe everything in
detail to me truthfully. I earnestly request for it.
1. The author seems to have confused Yajnavalkya with Kanva. It was Yajnavalkya
who renounced his first teacher Vai$aitipayana and became a disciple of the Sun-
god and received from him the *'W hite’ Yajurveda. Kanva on the contrary is a
‘seer* of the 8th Mandala of RV. Mbh also does not attribute such 4teacher-eating*
to Kanva. Kanva's being excavated from an anthill is not traced elsewhere.
U.vii.20.3-13 99

Sahkha said:
3-6. Indeed the groups of JTvas are of three types with Rajas, Sattva
and Tamas as their Gunas.1Those of Rajas perform Rajasa activities.
Those of Tamas pursue Tamasa activities and those of Sattva pursue
Sattvika activities.
Sometimes there occurs difference in Gunas during their transmi­
gration (from one birth to another). For this reason they do acts of
higher and lower kinds and experience the fruits thereof.
In some cases they obtain happiness, in some instances they expe­
rience miseries and in some cases they get both (happiness and mis­
eries). These they attain on account of difference in their (share of)
Gunas. Being bound by the three Gunas, these JTvas abide in Prakrti.
7. The diversity in regard to the fruits of actions occurs in ac­
cordance with Gunas and Karmas. Again these individuals (i.e. indi­
vidual souls) attain Prakrti and conformity to the Gunas.
8. (Obscure) Those who abide in Prakrti and those who follow it
are excited (<abhimurchitahl) by Prakrti and they attain Prakrti as their
goal. There is no question of opposition to Prakrti.
9. The Tamasas (those with dominant Tamoguna) mostly expe­
rience pain and misery. They have always Tamasa pursuits and activi­
ties. They are merciless and.cruel. They live in the world activated
by hatred alone.
10-11. Beings beginning with Raksasas and ending with Pi€acas at­
tain the Tamasa goal. Those with dominance of Rajas quality are of
mixed temperament. They commit sins as well as meritorious deeds.
They attain heaven as a result of meritorious deeds. They undergo
sufferings in certain places due to sins. Hence these unfortunate ones
repeatedly come and go (in this world).
12. Persons habituated to perform pious deeds, the merciful ones,
those who are faithful and those who are devoid of jealousy are the
Sattvikas. They continue to follow the activities of Sattva type (of
good nature).
13. Persons of great prowess and devoid of impurities, go upwards
when the Gunas are dispelled.

I. VV 3-17 discuss the theory of Karmavada. Jivas are characterized by their


gunas and they receive the fruits of the action according to their Guna and Karma.
Hence God cannot be charged with partiality (Vaifamya) and nithlessness (Nairghrnya).
Lord Visnu is Purnakama and treats all equally like a showering cloud or a flowing
canal.
100 SkandaPurana

Thus different activities have different feelings and different modes.


14. Visnu, the great Lord, makes them do acts in accordance with
their inherent Gunas and Karmas for the purpose of attaining his own
form.
15. Since Visnu is Purnakama (‘one who has achieved all de­
sires’), there is neither Vaisamya (inequality or partiality in the dis­
pensation of fruit) nor Nairghrnya (ruthlessness) in him. He impartially
performs the work of creation, sustenance and annihilation.
16-17. All of them obtain the fruits of their actions in accordance
with their own Guna.
A cloud showers rain equally on all the trees planted in a garden;
similarly the same canal supplies water to all the trees alike. Hence
we cannot accuse the planter of the garden of partiality and ruthless­
ness in any manner whatsoever.

The hunter enquired:


18-19. When will the salvation of these persons who have com­
pletely experienced (the fruits of their Karmas) take effect, О sage?
Will it be at the time of the creation or of the annihilation of the
established order? Or does it occur at the juncture of creation and
annihilation or during the steady state? Explain this in detail, О
Brahmana, and describe to me the activities of the Lord.

Sahkha said:
20. A thousand sets of four Yugas make what is called a day of
Brahma. He has a night also of the same duration. The day and night
together make one full day.
21. Fifteen such full days make a Paksa (fortnight). A month con­
sists of two such Paksas. They call two months together as one Rtu
(Season) and three such Rtus make one Ayana.
22. Two Ayanas make one Vatsara (year). If hundred such years
pass by, it is known as one Kalpa of Brahma.
23-24. According to the opinion of those conversant with the Vedas
the duration of Pralaya is that much (like that of a Brahma Kalpa).
Pralaya (Annihilation) is of three types:1(1) Manava when a Manu’s

1. VV 24-38 describe the three types of Pralaya. It should be noted that Daily
(Dainandina) Pralaya occurs at the end of Brahmi’s day and not of ours as is
believed by some.
II.vii.20.25-39a 101

period becomes complete; (2) Dainamdina (Daily) i.e. occurring at the


end of a day of Brahma; (3) Brahma Pralaya occurring when Brahma
passes away.
25-29. Manu’s Pralaya is known to take place at the end of a Muhurta
of Brahma. When fourteen such Pralayas take place in due order, they
call it Dainamdina Laya.
Now (I shall recount) the situation during the Pralayas. After a Manvan-
tara only three worlds are destroyed. (The other) worlds are not de­
stroyed. Only the sentient beings perish. The space shall be filled with
waters. After a Manvantara is over and when another Manvantara starts,
the sentient beings will be bom once again. During Dainamdina Laya,
О hunter, everything perishes. When the Four-faced Lord is asleep, all
the worlds except Satyaloka perish along with their presiding deities.
The sentient beings along with the elements face dissolution. All the
inanimate beings too perish.
30-33. The presiding deities of the Elements and some sages are left
out. All those established in Satyaloka remain asleep. They continue
to sleep till the end of the Kalpa. They are beyond the pale of sense-
organs. Again, at the end of the night, Brahma creates everything as
before. He creates the sages, the Devas, the Pitrs, the worlds, the Dharmas
and the different castes separately. Again the ten incarnations of the
discus-bearing Lord Visnu take place. All these are created invariably.
The Devas and the sages live till the end of the Kalpa of the Lord of
Sarasvatl (Brahma).
34-39a. They are born again and they attain salvation along with
Brahma. Pious persons and honourable kings, those persons who had
attained Siddhi, those who had reached the supreme stage and those
who are established in Satyaloka, move about along with him. Those
who belong to that group, go again and are born in the different Gotras
with their respective names. They adhere to the Srutis. They are al­
ways engaged in their different actions. In regard to all the Daityas
(their salvation occurs) when Kali Yuga comes to a close.
Those who have hell as their abode, attain their goal along with
Kali. Those who are established in their group and others with their
names (?) are reborn according to their Karma and then perform their
respective duties.
I shall now tell the time of creation and the time of salvation of
the Devas including Brahma. Listen with an attentive mind.1
I. VV 39b-50 describe the process of creation of the world and also the
exposition of the functions of four Vyuhas.
102 SkandaPuram

39b-44a. One Wink of the Lord of Devas is considered to be equal


to a Kalpa of Brahma. At the end thereof occurs opening of the eyes
of the Lord, the crest-jewel of Devas. At the end of the Wink, he will
have the desire to create the worlds existing in his belly. He then
glances at all those many groups of JIvas within his belly, those JTvas
that are worthy of being created, those that are liberated and all those
who have met with Lihgabhahga (the break-up of the subtle body—
Lihgasarira?)
Those who are asleep, all those who are on the path (srtisthahl) all
those engulfed in darkness, those who had met with the break-up of the
subtle body in the previous Kalpa beginning with Brahma and ending
with Manus, the individual souls, the living-liberated ones, those that
have attained liberation, those that were liberated in the previous Kalpa
beginning with Brahma and ending with Manus stay within the belly
of Visnu, still absorbed in meditation.
44b-50. During the earlier part of the period of ‘opening of the eyes’,
the Lord assumes the four-fold manifestation (Vyuhas). On the basis
of the previous accumulation of good qualities, he grants the Sayujya
type of salvation to Brahma through a Vasudeva, a manifestation of the
VyOha {obscure).
Thereafter he grants Sayujya to the noble-souled ones conversant
with reality. Then the Lord grants Sarupya to some, Samipya to others
and Salokya to still others. Thereafter Lord Janardana espied all the
worlds that had been under the control of (the manifestation called)
Aniruddha. Handing them over to Pradyumna, he became inclined to­
wards creation. Through the fourfold set of forms with the full comple­
ment of good qualities, Hari, beginning with Vasudeva himself married
Maya, Jayakrti and Santi respectively. In collaboration with them, the
Lord of the nature of the four-fold manifestation produced the world of
diversified actions and temperament, though he himself is Purnakama
(‘one who has realized all the desires’). At the end of Unmesa (‘open­
ing of the eyes’), Visnu once again resorted to Yogamaya.
51-52a. Through Saiikarsana who is a manifestation in the Vyiiha,
he destroys this (universe) consisting of mobile and immobile beings.
Thus every activity of the Great Atman that could be thought of, has
been recounted. What cannot be thought of is very difficult to be imagined
or conceived even by Yogins including Brahma.

The hunter said:


52b-53a. What are the Bhagavata (pertaining to th'fc Lord) rites?
II.vii.20.53b-62 ИВ

What are those whereby Visnu becomes pleased? 1 wish to hear about
them now. О sage, describe them to me.

Sahkha said:
53b-55. Know that to be a Sattvika Dharma1whereby there shall be
purity of mind, which shall be helpful to good people and which is not
at all censured by anyone.
They know that Dharma to be Sattvika, the Dharma which is laid
down in Srutis and Smrtis, provided it is not attended with ardent
desires (for worldly pleasures) and is not antagonistic to worldly pur­
suits.
Those Dharmas are of four types according to the castes and the
stages of life.
56-59. They are classified into three other groups, viz. Nityas (daily
duties such as Sandhya prayers etc.), Naimittikas (occasioned by as­
tronomical positions and other causes) and Kamyas (performed for the
attainment of specific ends).
All those different duties (of the different castes) should be known
as Sattvika Dharmas when they are dedicated to Visnu. They are the
auspicious Bhagavata Dharmas.
The holy rites with bther presiding deities are considered to be
Rajasas (of the Rajasa type).
The wicked and atrocious rites with Yaksas, Raksasas, PiSacas etc.
as the presiding deities, which are censured (by good people) and which
involve violence and injury (to others) are known as Tamasas (having
Tamoguna as the basis).
Those are known as Bhagavatas who strictly adhere to Sattva Guna
and perform the auspicious Sattvika Dharmas that cause delight unto
Visnu and who perform them regularly without any specific desire.
60. Those are indeed Bhagavatas whose mind is always attached
to Visnu, in whose tongue the name of the.Lord is present and in whose
heart the feet of the Lord are enshrined.
61. Those who are engaged in good conduct, those who render
help to all and those who are always free from Mamata (sense of “my-
ness”, self-interest) are known as Bhagavatas.
62. Those who have full faith in the scriptural texts, their precep­

1. VV 53-92 define and describe Sattvika Dharmas, who are Bhagavatas and
allied topics. The Vailakha Dharmas included here loo, are stated in a nutshell
(vv 71-92).
№ ShcmdaPurana

tor, pious and honourable men and good activities, and those who are
always devoted to Visnu are known as Bhagavatas.
63. The Dharmas esteemed by Bhagavatas, those that are ever
dear to Visnu, and which are laid down in Srutis and Smrtis are con­
sidered eternal.
64-68. In regard to those people whose mind is attracted by sensual
pleasures, wandering over all the lands, seeing (performance) of all
holy rites and listening to all Dharmas does not serve any purpose like
an excellent young women in regard to a eunuch.
Merely by looking at pious and honourable men the mind of good
people begins to melt like a slab of the moon-stone (Candrakantasila)
that comes into contact with the rays of the Moon.
In some places, by listening to excellent scriptural texts, the mind
of good men being unaffected by sensual pleasures remains pure and
refulgent like a sun-stone (Suryakantasila) due to contact with the rays
of the Sun.
A Dharma always liked by Visnu and faithfully resorted to by the
people devoid of desires is considered to be a Bhagavata Dharma.
69. Many holy rites observed by them yield benefit here and here­
after. They give delight to Visnu. They are subtle and conducive to
liberation from all miseries.
70. Just as one takes out the essence, butter, from curds, so also
the Lord, residing in the Milk Ocean, has taken out the Dharma per­
taining to Vaigakha and recounted it to Rama with a desire for the
welfare of all.
71-75. The following are the holy rites destructive of sins: Making
cool shady places along the roads, endowing frec-water booths for dis­
tributing drinking water, fanning with hand fans, offering of utensils
and furniture, gift of umbrella and shoes, gift of camphor and sweet
scents, digging of tanks, wells and lakes if one has the money and other
facilities, gift of sweet drinks in the evening, gift of flowers, gift of
betel leaves and that of milk products are particularly destructive of
sins. Gift of butter-milk with a pinch of salt to one who is weary on
the way, applying oil to the body, washing of the feet of Brahmanas,
gift of mats, blankets and cots, gift of cows and of gingelly seeds
mixed with honey are destructive of sins.
76-78. Giving sugarcane stumps in the evening, gift of sweet con­
coction from cucumber and medicine and offerings to manes: these are
the’holy activities particularly mentioned for this month which is a
favourite month of Madhava.
II.vii.20.79-95 105

A devotee should take his holy bath early in the morning at sunrise.
He should listen to the chanting (of the Vedic Mantras) done by Brahmanas.
He should then perform his daily round of duties and then worship
Madhusudana. With great concentration he should listen to the story
pertaining to the month of Vai£akha.
79-85. The devotee should avoid applying oil to the body; he should
not take meal in a bell-metal vessel; he should not take forbidden food.
He should not indulge in idle talk and gossip. He should abstain from
eating bottle-gourd, garlic, carrot, gingelly seed-cake or eatables pre­
pared from gingelly powder, gruel made by fermentation of boiled rice,
burnt rice, Ghrtako£atakT, UpodakI, Kalinga, Si£u6aka, pterygosperma,
potherb, Dolichos lablab, horsegram, Masura pulse, eggplants, Wrightia
antidysenteria, the grain eaten by poor people viz. Paspalum scrobiculatum,
Amaranthus polygonoides, safflower prepared as potherb, radish, Ficus
religiosa, Aegle marmelos, and Cordia latifolia. A wise devotee should
avoid all these in this month much liked by Madhava.
By eating any of these he shall definitely be reborn as a Candala
and then in hundreds of animal wombs (species). There is no doubt
about it. Thus the devotee should perform the Vrata for the whole
month for propitiating the Slayer of Madhu. When the Vrata is con­
cluded, the devotee should make an image of the Lord.
86. The image of Lord Madhusudana should be given to a Brahmana
along with clothes, monetary gifts etc. after duly being worshipped
with all necessary offerings.
87-88a. On the twelfth day in the bright half of Vaisakha the devo­
tee should eagerly give curd-ricc (boiled rice mixed with curds) along
with a pot full of water, fruits, betel leaves and monetary gifts (saying)
“I give this unto Dharmaraja. May Yama be pleased with it.”
88b-91. It should be given with the sacred thread worn over the
right shoulder after uttering the name and Gotra of the fathers and
manes. Thus the devotee should give rice mixed with curds for the sake
of the pleasure of the manes. Similarly he should give to the preceptors
too and afterwards to Visnu.
“I give unto you, О Visnu, excellent cool water and rice mixed
with curds. It is kept in a bell-metal vessel. It is offered along with
betel leaves and monetary gifts, edible foodstuffs and fruits. I wish to
go unto the world of Visnu.’*
After offering this he should give a cow in accordance with his
capacity, to a person having a large family.
92-95. If a person performs this monthly Vrata with sincerity, he
106 SkandaPurana

shall be rid of all his sins. He shall redeem a hundred generations of


his family. Even as all living beings keep in looking at him, he shall
pass beyond the sphere of the Sun and go to the highest abode oYVisnu
inaccessible even to Yogins.

When the excellent Brahmana went on explaining thus the holy


rites pertaining to VaiSakha, recounted by Visnu, asked by the hunter
and (considered) exceedingly good, a banyan tree with five big branches
fell down even as all of them were looking on. From that tree a very
long cruel serpent that was hidden in a hollow left aside his body and
sinful birth. He stood there with palms joined in reverence and with
his head bowed down.

CHAPTER TWENTYONE

Birth of Valmlki
*
Srutadeva said:
1-3. Along with the hunter Sankha became surprised. He asked
him, “Who may you be? Whence have you been in this plight? О
gentle Sir, what is that holy rite whereby your mind has become aus­
piciously inclined? How did you get liberated so suddenly? Tell this
in detail.”
On being asked thus by £ankha, he fell on the ground like a staff;
with palms joined in reverence and bowing down his head with humil­
ity, he spoke these words:
4-6. (The redeemed serpent said1:) “Formerly I was a very talk­
ative Brahmana in Prayaga. I was endowed with handsome features and
prime of youth. I was very proud on account of my learning. I had
abundant wealth and many sons. I had the defect of always behaving
arrogantly. I was the son of Sage Kuslda, Rocana by name. These were
my activities: Sitting quietly, lying down, sleeping, having sexual inter­
course, gambling, gossiping and usury.
7. Being apprehensive of public censure, I used to perform hypo­
critically even the subtlest of traditional (religious) rites. But I never
had any faith in them.

1. The story of redemption of Rocana from the serpent-species by simply


hearing the Vai3akha Vrat as is meant for the glorification of the Vai$akha Vratas.
D.vii.21.8-26 107

8-12. I, who was thus wicked and of perverted mind, passed a great
deal of time. Once in the month of VaiSakha, a Brahmana named Jayanta,
expounded the holy rites enjoined for that month dear to the Lord.
Men and women among the meritorious Brahmanas residing in that
holy place, Ksatriyas, VaiSyas and thousands of Sudras took bath early
in the morning and worshipped the immutable Lord Madhusiidana.
Thereafter, they used to listen to the story recounted by Jayanta. All
of them were pure (in body and mind). They observed silence. They
were interested in stories of Vasudeva. They were devoutly engaged
in the holy rites of VaiSakha. They were devoid of hypocrisy and la­
ziness. 1 entered that assembly out of curiosity and with a desire to see
(what was going on there).
13-16. Wearing a turban, I did not bow down my head. I had betel-
leaves still in my mouth. I did not take away the shirt that had been
worn by me. Taking interest in gossip and rumour, I disturbed the (at­
mosphere of the) holy story. The mind of everyone became unsteady
(and distracted) on account of the gossip.
Some time I stretched the clothes; some time I censured the people.
I laughed loudly on some occasion. Thus the time was spent by me till
the conclusion (of the discourse). Afterwards due to the same fault, I
had a loss of memory immediately. I became short-lived. On the next
day, 1died as a result of the combined derangement of all the humours.
17-21. I fell into the hell Halahala filled with molten lead and
experienced the tortures therein for fourteen Manvantaras.
I was born in succession in all the eight million four hundred thou­
sand species of living beings. Now I lived on this tree a hundred Yojanas
high and ten Yojanas in girth. I lived here in a4iollow seven Yojanas
long, as a cruel serpent of Tamasa nature. Oppressed by that early
(sinful and indecent) action (of mine), I have been staying here in the
form of a serpent thus. Ten thousand years have elapsed since I began
to live in this hollow without getting any food. Fortunately, I heard
through my pair of eyes (which happened to be my ears too) the nectar-
like story that issued from your lotus-like mouth. Hence, О sage, all
my inauspiciousness has been destroyed.
22. I have discarded my form of a serpent and have become a
person of divine form. With palms joined in reverence I bow down to
you. I take refuge in your feet.
23-26. In which birth you were my kinsman, I do not know, О ex­
cellent sage. No one has been helped by me (so far). How could I be
sympathetic to good people?
108 Skanda Parana

Honourable and pious men are of impartial mind. They are always
compassionate towards all living beings. They are by nature ready to
help others. Their mind is not otherwise. Bless me now, so that my
mind will be inclined towards Dharma. One should never forget Visnu,
the Discus-bearing Lord. Let there be constant association with great
men of saintly conduct. Let there be poverty alone, to act as the
greatest collyrium (to dispel) the blindness due to arrogance.”
27-29. Thus he eulogized him in various ways and bowed down to
him again and again. With palms joined in reverence, he made obei­
sance to him and stood in front of him silently. Sankha was completely
overwhelmed with love. He lifted him up with both the hands and
stroked his limbs with his highly auspicious hand, without any undue
excitement. He blessed the Brahmana in divine form. With great kind­
ness he spoke to him immediately, about the future events:
30. “O Brahmana, all your bondage has been destroyed immedi­
ately after listening to the greatness of the month as well as to that
of Hari.
31. After wiping out the stigma, you will go back to the earth
once again and be born again as an excellent Brahmana in the meri­
torious land of Da£arna.
32. You will be famous by the name VedaSarma. You will be an
expert in all the Vedas. There you will have perfect and auspicious
recollection of the previous births.
33. With the recollection of unbroken sequence (of events), you
will become splendid. You will eschew all sorts of attachments to the
mundane pleasures. You will perform all the holy rites laid down for
the month of VaiSakha which is so dear to Hari.
34. In that birth you will be free from the Dvandvas (mutually
opposed pairs), devoid of desire, devoted to the preceptors, unattached
to sensuous feelings and with all the sense-organs perfectly under con­
trol. You will be talking about the stories of Visnu constantly.
35. Then you will attain Siddhi with all the bondages cut asunder.
You will go to the greatest abode inaccessible even through Yogic
practices.
36-38. Do not be afraid, dear son; with my favour you will secure
welfare. If anyone utters at least once the sin-dispelling name of Visnu
for the sake of fun or out of fear, anger or hatred, with love, affection
or great desire, even the greatest of sinners goes to the abode of Visnu
devoid of ailments. Then those who are endowed with faith and com­
passion, those who have subdued anger and the sense-orgai)^ will still
DLvii.21.39-54 109

certainly go there on hearing the story (of the Lord).


39. Even if they are devoid of all Dharmas, some attain the great­
est region of Visnu through devotion alone if they are engaged in
talking about (or listening to) the story (of the Lord).
40. With a (feigned) devotion prompted by hatred etc., some at­
tend upon and serve Visnu. They too go to the greatest region like
Piitana who destroyed (various) lives.
41. One should be constantly associated with great men and ex­
change words with them. It is an injunction laid down in the Vedas that
this must be followed by those who are desirous of salvation.
42. This exchange of words causes destruction of the sins of com­
mon people. In the course of the utterance of the names of the infinite
Lord during these exchanges of words, mistakes may happen in every
verse. Still honourable and pious people hear, sing about and praise the
names of the Lord associated with his fame.
43. (Defective Text) The Lord does not wish to give (his devo­
tees) strain in the course of their service to himself; nor does he want
them to waste their beauty and youth (?). On being remembered but
once, he grants them his refulgent abode. Who will not seek refuge in
one who is (so) merciful?
44. Seek refuge in the self-same Narayana who is free from blames
and defects, who is fond of his devotees, who (though) unmanifest can
be realized through the mind and who is a storehouse of mercy.
45. Perform all these holy rites laid down for the month of VaiSakha,
О highly intelligent one. Delighted on account of it, the Lord of the
universe will confer welfare upon you.”
46. After saying this, the sage stopped. The man in divine form
glanced at the hunter with great surprise and spoke once again to the
eminent sage:
The Divine Person said:
47-48.1 am contented. I am blessed by you, the compassionate one,
О Sankha. Fortunately my evil birth has ceased to be. I have attained
the greatest goal.

After saying this he circumambulated the sage. On being permitted


by him, he went to heaven.
Then the evening set in. О king, Saftkha was duly propitiated by
the hunter.
49-54, He performed the evening Sandhya rites and passed the re­
по SkandaPurana

maining part of the night recounting the anecdotes of various kings,


Devas and (other) noble-souled ones, as well as the Lord’s graceful
sports and discourses in the course of his (the Lord’s) incarnations.
(On the next day) he got up in the Brahma Muhurta (i.e. before
dawn), washed his feet and silently meditated on Brahman that re­
deems everyone from worldly turmoil. He then performed all his daily
round of excellent duties beginning with bodily cleanliness. When in
Vai€akha, the Sun was in Aries, he look his bath before sunrise. He
performed Sandhya prayers and other holy rites and offered libations
to all (the Pitrs). Thereafter, with great delight in his mind he called
the hunter and sprinkled the holy water on his head. Then he imparted
to him the two-syllabled name Rama which is more splendid than and
superior to the Devas. (Then he said:)
“Everyone of the names of Visnu is considered to be superior to all
the Vedas. Of all the innumerable names, the thousand names called
Vi$nu-Sahasгапаща are very superior. The name Rama is on a par with
those thousand names.
55-59. Hence, О hunter, repeat that name Rama continuously. Per­
form all these holy rites till death, О hunter. Thereby you will be
reborn in the family of sage Valmlka. You will attain fame on the
earth by the name VamTki.”1
Having instructed the hunter thus, he started towards the southern
quarter. The hunter circumambulated him and bowed to him repeat­
edly. After following him for a short distance he halted there looking
after him till he went out of (the range of) his sight. With pangs of
separation, he began to cry. He returned with great difficulty, thinking
about him alone in his heart.
He planted some trees and made a park on the way. A free-water
booth was constructed free from all impurities. Then he performed all
those very excellent holy rites laid down for the month of Vai€akha.

1. Our text gives a different version of the birth of Valmiki. According to


the current version, a Vyadha, robber of forest travellers, repents for his evil
deeds when asked by Narada to enquire if the members of his family would share
his sins and met with their refusal to do so. The Vyadha requests Narada to redeem
him. Narada gave him *Rama' mantra. The Vyadha was so engrossed in meditation
on Rama that an anthill grew around him. Hence he became known as Valmlki
(Valmlka: an anthill). He became famous as the author of Ramayana. Our text makes
the Vyadha to take birth from sage Valmlka, an epithet of sage Kfnu whose body
was covered with an anthill. The son of Kfnu alias Valmlka became known as
Valmlki, the famous author of Ramayana. The credit of all this is given to the
efficacy of Vaigakha Vratas (v 69). *
II.vii.21.60—II.vii.22.6a 111

60-63. With the fruits of wild wood-apples, jack-fruit, rose-apples


and mangoes, he provided food for wayfarers who were overcome with
fatigue. He removed the fatigue of the perspiring pedestrians by means
of umbrellas and fans, footwears and sandalpastes and cool shady places
here and there spread with fine sand particles. He took his bath early
in the morning and repeated the “Rama” Mantra day and night. The
hunter was reborn as the son of ValmTka.
64-68. There was a certain sage named Krnu. He performed a very
severe penance on the banks of that lake without any external move­
ment. As great deal of time elapsed, an anthill covered his body. So
they began to call him ValmTka when he ceased to perform the pen­
ance. When Krnu began to recollect worldly affairs, the sage began to
think about women, О king. Then he had a seminal discharge. A female
dancer grasped it and the hunter was reborn of her. He became well-
known in all the worlds as ValmTki. It was he who made the story of
Rama popular in the world by means of his charming verses. The divine
story of Rama that dispelled the bondage of Karmas was thus popular­
ized by him through his composition.
69. See, О king, the greatness of Vaigakha that yields prosperity
even today. Even a hunter attained the rare status of a sage by making
the gift of footwears.
70. He who listens to or recounts this great narrative that makes
hair stand on end (as a Sattvika Bhava) and that dispels sins shall not
suck the breasts any more (i.e. will attain liberation).

CHAPTER TWENTYTWO

Liberation of Pitrs

Maithileya asked:
l-6a. What are the meritorious lunar days in the month of Vaigakha?
What are the different charitable gifts recommended particularly in
those Tithis? What are those Tithis which are very popular in the
world? Speak out in detail.

Srutadeva said:
(All) the thirty Tithis are meritorious in Vaigakha when the Sun is
in Aries.
112 SkandaPuram

What is performed on the Ekada£T (Eleventh) day is highly merito­


rious. It shall be crores and crores of times efficacious. He wJio takes
a plunge in the water on the eleventh day attains the merit which is
obtained by means of all charitable gifts and that benefit which is
obtained in all the TTrthas. Holy bath, charitable gift, penance, Нота,
worship of the Deity, good holy rites and listening to the story: all
these bring about salvation instantaneously. One who is afflicted with
sickness etc., and assailed by poverty shall become contented and
blessed by listening to this meritorious story.
6b-10. One who spends these auspicious days without taking bath
and without charitable gifts is proclaimed as a big (sinner on a par
with) a slayer of cows and parents or as an ungrateful fellow. Water
reservoirs are within our reach. Our body is under our own control.
Madhava is to be served mentally; the time is very excellent with
very good qualities; and pious men are full of mercy. Who then does
not serve Madhava (the Lord, the month of Vaigakha)?
Holy rites in Vaigakha can be performed with the greatest ease by
the poor, the rich, lame ones, blind ones, eunuchs, widows, men, women,
teen-aged ones, youths, old people and those who are laid up with
sickness.
11-15. At the advent of this month, perform all these auspicious
rites. Who will not endeavour for this? Who is more auspicious than
that man? One who does not perform these easy rites is a base man.
There is no doubt about this that hells are easily within his reach.
Now I shall mention the Tithi that is the most excellent one in that
month that dispels all sins. I shall mention the essence like butter that
is taken from curds.
In the highly meritorious month of Caitra (?) when the Sun is in
Aries, that Tithi has the Manes for its deity (new-moon day?). It is
destructive of sins. It yields the benefit of crores of Gayas. In this
connection an ancient story about Pitrs is heard. Listen, О king, to that
good story (which happened) when Savarni was ruling the earth.
16. At the end of the thirtieth Kaliyuga which is devoid of all
Dharmas, there was a certain Brahmana well-known as Dharmavarna
in the land of Anarta.
17-18. The sage had already observed in the first quarter of that
same Kaliyuga, О king, that the people were engrossed in sins. At that
time of Kaliyuga which was devoid of Dharmas fixed for different
castes, once he went to the holy place of Puskara where the noble-
souled sages were engaged in a Sattra (sacrifice of a long duration)
U.vii.22.19-36 113

along with the observance of the vow of silence.


19. The sages held a discourse on scriptural topics. Some of them
who were habituated to the performance of holy rites praised Kaliyuga.
20. The merit of propitiating Madhava which could be accom­
plished in the course of one year in Krtayuga could be accomplished
in a month in Tretayuga, О king, and the same in a fortnight in Dvaparayuga.
21. Ten times that merit can be achieved through the remem­
brance of Visnu in Kaliyuga. Even the least bit of meritorious deed in
Kaliyuga will have crores of times the benefit.
22-24. In Kaliyuga which is devoid of mercy and meritorious deeds,
which is bereft of charitable gifts and other holy rites, he who shows
mercy and makes any gift after uttering the name of Hari but once,
shall go up (to higher regions) certainly. So also the person who gives
food during a famine.
While this topic was being discussed thus, Sage Narada came there.
He caught hold of his own penis with one hand and the tongue with the
other and began to laugh like a madmen. The excellent sage began to
dance too.
25-30. Those who were in the assembly asked him, “O Narada, what
is this?”
That highly intelligent sage replied to them all while continuing to
dance and laugh: “On account of pleasure. Since it has been mentioned
by you who have sanctified your own souls and who are dancing (?)
There is no doubt about it. We are all (persons who have) realized
souls. The meritorious Kali has arrived. It is true. There is no doubt
about it that much is achieved through very little. Merely by remem­
bering Kesava, the destroyer of pain, we can make him delighted.
Still I will have to tell you that two things cannot be accomplished
definitely, dear sons, viz. curb on the penis (sex instinct) and check on
the tongue permanently. If both of them are under the control of any­
one, he shall become Janardana. Hence, at the time of the advent of
Kaliyuga, you all must not stay here. Leave off this heretic Bharata1
and go anywhere else as you please, to any of the lands where your
mind feels delighted.”
31. On hearing these words of his, the honourable sages of holy
rites concluded the Sattra and went away as they pleased.
32-36. On hearing them, Dharmavarna too felt inclined to abandon

1. The strange belief is that the influence of Yuga-System is limited to Bharata.


114 SkandaPurana

the country. He observed the holy rite conducive to increasing reful­


gence in order to survey the misdeeds in the Kali Age. He took up his
staff and waterpot and proceeded wearing bark garments and matted
hair.
With his mind struck with wonder, he saw cruel people and atro­
cious rogues indulging in the commission of sinful deeds.1 All the
Brahmanas were heretic and the $Qdras became recluses. Wife hated
husband and disciple hated preceptor. Servant became the murderer of
master and son was engaged in slaying father. All Brahmanas mostly
resembled &0dras; all cows resembled goats; the Vedas became folk­
lore and auspicious holy rites (prescribed in Vedas etc.) became de­
graded like ordinary everyday activities.
37. Evil spirits, ghosts and vampires became deities bestowing
benefits. Cruel people engaged in sinful activities worshipped them
alone sincerely.
38 All the people were eagerly engaged in sexual intercourse,
willing to abandon even their lives for that purpose. They committed
perjury. They were all deceitful in their minds.
39. In Kali Age, there was always one thing in the mind, another
in the utterance and still another in their action. To everyone Vidya
(higher learning) became only a means for achieving some selfish in­
terest. That became worthy of adoration even in royal palaces.
40. In Kali Age, the fine arts including music and allied arts came
to be liked and specially patronized by kings. The lowly and the vulgar
ones became greatly esteemed and not the excellent ones.
41. In Kali Yuga, all the Brahmanas well-versed in the Vedas
would become poverty-stricken. Devotion to Visnu generally becomes
conspicuous by its absence.
42. Every holy spot generally became prominent resort of her­
etics. $udras became expounders of Dharmas. They became ascetics
with matted hair in Kali Age.
43. All men were short-lived. All the people became ruthless rogues.
All professed to be expounders of Dharma and all felt festive gaiety
in pilfering and plundering.
44-45. People wish that they should be worshipped by others. They
are engaged in futile accusations and censures of others. If the lord
and master were to visit one's house, others became jealous of it.
In Kali Age a brother may carnally approach his sister and a father,
1. For the gruesome picture of the Kali age compare Mbh,vSanti 69.80-97;
BdP I.ii.29.5-21; BhP XII. 1-2; VP VI. 1.
II.vii.22.46-56 115

his own daughter. All people became enamoured of £iidra women; all
were fascinated by the charms of harlots.
46. People ignored good and honourable men. They hououred those
having committed many sins. Foolishly stubborn persons eagerly pointed
out even a single defect of good men.
47. Defects and blemishes of sinners are spoken of as good quali­
ties. In Kali (Age) all the people devoid of good qualities, take only
defects into account.
48-51. People were endowed with the characteristic quality of the
leech which drinks only blood and not milk, not even water. Medicines
become devoid of (their) potency; the seasons have undergone reverse
changes.
There is famine in all the kingdoms. No woman delivered children
at the right time. In Kali Age, men take great pleasure and interest in
the arts of actors and dancers.
Foolish and stupid persons looked upon honourable men as their
servants—those men who were superior in qualities and were engaged
in the study of Vedas and Vedantas.
People had abandoned $raddha rites. All the people left off the holy
rites laid down in the Vedas. The names of Visnu never occur on their
tongues. The romantic sentiment of love gave them great bliss. They
sang songs of erotic nature.
52. There was no service to Visnu; no discussion of scriptural
topics. There was no initiation for the purpose of sacrifices. There was
not even the least consideration. No pilgrimage was undertaken; no
charitable gifts were given; and no holy rites were performed by people
during Kali Age. It was something surprising.
53. On seeing those things, Dharmavarna became exceedingly
surprised and very much frightened. On seeing the whole race heading
towards destruction, he went to another continent.
54-56. After wandering over all the continents and worlds that in­
telligent (Brahmana) went once to the world of Pitrs out of curiosity.
There he saw his own Manes and ancestors in a terrible plight. Due
to their Karmas, they were exhausted and weary. They ran about here
and there. They cried and lamented. Some of them had fallen into a
blinding dark well. Some were about to fall therein.1

1. The birth of a son for the continuity of the family was looked upon as
essential for providing food and water to the departed forefathers (vv 77-83). This
figurative description of manes about to fall in abysmal depth is found in Mbh and
other Puranas.
116 SkandaPuram

57-60. They were miserably suspended at the tip of a Durva grass.


They were suspicious and afraid of its snapping and giving \yay at any
moment. Then there came a mouse to the very root of the Durva grass.
Three-fpurths of the root were already gnawed and only one part re­
mained. On seeing the root gradually wearing off, they were miserable
with agony.
When they looked down, they saw the blinding dark well exceed­
ingly terrible because of the impending fall of the embankment. It was
very difficult to be surmounted. It was exceedingly terrible. It was
brought about by their own Karmas. They were (therefore) extremely
miserable. The space ahead too was unsurmountable and devoid of any
support.
On seeing them the compassionate Brahmana was wonder-struck
and he spoke these words:
61-66. “Who may you be? What is that insurmountable Karma whereby
you have fallen into this? In whose Gotra were you bom? How will you
get a sure liberation? Tell this and it will be conducive to your wel­
fare.” On being told thus, those Manes became exceedingly miserable
on account of those words. They spoke to him in pitiable tone and
words, they who kept Dharma and §rutis ahead (of everything else).

The Manes said:


We belong to Srivatsa Gotra. We are (almost) devoid of progeny on
the earth. We are denied the Pindas (rice-ball offerings) and Sraddha
rites. Therefore, we are scorched and agonized. It was on account of
the sins that our race became issueless in this Kaliyuga. As the race
has become extinct, there is no one to give us the Pindas. Therefore,
we, the wretched ones, devoid of progeny, are about to fall into the
blinding dark well. There is only one in our race, Dharmavarna of great
reputation. But he is unattached to worldly affairs. He is single (un­
married). He has not adopted the life of a householder.
67. Thanks to this (single) progeny, we somehow hold on, being
supported by the single blade of Durva grass. Since (he) has no progeny
the mouse gnaws at its root everyday.
68. Since only one is remaining a bit of the blade of grass is left.
О gentle Sir, look (how) it is being gnawed by the mouse.
69. At the end of his life, О dear one, the mouse will take away
the rest of the grass too. Thereafter we should fall into the blinding
darkness of the well that cannot be surmounted.
D.vii.22.70-88 117

70. Hence go to the earth and enlighten Dharmavarna, the sage


who is averse to a householder’s life, through our words, as we are
worthy of his compassion:
71-75. “Your ancestors are extremely agonized. They have fallen
into hell. They were seen by me suspended by a Durva blade and about
to fall into the insurmountable blinding darkness of the abysmal well.
That Durva is symbolic of this family. О sage, the mouse is Time and
it gnaws at its root everyday.
The family is gradually heading towards destruction. You alone are
left. Hence, О sage, although three-fourths of the Durva grass have
perished, one part still remains, since you are present on the earth. As
your life wanes away, the mouse goes on eating bit by bit. When you
ultimately die, you and we will fall together in the deep well of blind­
ing darkness as (the family) will be bereft of all progeny.
76. Hence adopt the life of a householder and raise a family. Thereby
you and we shall undoubtedly have the uplift.
77-82. Many sons are to be sought after so that at least one of them
may go to Gaya, or perform a horse-sacrifice or ritualistically dis­
charge a dark-coloured bull.
Even if one of them performs on our behalf, holy bath, $raddha or
charitable gifts in the month of Vai€akha, Magha or Karttika, we shall
be lifted up and be redeemed from hell. One of them will be a devotee
of Visnu. One of them may observe (fast etc.) on the day of Hari (i.e.
on the eleventh lunar day). Or one of them may listen to the sin-de­
stroying story of Visnu. Thereby a hundred generations preceding him
and a hundred generations following him will never see hell even if
they are surrounded by sins.
Of what avail are many other sons devoid of compassion and holy
rites, who, though born in the family, do not certainly worship Visnu,
Narayana?
All people know that a man devoid of a son does not attain good
world. There too, that progeny which is endowed with mercifulness is
very rare.”
83-88. Enlighten him through these kind and sincere words. Though
he is unattached to worldly affairs, make him inclined towards the life
of a householder.

On hearing these words of the ancestors, Dharmavarna was exceed­


ingly surprised and bewildered. He bowed down to them. He cried; he
had a shivering sensation. With palms joined in reverence, he said: “I
118 SkandaPuram

am a member of your family, Dharmavarna by name. I have been per­


tinacious. At the sacrificial chamber I heard the words of Nasada, the
noble-souled (sage), that no one has control over the tongue or the
organ of generation in Kaliyuga. On the earth, 1 saw those sinful people
too. I became frightened and suspicious. Afraid of association with
wicked people, I wandered over the world and stayed in other conti­
nents. Three quarters of Kaliyuga have passed off. Even in the last
quarter, О Pitrs, three and a half parts have passed off.
89-96. I am (was) not aware of your misery. My life has gone in
vain. I did not pay off my debts to the Pitrs of the family where I was
bom. Of what avail is that son born to one, if that son is a burden unto
the earth and an enemy unto one, if that son does not worship Visnu,
Pitrs, Devas and sages? I shall carry out your behest. Command me so
that there is no danger (evil influence) of Kali and there is no trouble
due to worldly existence. Command me as to my duties in the world
as a son.”
On being told thus by the intelligent Dharmavarna who belonged to
their own family, (the Pitrs) became pacified to a little extent in their
minds, О king, and they said thus:
“O son, see this plight of your noble-souled Pitrs. They are about
to fall due to the absence of progeny. They have the support of only
the Durva blade. You do adopt the life of a householder and redeem
us by means of progeny. Those who are attached to the stories of Visnu,
those who remember Hari always, those who are engaged in good con­
duct, are not harassed by Kali. Kali does not afflict that person in
whose house there is a Saligrama stone, О bestower of honour, or in
whose house there is Mahabhdrata.
97. Kali does not afflict that person who is engaged in holy rites
of Vaisakha,1who is devoted to holy bath in the month of Magha and
who offers lamps in the month of Karttika.
98. Kali does not afflict that person who listens everyday to the
story of Visnu, the Supreme Atman, the story that destroys sins, that
is divine and that bestows salvation.
99. Kali does not oppress that person in whose house Vaisvcideva
sacrifice is performed, in whose house there is a splendid TulasT plant
and in whose courtyard there is a splendid cow, an auspicious cow.
100-102. Hence there is nothing to be afraid of in this Yuga, though

1. VV 97-102: VaiSakha Vratas nullified the effects of Kali.


II.vii.22.103-115 119

it is full of sins. Do go to the earth quickly, О dear son. This month


named Madhava (VaiSakha) is conducive to the help of everyone, when
the Sun is in Aries. All the thirty lunar days, when the Sun is in Aries,
are meritorious. A meritorious deed performed in each of these Tithis
shall have crores and crores of times the merit. There too the Amavasya
(new-moon day) in the month of Caitra is a bestower of salvation on
men.
103-108a. It is something that causes delight to Pitrs and Devas. It
brings about salvation immediately.
Those who perform &raddha on behalf of Pitrs on that day, along
with the offerings of rice-balls and a pot of water, will attain inex­
haustible benefit.
О son, if £raddha is performed on the new-moon day in the month
of Caitra, it is as good as &raddha performed in the sacred place of
Gaya and the benefit will be crores of times more.
Even if the £raddha is performed on the new-moon day in the month
of Caitra with mere greens, it is as good as a crore Sraddhas are per­
formed by him at Gaya. There is no doubt about it.
If a person does not offer a pot filled with sweet drinks rendered
fragrant with camphor and agallochum on the new-moon day in the
month of Caitra, he is a murderer of Pitrs. There is no doubt about it.
He who offers a bamboo shoot along with sweet drinks on the new-
moon day in the month of Caitra and performs £raddha rite with great
devotion, causes uplift of the family.
108b-112. Thanks to the gift of the water-pot, a nectar-shedding
river shall flow in the world of the Manes, with cooked rice, pulse,
ghee, sweet pie, foodstuffs to be licked and sipped as well as milk-
puddings forming the marshy bed of that river, in regard to those who
offer Sraddha, charitable gift etc.
Hence, do go quickly and when the new-moon day arrives, О highly
intelligent one, perform the £raddha and the offerings of rice-balls
along with a pot of water. Adopt the life of a householder for the
purpose of helping all. Become satisfied in respect of Dharma, Artha
and Kama. Beget excellent progeny. Thereafter you shall adopt the life
of ascetics and wander over all continents as you please."
On being commanded thus by the Pitrs, the sage hurriedly went to
the earth.
113-115. In the meritorious month of Caitra when the Sun was in
Aries, he took his holy bath in the morning. He performed water liba­
tions to Manes, Devas, and sages. He performed the £raddha rites with
120 SkandaPurana

the offerings of water-pot destructive of sins. Thereby he brought about


the salvation of the Pitrs without return. He married a chaste woman
and begot sons. He made that Tithi that is destructive of sins very
famous in the world.
116-117. He himself then joyously went to Gandhamadana. Hence
this Tithi named Darsa (new-moon day) in the month of Caitra, is
exceedingly meritorious. No other Tithi equal to this is seen or heard.

CHAPTER TWENTYTHREE

The Greatness of Aksaya Trtlya

Srutadeva said:
1-5 Now I shall narrate the sin-destroying special efficacy of
Aksayatrtlya occurring in the bright half of Vaisakha.
All those who take the holy bath early in the morning at sunrise on
that day, shall be rid of sins. They will go to the great region of Visnu.
If a person offers water libation with the Dcvas, Pitrs and sages in
view, it is as good as the performance of Vedic studies, of sacrifices
and of a hundred §raddhas by him.
Men who worship Madhusudana and listen to the (divine) story on
the Aksayatrtlya day are partakers of salvation.
If people make charitable gifts on that day for the propitiation of
the Slayer of Madhu, it will have auspicious and inexhaustible benefit
at the bidding of the Slayer of Madhu (Visnu).
6. This Tithi is exceedingly auspicious. It has Devas, sages and
Pitrs as its deities. It accords satisfaction unto all these three, when
the eternal Dharma is performed (on this day).
7. I shall tell, О tiger among kings, the reason for which this
Tithi has become famous. Listen to it with great mental concentration.
8. Formerly Purandara fought with Bali. Thereafter Devas and
Daityas fought with each other.
9-14. After defeating Bali and forcing him to stay in the nether
worlds, he (Indra) came to the earth once again. He w$nt to the her­
II.vii.23.15-20 121

mitage of (Brhaspati’s brother) Utathya.1There he saw his wife who


was pregnant and hence could walk only very slowly. She was well
adorned with a girdle tied to her tremulous hips. The sweet jingling
sound of the bangles surpassed that of the inebriated bees and cuckoos.
She had beautiful garments of various colours. The beautiful lady was
sweet-voiced with beautiful smiles. Her pair of breasts resembled a
pair of very fine pitchers. Her eyes were like blue lilies. When she
laughed her face resembled a lotus. She appeared very charming with
her pale cheeks resembling the interior of a KetakT flower-bunch. On
account of weariness she took deep breaths. Her eyes indicated her
pitiable plight. She lay somewhere near the entrance to the hut. She
was asleep on her bed. On seeing her, Indra became enamoured and
raped her though she was pregnant.12
15. The foetus in the womb became miserable and feared that it
might fall out. Hence, it closed the vaginal passage by means of its
foot.
16. Thereupon, the seminal fluid of the enemy of Bali became
scattered on the ground. Therefore Lord Indra became furious with the
foetus.
17-19. With the edge of the eyes turned red like copper, he furiously
cursed him: “O wicked one, become blind at the very birth, since you
have insulted me by closing the vaginal passage.” Thereafter, the son
named DTrghatapas was born. (Defective Text) Jalata (?) was bom
from the seminal fluid that was scattered (on the ground) by the foot.
Afterwards Indra was afraid of the curse of the sage and he went away.
All the religious students laughed on seeing Indra running.
20. Thereupon he became ashamed and went to a splendid cave
of Meru. Remaining concealed there, he performed a great and fierce
penance.
1. The story of Indra’s rape and subsequent hiding, Asuras’ conquest of Svarga,
Brhaspati’s attribution of Indra’s act to previous Karmas and request to Indra to
rejoin his only post of Indra, is not known to Mbh, BhP and other Puranas. This
story is found in this Purana only and is meant for the glorification of Aksaya
Trtiya.
As a matter of fact, this Tithi is regarded meritorious as the Kftayuga began
on this day and this Tithi secures permanency to actions performed on this day.
2. In VaP 11.37. 37-42, this shameful rape mentioned in v 14 here is attributed
to Brhaspati who raped his brother A$ija’s wife Mamata, not that of Utathya. The
foetus cursed to be blind by him is Dtrghatamas and not Dirghatapas as given here.
It may be noted that out of 96 incidents about Indra recorded in the Puranic
Encyclopedia not a single one mentions this act with reference to Utathya’s wife
and his subsequent hiding ш Ml. Meru.
122 SkandaPurana

21-26. When Devendra resided on Meru, lying concealed there on


account of shame, Bali and other Daityas came to know of it through
spies. They attacked Suras and rejoiced at Amaravatl. Bali became
Indra. The powerful ones including $ambara enjoyed the prosperity and
riches of the Guardians of the Quarters, when the kingdom of the heaven-
dwellers became devoid of a lord. Unable to know where their protec­
tor was, Devas with Agni at their head asked holy Lord Dhisana (i.e.
Jupiter or Brhaspati), the sinless preceptor of Devas. They asked him
about Indra: “Where does our lord stay? This kingdom of the heaven-
dwellers is devoid of its leader (and hence) it is attacked by Daityas.
Why does the lord not return? A great deal of time has elapsed. О holy
lord, О Dhisana, we shall go to him at the place where he is (now).
We shall request him.” On being asked thus by Devas, Dhisana said
to them:
27-28. “After conquering Bali in Rasatala (nether worlds), he went
to the hermitage of Utathya. He forcibly enjoyed (the sage’s) wife and
was censured by his disciples. He is ashamed to come back to heaven.
So he has entered a cave of Meru. The Lord continues to stay there
accompanied by Sac!. He is thinking about his own (shameful) act.”
29-30. On hearing these words of his, Devas with Agni as their
leader, hurriedly went to the cave of Mountain Meru in order to see
the lord and request him. On seeing Devendra, the chastiser of Рака,
remaining hidden in the cave they eulogized him by means of eulogies
extolling his vigour and exploits as well, well-known in the worlds.
31. “O Indra, obeisance to you, the lord of all the Devas. We are
harassed by the Daityas. Without you we are extremely afflicted and
dejected.
32. We are dislodged from our abodes and we wander in different
lands in great misery. Hence, О Devendra, come and kill the enemies,
О suppressor of enemies.”
33. On being eulogized by Devas thus, he came through the en­
trance of the cave. Due to sense of shame, he had bent down his head
and he remained gazing at the ground with his eyes.
34. He did not say anything, because his speech was choked on
account of sadness. On coming to know of it, Dhisana spoke to Surendra
who was afraid:
35-38. “O lord of Suras, do not be afraid or suspicious. This universe
depends upon Karma. Honour and dishonour, happiness and misery, profit
and loss and victory and defeat—all these occur to one in accordance
with the previous Karmas. There is no doubt about it. The individual
H.vii.23.39-48 123

soul closely follows the Karmas. Misery is accorded by fate in due


course. Wise men do not bewail generally (when there is adversity).
They are not elated when there is happiness. Hence, this misery has
befallen you on account of the Karma that has started its fruition (ef­
fect), О lord. О Maghavan, having attained that misery, it does not
behove you to lament over it.”
On being told thus by his preceptor, Indra spoke to the overlords
of the Devas:

Indra said:
39-41. On account of the sexual contact with another man’s wife,
my strength, vigour, pure reputation, the power of Mantras, the power
of scriptural texts and the power of learning—all these have vanished.
Hence I remain silent.

On hearing the words of Indra, all Devas accompanied by their pre­


ceptor had a confidential meeting to devise means to restore his power
once again. Then Guru (Brhaspati), the most excellent one among those
who are conversant with things, spoke in a piteous tone.

Brhaspati said:
42. This month is Vaisakha by name. It is liked much by the
Slayer of Madhu. In this month all the lunar days are meritorious. It
is the most favourite month of Madhava.
43-45. There too in the bright half of this month (the third day)
named Aksaya (is the most favourite). If anyone performs holy bath,
charitable gift, etc. with faith, thousands of his sins do perish. There
is no doubt about it. His prosperity will be free from blemishes. He
will acquire strength and courage. Hence for the sake of attaining the
benefit, we shall make Indra perform all the good holy rites such as
holy bath, charitable gift etc. (on the Aksaya Trtlya day).
46. He will regain that power of Vidya, Mantra and scriptural
texts. He will have strength, courage and reputation as before.

47. After conferring thus along with the Devas, Guru (i.e. Jupiter)
made Indra perform all these holy rites which delight Hari.
48. He made him perform all those holy rites which yield worldly
pleasures, on the third lunar day named Aksaya. Thereby the courage,
strength etc. of the lord attained the previous level.
124 Skanda Parana

49. The sin of sexual contact with another man's wife disappeared
immediately. Thereafter Sakra, whose inauspiciousness was destroyed,
became like the Moon liberated from Rahu.
50-55. Like Visnu he shone amidst the Devas. Afterwards accom­
panied by Devas he defeated Asuras. It was due to the great potency
of the TrtTya that he entered AmaravatT with all glory and a fanfare
of conchs and musical instruments. Permitted by $akra the Suras went
to their respective abodes. Then they got back their shares in the Yajnas
as before. Pitrs got their shares of the rice-balls as before. The sages
were contented with the study of the Vedas. The Daityas faced defeat.
Ever since then the TrtTya named Aksaya became famous in all the
worlds. It bestowed satisfaction on the Devas, sages and Pitrs. Hence
this is highly meritorious. It destroys all Karmas. The TrtTya named
Aksaya yields worldly pleasures and salvation to men.

CHAPTER TWENTYFOUR

Salvation of a Bitch: Importance o f Dvadasi

Srutadeva said:
1-5. Of these meritorious Tithis,1the twelfth day in the bright half
of the month of Vaigakha, О great king, is destructive of all masses
of sins.
If DvadagT is not resorted to (i.e. observed religiously) by people,
of what avail are charitable gifts, penances, observances of fasts, holy
rites, sacrifices and rites of public utility such as digging of wells
etc.?
By taking the holy bath on the day of Hari in the morning, one
obtains that benefit which is usually obtained by one who gifts away
a thousand cows on the banks of Gariga during an eclipse.
If cooked rice is given on the twelfth day in the auspicious bright
half of Vaigakha, each lump of the rice offered is equal in merit to
feeding a crore of Brahmanas.
One who gives a pot of gingelly seeds along with honey on the

l. In this Mahatmya, the Tithis specially described as meritorious are the new-
moon day, EkadalT, Trtiyi and Dvadatf. Hence the plural Tithi$u. PdP adds SaptamT
(7th day) to the list of these special days.
II.vii.24.6-22a 125

twelfth day, rids himself of all bondages and is honoured in the world
of Visnu.
6. One should perform the Jagarana (‘keeping awake*) of Hari on
the eleventh day of the bright half. One shall then be a living-liberated
soul. All the deities shall be delighted.
7. By taking the holy bath on Hart’s day early in the morning,
one obtains that benefit which is obtained by plunging into the TTrthas
during crores of lunar and solar eclipses.
8. One should worship Visnu with tender leaves of TulasI on the
DvadaST day. One shall then redeem the entire family and become the
lord of the world of Visnu.
[Interpolation: Worship of A^vattha tree with flowers and leaves of
TulasI (must be performed). If flowers etc. are not available, one shall
worship Madhusudana by means of grains.]1
9-11. Listen to the merit of that person who gives rice mixed with
curds, a pot of water and appropriate monetary gifts on the twelfth day
in the bright half of Vai$akha. At the bidding of the Chastiser of Madhu
(Visnu), he obtains that merit which is obtained by one who feeds a
crore of persons every year throughout with delicious dishes having all
the six tastes.
12. One who makes the gift of a Saligrama stone on the twelfth
day in the bright half of Vai€akha is rid of all sins.
13. If the devotee bathed Madhusudana with milk on the twelfth
day, the merit obtained thereby is equal to that which is obtained by
performing Rajasuya and horse-sacrifices.
14. For the propitiation of Madhusudana, one should worship Visnu
on the thirteenth day with various materials such as sugar and honey
mixed with milk and curds.
15-22a. (Thereby) he attains that result on the banks of Ganga. There
is no doubt about it (?)
One who devoutly bathes Lord Visnu with Pahcamita shall redeem
the entire family. He is honoured in the world of Visnu.
He who offers sweet drinks in the evening on this day for the plea­
sure of Hari, immediately casts off old sins like a serpent casting off
old slough.
One who gives sweet concoction of cucumber in the evening shall
become liberated from the bondage of Karmas thereby.
The devotee should give sugarcane, mango fruit and grapes; there
1. The interpolation is probably due to the influence of PdP where the worship
of A£vattha with flowers and TulasF leaves is prescribed.
/26 SkandaPurana

will not be any break in his line up to a hundred generations.


He who gives sweet scents and unguents in the evening on the twelfth
day, will be liberated from all external attacks. There is no doubt
about this.
Whatever meritorious deed one performs on the twelfth day in the
bright half of Vai$akha, shall yield inexhaustible merit, О excellent
king.1 I shall tell how this has become popular, О king, how it is
destructive of all sins, and how it bestows all auspiciousness.
22b-26. Formerly, in the land of КаЗтТга, there was a Brahmana
named Devavrata. He had a very beautiful daughter named MalinT. He
gave her (in marriage) to Satya€Tla, an intelligent, excellent Brahmana.
The intelligent one went to his own land named Yavana after marrying
her. Though she was richly endowed with beauty and youth, he was not
much enamoured of her. He was always cruel towards her and hated
her, О king. The husband did not hate anyone except her. She became
furious with him and was eager to win him over, О king. The young
woman asked those ladies who had been abandoned by their husbands
earlier.
27-32. She was told by them, О king: “Your husband shall definitely
come under your control. We have been insulted by being forsaken by
our husbands. It is our firm belief that (many) husbands were earlier
brought under control by using medicinal potions etc. You do go to one
YoginT today. She will give you splendid medicine or drug. You need
not at all entertain suspicions to the contrary. Your husband will begin
to behave like a slave.”12
At their instance, the woman of evil deeds went to the abode of the
YoginT, О king, and obtained very great favour from her. She hurriedly
went to her cottage that had a hundred columns. It was spacious and
very brilliant. It was sufficiently large. The YoginT had covered herself
with a long cloth. Her matted locks of hair were very long. She was
highly refulgent. There were many to attend upon her. She glanced at
her slowly.
33-38. With a rosary in her hand, she was engaged in Japa. On being
requested by the (Brahmana lady) the YoginT gave her a magic spell
that could agitate, that could create confidence and that could win

1. After describing the various pious, charitable acts to be performed on the


Dvadaft day of Vai&kha, the author gives the story of a bitch to illustrate the
greatness of Dvidafi day.
2. Many women (and men as well) believe in such T&ntrikas and get them­
selves cheated like MalinT in this story.
n.vii.24.39-51 127

over (anyone). Then she bowed down (to the YoginI) and gave her a
ring of great value that was studded with diamonds and rubies, that had
a very brilliant red lustre, that was made of gold soft to the touch and
that had the refulgence on a par with the rays of the sun.
On seeing the ring placed at her feet, the YoginI became delighted.
She could understand the reaction in her heart due to the disregard of
her husband. The (Brahmana lady) was told thus, О king, by the ascetic
woman engaged in her welfare: “This powder along with this amulet
is powerful enough to captivate all living beings. Give the powder to
your husband and wear the amulet round your neck. Your husband can
be won over. He will not approach any other beautiful woman. He will
not utter anything displeasing to you, even if you misbehave.”
39-45. With the powder and the amulet she came back to her husband’s
house. At dusk, the powder was administered to her husband in milk.
The amulet was tied round her neck. She did not feel worried there­
after. The husband (of the lady) who had drunk the milk along with the
powder, О most excellent king, became afflicted with consumption due
to that powder. He became tired and worn out day by day. Worms and
germs grew in abundance in the awfully putrefying wounds. Within a
few days the condition of the husband became exceedingly critical.
But she lived as she was pleased with her vicious deeds and union with
different men.
The husband whose natural lustre and brilliance perished and whose
sense-organs became disordered continued to lament day and night. He
said to her: “O splendid lady, I am your slave. I seek refuge in you.
Save me. I do not at all wish for any other woman.” On realizing his
plight, she became afraid, О king. She desired that her husband should
continue to live not because she wanted his welfare, but because she
wanted him as her ornament. She immediately went to the YoginI and
said everything to her.
46. A second drug was handed over to her for quelling the burning
sensation. When the drug was administered the husband got relief in­
stantaneously and regained his normal health.
47-51. The paramour (of hers) stayed on in the house under the pre­
text of attending to some domestic work (of urgency). She had lovers
belonging to all castes and creeds, all staying in the house itself. The
husband was powerless to say anything (against her). Yet, the sin
arising from her misdeeds produced germs in her body. They pierced
her bones. They were like Kala, the annihilator, and Yama, the con­
troller. Holes were made by them in the nose, tongue and ears as well
128 Skanda Parana

as in the breasts. The fingers became split. She became lame and
ultimately she died. She met with hellish tortures. She was roasted and
boiled in a copper cauldron for one hundred and fifty thousand years.
She was then reborn repeatedly a hundred times as a bitch.
52? She always had some defect, e.g. the nose cut or the ears split.
Her head became infested with worms always. Sometimes the tail was
cut or a foot broken. She was flogged in every house.
53. Afterwards, she was born as a bitch in the house of the maid­
servant of Brahmana Padmabandhu in the land of Sauvlra. In this life
too she suffered from many miseries.
54. She had her nose cut, ears split, eyes damaged and the tail
amputated. She was greatly bewildered. The head became infested
with worms and the vaginal passage too became infected and putrefied.
55-57. Thus, О king, thirty years passed by in this birth. As good
luck would have it, as a result of her own Karma (the following events
happened). On the twelfth day in the bright half of Vai£akha month,
when the Sun was in Aries, Padmabandhu’s son took his bath in a river
and went home with his clothes fully drenched, with bodily and mental
purity. He went near the raised platform for TulasT plants and washed
his feet. Beneath the platform the bitch lay asleep.1
58. In the morning, at the time of sunrise, she was bathed in the
waters with which the feet were washed. Immediately all the inaus­
piciousness perished and she had the recollection of her previous births.
59-64. Recollecting the deeds committed by her previously, that
bitch howled piteously saying “O sage, save me.” Recollecting her
evil actions she described them to the great ascetic. She was exceed­
ingly frightened. She told him how she administered poison to her husband
and what all wicked things she did. “O Brahmana, if any other young
woman were to administer drug for winning over her husband she will
be wicked in conduct. Her Dharma will be futile. She will be fried
and cooked in (in the hell named Tamrabhajana or) copper vessels (in
the hells).
Husband is the leader and support; husband is the preceptor. Hus­
band is the excellent deity. If she acts detrimentally (to her husband),
how can a chaste woman attain happiness? She will be reborn hundred
times among lower animals. She will be born hundreds of times and
crores of times as a worm. Hence, О Brahmana, the behests of their
husband must be carried out by women.

1. Redemptions from sins by coincidences is found to be a favourite device.


li.v\i.24.65-80 \29

I too foresee despicable ill births full of tortures, О Brahmana, if


you do not redeem me today even as I have come in front of you.
65-69. Hence uplift me, О Brahmana, though I have been a sinner
full of misdeeds, by offering me your merits. You have performed many
meritorious deeds on the twelfth day in the bright half of the month
of Vaigakha, increasing your good merits by means of holy baths, chari­
table gifts and feeding (learned men) with cooked rice. Though 1 have
been wicked in conduct, О Brahmana, I will be liberated thereby. О
Brahmana, one who takes holy bath on that day even in his own house,
shall undoubtedly attain the benefits of all the Tirthas. Penances, gifts,
Homas and worship of Devas and other holy rites, if performed on the
DvadagT day, shall have inexhaustible benefits. If you have any such
benefit to your credit give it entirely to me.
70. Give me the merit that you have acquired by observing fast
on the DvadagI day and Parana on the thirteenth day. Give that too to
me. Obviously, I will attain salvation thereby.
71-75. О highly fortunate one, take pity on me, the wretched one.
You are sympathetic to the pitiable and the wretched. Janardana is the
lord of the poor; he is the lord of the universe. He is your lord. All
those who belong to him are like him. As is the king, so are the sub­
jects. О destroyer of the region (or hell) of Yama, save me. I am extremely
miserable. I am a piteous bitch staying at your door. О sage, kind to
the wretched, save me. This auspicious Tithi burns the sins of a thou­
sand murders of Brahmanas, a thousand slaughters of cows and crores
of sexual intercourses with forbidden women. О great sage, give unto
me the great merit that you have earned through what has been per­
formed by you on that Tithi. Lift me up, I am in agony. О lord, save
me. In the end, I offer you obeisance, О Brahmana. Obeisance to you,
the eminent Brahmana/’
76-80. On hearing these words of the bitch, the son of the sage spoke
to her: “O bitch, all creatures experience both happiness and sorrow
as a result of what they themselves have done. Hence what is there
to be done by you, an insignificant creature? As a result of your sinful
conduct, your husband, a Brahmana, was won over through the amulet,
powdered drug etc.
A sin committed against good men shall cause misery to oneself.
A meritorious deed performed in favour of honourable and good men
shall be destructive of misery.
If both these are done against or in favour of sinners, they will cause
only sin and misery like sweetened milk offered to a serpent which
130 SkandaPurana

increases its poisonous nature.”


When the son of the sage said thus, the bitch became extremely sad.
She groaned loudly and howled once again in front of his father speak­
ing as follows:
81-86. ”0 Padmabandhu, save the bitch that stays at your very door,
that eats what is left over by you everyday. Save me. This is the opinion
of those who are conversant with the Vedas, that those people should
be redeemed and lifted up by a noble-souled householder, who are to
be nurtured and fed by him. Candalas, crows and dogs are always objects
of compassion. They partake of the oblations everyday.
If he does not redeem a person who should be nurtured and fed,
especially when the person is weak and afflicted with sickness etc.,
he will fall down. There is no doubt about it. This is the opinion of
those who are conversant with the Vedas.
Hari, the maker of the worlds, has created another maker (i.e. Brahma)
and protects him himself. He protects all the creatures. In the same
manner persons serving oneself known as wives etc. should be pro­
tected by persons in power. It is Hari’s behest that dependents should
be protected.
87-88a. If any living being neglects his duty of protecting his de­
pendents and turns his attention elsewhere, whether by chance or in­
tentionally, he is an enemy of the Lord. He is the murderer of everyone.
He goes to the worlds of Yama. Since it is your duty and since you
are merciful, redeem me who am in a miserable state.”
88b-89. On hearing these words of that (bitch) who was distressed,
the son remained in the house, but Padmabandhu, the storehouse of
mercy, hurried out of the house. He asked her, “What is this?” The
son recounted everything. On hearing the words of his son he was surprised
very much. He said to him:

Padmabandhu said:
90. О my son, how is it that such words were uttered by you?
These are not the words of good men, О son of excellent countenance.
91-92. Sinners who do everything for the sake of their own happiness
are treated with contempt. See, my son, all people (should work) for
helping others. The moon, the sun, wind, night, fire, water, sandalwood,
trees and good people—all these help others.
93. On coining to know that Daityas were exceedingly powerful,
the gift of his own bones was made by DadhTci mercifully for helping
Devas.
ILvii.24.94-106 131

94. О highly fortunate one, formerly his own flesh was given to
a hungry hawk for the sake of (helping) a dove by king $ibi.
95. There was a king formerly on the earth named JTmiitavahana.
His life was surrendered by him too for the noble-souled Garuda.
96-98. Hence a learned Brahmana must be merciful. Lord (Indra)
showers rain on the pure ones. But does he not shower rain on the
impure ones (too)? Does not the moon always illuminate the house of
Candalas too? Hence I will redeem this bitch who is repeatedly en­
treating by means of my own merits just as one lifts up a cow sinking
into mire.

Thus the highly intelligent one promised after repudiating his son:
99-103. “The great merit arising from the Dvada£T day is given, is
given. О Bitch, go to the abode of Hari, rid of all your sins."
At these words she suddenly cast off her old worn out body. She
became a splendid (lady) having a divine form. She had the refulgence
of a hundred suns comparable to Goddess Savitrl. She took leave of
that Brahmana and went away brightening the ten quarters.
She enjoyed excellent pleasures in heaven and afterwards was born
on the earth from Nara and Narayana, the lord, under the name UrvaST.1
By the power of the twelfth day in the bright half of Vai£akha she
became a favourite of Devas and attained the state of a celestial damsel.
104-106. The bitch became a goddess. She attained the form which
can be attained by Yogins, has the refulgence of fire and is very ex­
cellent and worthy of being coveted, is the highest object of desire,
having attained which even saints become deluded.
Afterwards Padmabandhu made that Tithi popular—that Tithi which
increases merit and which is very dear to Visnu. It is superior to a
crore of lunar and solar eclipses; it is more meritorious than all the
merits put together; it surpasses even all the Yajnas put together. Such
a tithi was made famous in all the three worlds by that Brahmana.

1. This new information regarding the previous birth of UrvaST is untraced


in VR and in Mbh and BhP. The tale is specially meant for the glorification of
this Vai£&kha Vrata.
132 SkandaPurana

CHAPTER TWENTYFIVE

The Conclusion

Srutadeva said:
1-4. The three meritorious Tithis, toward the end of the bright half,
ending with the full-moon day, in the month of Vaisakha,1 are very
auspicious.
The last Tithis are called Puskarinl. They are destructive of all
sins. If one is incompetent to take holy bath throughout the month of
Vaisakha, he should take bath in these Tithis. He will get the full
benefit. All the Devas come on the Trayoda^T day and sanctify crea­
tures.
On the full-moon day they appear here along with Visnu and all the
Tirthas. On the CaturdaSI day Devas sanctify these along with Yajnas.
5-8. They sanctify everyone whether (he be) a murderer of a Brahmana
or a drink-addict. It was on the Ekadasi day in the month of VaiSakha
that the splendid nectar appeared formerly. On the Dvadasi day it was
guarded by Visnu, the powerful one. On the TrayodasT day Hari made
the Devas drink the nectar. On the CaturdaSI the Lord killed the Daityas
who were antagonistic to Devas. On the full-moon day the Devas regained
their sovereignty. Thereupon, the exceedingly delighted Devas granted
boons to these three Tithis. Out of delight their eyes beamed like full
blown (lotuses).
9. These three Tithis of the month of VaiSakha are very auspi­
cious. They bestow sons, grandsons and other benefits on men. They
are conducive to the destruction of sins.
10. A base man who does not take bath throughout this month,
shall obtain the full benefit by taking the holy bath on these three
Tithis.
11. A man who does not take the holy bath or does not perform
the holy rites or make charitable gifts etc. during these three Tithis
too, is reborn in the womb of a Candala woman and then falls into
Raurava hell.

1. The author follows Purnimanta masa—the calendar in which the month ends
with Purnima, full-moon day. Hence the importance of the last three 'Pu$karinV
Tithis, viz. 13th, 14th and 15th (full moon) of VaUakha. if one observes Vailakha
Vratas on these Tithis, he gets full result of complete observance of this Vrata.
Though verse 2 calls these collectively ‘PuskarinT*, the name real1y,designates only
the full-moon day (v 18).
II.vii.25.12-24 133

12. He who takes hot-water bath on the three days of Vaigakha


falls into Raurava hell and stays there as long as fourteen Indras rule.
13. He who does not offer cooked rice mixed with curds with Pitrs
in view, is reborn in Pigaca species and remains there till the annihi­
lation of all living beings.
14. If a restraint is made on desires actively pursuing their ob­
jects in the month of Vaigakha, he will certainly attain Sayujya with
Visnu. There is no doubt about it.
15. If a person who is incompetent to observe restraints through­
out the month does it on these three days, he attains the entire benefit
and rejoices in the abode of Visnu.
16-17. “If a man does not manifestly perform holy bath and other
rites with Devas, Pitrs, preceptor and Visnu in view, we (i.e. the Devas)
will curse him that he will be devoid of progeny, long life and wel­
fare.”
The Devas granted these boons formerly and went to their respec­
tive abodes.
18. Hence the three Tithis are meritorious and destructive of all
masses of sins. The group of the three last ones is called PuskarinI and
is conducive to the increase of sons and grandsons.
19. A woman endowed with good fortune who gives at least once
sweet pie and milk pudding to a Brahmana on the full-moon day, shall
obtain a renowned son.
20. If a person reads the Bhagavad-GIta1during the last three days,
he will obtain the benefits of (many) horse-sacrifices for each day.
There is no doubt about this.
21. Who in heaven or on the earth is competent to recount the
merit of that person who reads ‘The Thousand Names’ (Visnu-sahasra-
nama) during the (last) three days?
22. By bathing Lord Madhusudana with milk, (repeating) the thou­
sand names (Visnu-sahasra-nama), one goes to the sinless world of
Visnu.
23. If a person worships Madhusudana by means of all his riches,
his worlds do not perish even during the annihilation at the close of
the Yugas, Kalpas etc.
24. If the month of Vaigakha passes by and a person does not take
the holy bath or make charitable gifts, he is a slayer of a Brahmana,
I. VV 20-26 show that the three Vaisnavite Texts—Bhagavad GTta, Vi$nu-
sahasra-nama and £rimad Bhagavata had a special place in Vaisnavas* life. Hence
the special prescription of the reading etc. of these texts.
134 SkandaPurana

a murderer of his preceptor and slaughterer of the Pitrs.


25. One who reads half of a verse or even one-fourth of a verse
from Bhagavata everyday during the month of Vaigakha, attains the
state of Brahman (i.e. salvation).
26. He who listens to the sacred text of Bhagavata during these
three days is not contaminated by sins like a leaf of lotus that is not
affected by water.
27. By resorting to (i.e. observing Vai£akha Vrata on) these three
days the state of Devas has been attained by some men, the state of
Siddhas by some and salvation by some.
28-30. Salvation is attained through knowledge of Brahman or through
death at Prayaga or by taking the holy bath invariably throughout the
month of Vai€akha.
By letting loose a black bull and by taking the holy bath, a man is
liberated from all bondages and attains the greatest region.
By giving a cow along with her calf to an eminent Brahmana who
suffers on account of a large family, one will be rid of the danger of
premature or accidental death here, and shall attain the greatest region
hereafter.
31. One who is devoid of holy bath and charitable gifts on the
full-moon day of the month of Vai£akha takes rebirth as a dog hundred
times. Thereafter, he is born as a worm in faeces.
32. All the thirty-five million TTrthas in the three worlds gathered
together for mutual discussion as they were afraid of masses of sins.1
33. “Sinful persons come and shed off their dirt in us. How can
this accumulated dirt be got rid of?” This was their worry.
34-38a. They went to Lord Hari and sought refuge in him because
he is worthy of being sought refuge in and because his very foot is the
source of a TTrtha. After eulogizing him with many hymns, they promptly
requested him:
“O Lord of Devas, О Lord of the universe, О destroyer of all masses
of sins, sinful persons take bath in us and cast off all their sins in us.
They go to your region. They had been carrying out your behest on the
earth. О Janardana, how will our sin perish? We are desirous of your
feet as our refuge and resort to them. Tell us the means thereof.”
On being entreated thus, Lord Hari, the sanctifier of all living beings,
laughingly spoke to those Tirthas, in a voice resembling thunder in
sonority.

1. VV 32-47 exhort the need and importance of early bath in Tirthas.


Il.vii .25.385-51 135

&гТBhagavan said:
38b-43. During the three days towards the close of the bright half
of the month of Vaigakha when the Sun is in Aries, which is as dear
to me as my vital airs, all of you do flood over the water that is present
in the open air. It is meritorious and full of all the TTrthas(?) Thereby
you will be rid of those sins. You will have meritorious forms free from
impurities. May the sins dropped into you all by people and then dis­
charged by you all stay in those persons who do not take the holy bath
during all those three days.

Thus Visnu whose foot is the source of origin of TTrthas, granted


boons unto the TTrthas.
After permitting them (to go), the Lord vanished there itself by
means of his Yogic power. They went to their respective abodes. Every
year during those last three days in Vaigakha all those TTrthas dis­
charge the mass of their sins and become free from impurities.
44-50. “May those who do not take the holy bath during the last
three days in Vaigakha become the recipients of the sins of all the
people.” This is the curse that the TTrthas give to those who do not
take bath.
There is no other sinner on a par with one who does not take the
holy bath in the course of the three days. Even after poring over all the
scriptural texts, such a one is not seen or heard. Hence the rites of holy
bath, charitable gifts, worship etc. must be performed on all the three
days. Otherwise one falls into Naraka and stays there as long as four­
teen Indras reign.
Thus everything has been recounted to you, О highly intelligent
£rutakTrti.
Everything that you had asked about the greatness of Vaigakha has
been recounted to you in accordance with what was seen and heard (by
me). This treatise on the glory of Vaigakha has been explained by
Madhava (himself).
Even Brahma is not competent to recount it entirely even in hun­
dreds of years.
Formerly on the top of Kailasa Sartkara himself recounted the great­
ness of Vaigakha to ParvatT who asked him (about it). He recounted it
for a period of a hundred years. Still the topic could not be exhausted.
He stopped because he was not capable of proceeding further.
51. Excepting Visnu, the Lord of the worlds, Narayana who is free
from ailments, who indeed can describe the excellent glory (of the
136 SkandaPuram

month) in its entirety?


52-55a. Formerly with a desire for the welfare of all the people, all
the sages wished to explain a small bit of the sin-destroying greatness.
But no one reached the limit of explanation, as he was incapable, О
king.
You also do perform charitable gifts and other holy rites in the
month of Vai$akha. Thereby you will obtain worldly pleasures and
salvation. There is no doubt about it.

After enlightening thus the king of Mithila named Janaka, Srutadeva


thought of taking leave of him and go.
55b-59. That saintly king shed tears of joy and his eyes became
bedimmed thereby. For the sake of his own prosperity, he celebrated
a grand festival of great charm.
He made the sage sit in a palanquin and circumambulate the entire
village. He himself followed him accompanied by the army consisting
of four divisions. They then returned to the inner apartments. The king
placed before him all sorts of riches, garments, ornaments, cows, plots
of land, gingelly seeds and gold. He circumambulated the sage, bowed
down to him and stood in front of him with palms joined in reverence.
Thereafter Srutadeva of great refulgence and reputation, became ex­
ceedingly delighted and contented. The sage then went back to his
abode.
60-61. Holy bath, charitable gift, worship and listening to the story
on the thirteenth and fourteenth as well as on the full-moon day—these
are the holy rites. One who is devoted to holy rites of Vaisakha shall
attain salvation as in the case of DhanaSarma,1the Brahmana, and the
Pretas before.12

1. The story is given in Vaisakha Mahatmya in PdP.


2. This is a reference to PdP, Patala Khanda 98.45-111. Dhana£arma, a
Brahmana from MadhyadeSa, met three Pi£acas. Being afraid and uttering Visnu’s
name he asked them who they were. Being pleased to hear the name of the god
they told him their names Krtaghna ( ‘ungrateful one*), Vidaivata (‘God-less*), A-
vai$akha (non-observer of Vai$akha-Vrata). The last one who happened to be the
father of Dhana£arma told him (Dhanalarma) to convey his message to his son
(Dhanaforma) to observe holy bath, make religious gifts, worship and listen to
Vi$nu’s tales on these last three days of Vailakha and give the merit thereof to
them. Dhana£arma did it and the Pi£acas were redeemed.
The last three days of Vaisakha are associated with the following important
episodes:
13th day: (i) Visnu made Devas drink Amrta. Devas regained their kingdom (v 7)
H.vii.25.62-69 137

Narada said:
62-64. Thus, О AmbarTsa, the great narrative has been recounted to
you. By listening to it one can destroy all the sins. It brings about all
riches. Thereby one obtains worldly pleasures and salvation and per­
fect knowledge.

On hearing his words AmbarTsa of great renown became very pleased


within. All his external activities ceased. He bowed down his head and
fell on the ground like a log of wood.
65-67a. He adored him by means of all his riches. After being adored,
Narada, the sage, took leave of him and went to another world. The
intelligent sage cannot stay in one place due to a curse.
AmbarTsa, the saintly king, performed these splendid holy rites
mentioned by Narada. Thereby he got merged into the Supreme Brah­
man devoid of attributes.

Suta said:
67b-69. He who listens to or reads this great story that destroys sins
and increases merit attains the greatest goal. Salvation is within the
reach of those persons in whose house a manuscript of this book exists,
О bestowers of honour. What to speak of those who listen to it them­
selves!

:: End of Vaigakhamasa-Mahatmya ::

(ii) VisQu killed Hiranyaksa.


14th day: (i) Visnu killed Devas’ opponents.
(ii) Vi$nu killed demon Madhu.
15th Day: (i) Devas re-established in their kingdom.
(ii) Vi$nu uplifted the earth from the ocean.
B ook II: V A ISN A V A K H A N D A

S ection VIII: AY O D H Y A -M A H A TM Y A

CHAPTER ONE

The G rea tn ess of V isnuhari

O beisance to Sri G anesa

The narration o f the glory o f A yod hya1 is begun.


1. V ictorious is Vyasa, the son o f Para£ara, the delighter o f the
heart o f SatyavatT. The entire universe drinks the literary nectar
issuing from the lotus-like mouth o f (that sage).
2. A fter bow ing to Narayana, Nara, the excellen t one among
m en,12 and G oddess SarasvatT, one should recite J a y a (the Purana).3

V yasa said:

3-14. Rama, the noble-souled king, performed a Sattra (sacri­


fice) lasting for twelve years in the great holy spot named Kuruksetra4.

1. Ayodhya: The captial city of kings of Ik$vaku dynasty to which Da&arathi


Rama, the most righteous king, belonged. It is known as Saketa in the Buddhist
Literature and in Patanjali (cf Sageda of Ptolemy). Due to the international popularity
of Rama the ancient rulers of Thailand named their capital as Ayuthia (Ayodhya).
It was Unassailable’ hence it was called "A-yodhya” (a popular etymology). Maybe
due to the greatness of Rama it heads the list of seven Indian cities “giving Mok$a
to their residents”, the other such cities being Mathura, Mayi (Haridwar), КШ,
KaficT (Conjeveram), AvantI (Ujjain), (Jagannatha) Pun, Dvaraka.
Due to the association of various incidents of Rama’s life therewith and its
religious efficacy, a Mahatmya (glorious description) came to be written about it
(Ayodhya).
2. Narottama may mean Vyasa also— Commentary.
3. This benedictory verse shows that the author wrote this independent work on
a par with Mbh. 'Jaya' originally was restricted to Bharata but was later used to
indicate a Purana or a Purnic work like a Mahatmya of a TTrtha.
4. Kuruksetra: Thaneswar and the area including Sonepat, Panipat, Kamal in
Haryana. It was a land situated between SarasvatT on the north and DfsadvatT on the
south (Mbh, Vana 83.204-205), Like Naimi$iranya, Kuruksetra is associated with
Sattras (sacrifices of long duration). The Mahilmya-writer is innocent of the geo­
graphical limits of Rama’s kingdom. So he makes Rama, a performer of a Sattra at
Kuruksetra. VR ends with Yuddha-КВДа (the Uttara Kanda is spurious). VR up to
the end of Yuddha Kanda does not give the credit of such a sacrifice to R&ma.
140 Skanda Purana

Holy sages from various places had been invited and they had
assembled there. All the sages who had mastered the Vedas and
were the inhabitants of Himalayas, the residents of Naimisa forest1
(had come there with their disciples).
(Sages) who were great souls, knowers of all the three times
(i.e. past, present and future), those who resided in Arbuda (Mt.
Abu) forest, Dandaka forest, Mahendra mountain, Vindhya moun­
tain, Jariibu forest, banks of Godavari, Varanasi, the residents of
Mathura, celibate ones, those dwelling at UjjayinI, those who had
resorted to Dvaraka and Badarika£rama, the residents of Mayapurl
(Haridwar) and Kanti (KancI)—all these and many other sages
devoid of impurities had come there along with their disciples.
All of them were pure in mind. They had mastered Vedas and
Vedangas. After their holy bath they performed Japa and other
holy rites duly with Bharadvaja (? Bharadvaja), the master of
Vedas and Vedangas as their leader, they occupied different kinds
of seats such as Brsl etc. in their due order.
They discussed different kinds of TIrthas during the intervals
between two holy rites. Seated comfortably they talked to one
another freely.
Towards the end of the discussions of those sages of purified
souls, Suta12, the highly intelligent sage of great refulgence, came
there. His name was Romaharsana. He was a disciple of Vyasa.
He was conversant with the Puranas.
After making obeisance to those sages in their proper order and
after being permitted by the sages, he too sat down. The pure and
excellent sages, Bharadvaja (?) and others, asked the excellent
sage, Suta Romaharsana:

1. Naimisa Forest: Generally taken as Nimsar, near the Nimsar Station of the
former Oudh-Rohilkhand railway (De 135) But V.V. Mirashi has shown it to be
somewhere in Sultanpur District, some 40 miles from Ayodhya (Purana X.I.34). VaP
1.1.10.12 records a Naimisa forest at Kuruksetra where AdhisTma Krsna performed
a Sattra.
2. Suta: It is the name of the subcaste of the Purana narrator Romaharsana A
Suta is an offspring of a Brahmana female and a K$atriya male (Manu X. 11; Yajfiavalkya
1.93). He was not eligible for Vedic Studies but could recite Itihasa and Purana. At
the time of Kauplya, the reciter of a Purana, “Pauranika”, had a higher status as
a sage (Arthasastra III.7). Later Purana-writers (tike the present writer) confirmed
his status. Romaharsana is probably his title due to the thrilling effect o f his oratory.
II. viii. 1.15-24 141

The sages said:


15. О highly fortunate one, many stories concerning different
TTrthas have been heard from you. О highly intelligent one, all
the Puranas along with their esoteric teachings have been heard
(by us).
16. Now we wish to hear about the greatness of the great city
of Ayodhya which is splendid due to its good qualities, along with
its eternal secrets.
17. Of what type is the perpetually pure city of Ayodhya which
is so dear to Visnu—a city praised in the Vedas as the first1among
all cities which are bestowers of liberation from Samsara?
18. What is the situation of that city? Who were the kings
there? What are the meritorious TTrthas (there)? What is their
importance?
19. What sort of benefit is obtained by men by resorting to
Ayodhya? О Suta, what is its history? What are the rivers and the
confluences (there)?
20-21. What is the merit acquired by taking the holy bath therein
and of making charitable gifts there, О highly intelligent one? О
Siita, superior to everyone in merits, we wish to hear all these
from you. We wish to hear everything in due order. You know
all the facts about them. It behoves you now to recount the great­
ness of the great city Ayodhya.

Suta said:
22. О ascetics, I know all the Puranas along with the legendary
anecdotes and the esoteric doctrines truly with the favour of Vyasa.
23. After bowing down to him, I shall recount to you all, the
glory of the great city of Ayodhya as it actually exists along with
all the secrets.
24.1 always bow down to the great man Vedavyasa, son of РагаЗага,
the excellent and calm-minded sage who is endowed with learning,
is bestower of noble and great intellect, can be understood through
Vedas and Vedangas, has subdued all (desires for) sensual pleasures,
who has pure and extensive refulgence, is always modest and whose

1. Vide Note 1 on p. 139. The verse listing these cities is as follows:


Ayodhya. Mathura, Maya. Kafi, Kdncl, Avantika I
Purl, Dvaravatl caiva saptaite mok$adayakah It
142 Skanda Purana

sole origin is (Lord Visnu) who is to be venerated by all.


25. Orii, obeisance to that holy lord Vyasa of unmeasured splendour,
with whose favour I know this glory of Ayodhya.
26-28. May all the sages with their disciples hear with atten­
tion. I shall recount the splendid glory of the city of Ayodhya. It
was heard by Skanda from Narada. Then it was narrated to Agastya.
Formerly it was recounted to Krsna Dvaipayana by Agastya.
О ascetics, it was obtained from Krsna Dvaipayana by me. With
great respect I shall recount it to you all who are desirous of
hearing.
29. I bow down to the immutable Rama, the Supreme Brahman
whose eyes resemble lotus, who is as dark-blue as a flower of flax
(in complexion) and who killed Ravana.
30. Great and holy is the city of Ayodhya which is inaccessible
to perpetrators of evil deeds. Who would not like to visit Ayodhya
wherein Lord Hari himself resided?
31. This divine and extremely splendid city is on the banks of
the river Sarayu.1 It is on a par with Amaravatl (the capital of
Indra) and is resorted to by many ascetics.
32-34. It is full of elephants, horses, chariots and foot-soldiers.
It tops (all cities) in its richness and prosperity. It has numerous
broad roads and great rampart walls and golden arched gateways
resembling mountain-ridges and peaks. The squares and cross­
roads are well planned and neatly maintained. There are many-
storeyed palaces with numerous (artistic) alterations and modifi­
cations in the walls. It is rendered splendid by many tanks with
excellent water abounding in full-blown lotuses. It is well-adorned
with shrines of deities possessing divine splendour and is resounded
with the sounds of the chanting of the Vedas (which can be heard
everywhere).
35-36. The sounds of lutes, flutes, MrdaAga drums etc. make
it very excellent. It has different kinds of parks and gardens abounding
in trees bearing fruits in all the seasons. There are £ala trees
(Vatica robusta), palmyras, coconuts, jack trees, Indian goose­
berry trees, mango trees, wood-apple trees, A£oka and other trees.
37-38. There are many flowering plants such as jasmine, Jati

1. Sarayu: The river rises in Kumaun mountains and came to be called Sarayu
after its confluence with the KilinadT (De 182). But Mbh (Adi 169.20-21) regards
that it is one of the seven streams of GaAga from Himalayas. Later in Anusasana
155.23-24, the Manasa lake is said to be its source.
II. viii. 1.39-50 143

(another variety of jasmine), Bakula (Mimisops elengi), PatalT


(trumpet flowers), Naga (variety of citron), Campaka (Michelia
campaka), KaravTra (oleander), Karnikara (Cathartocarpus fistula),
KetakT (Pandamus odoratissimus) etc. There are great fruit bear­
ing trees like Niriiba (margosa), JambTra (a variety of citron),
KadalT (plantain) and Matulinga (pomegranate). There are Nagaras
(Cyperus pertenuis) having the fragrance of sandalwood.
39-42. It has many kinds of citizens of high accomplishments
such as princes having the refulgence of Devas, excellent women
of great beauty who are on a par with celestial damsels, eminent
poets of great excellence, Brahmanas equal to Brhaspati (in in­
telligence), merchants and other citizens who are like the Kalpa-
trees.
Horses there are on a par with Uccaih£ravas and elephants are
like the elephants guarding the cardinal points. Thus in various
ways and features that city is equal to the city of Indra.
It was here that the kings of the Solar race with Iksvaku as the
foremost one, were born. All of them were exclusively devoted
to protection of the subjects.
43. The city is built on the banks of the river Sarayh whose
waters are meritorious. Its banks are echoed with hummings of
bees and chirpings of birds. It is a sparklingly clear and beautiful
river with Manasa lake as its source.
44. It is full of holy water. The touch of this river is as excellent
as that of Gahga. Great sages have resorted to its banks. It is
wakeful and watchful. It is the loftiest in the world (in sanctity).
45. Ganga issued forth from the big toe of the right foot of Hari,
О excellent sages, and the splendid Sarayu issued forth from the
big toe of his left foot.
46. Hence these two rivers are exceedingly meritorious and are
bowed to by Devas. Merely by taking the holy bath in these two
rivers one gets rid of the sin of the murder of a Brahmana.
47. Agastya, the pot-born sage, knew the efficacy of this TTrtha
with the favour of Skanda. Thereafter the sage went to Ayodhya
on a pilgrimage.
48-50. He performed the rites of the pilgrimage in due order.
He took the holy bath in accordance with the injunctions and
offered libations to the Pitrs. He performed the worship of all the
deities in the prescribed manner. He made obeisance to all the
TTrthas duly. Having seen the glory of the TIrtha directly, he
144 Skanda Purdna

derived a great deal of happiness strengthened with the feeling of


having fulfilled his duty. Agastya experienced the emotion of
ecstatic delight (with hair standing on end all over his body).
51. The excellent sage stayed there for three nights. Having
completed the pilgrimage duly, he praised the great city of Ayodhya
and started from there.
52. On seeing him beaming with excess of delight, Krsnadvai-
payana Vyasa asked him what the cause of his great delight was.

Vyasa said:
53-54. О great Brahmana, whence are you coming back? О
excellent sage, you are experiencing abundance of supreme bliss
now. What is the reason for which this extreme delight has oc­
curred to you? О Brahmana, speak it to me. Seeing your delight,
my heart too feels exceedingly delighted.

Agastya said:
55-56. Oh! It is a great wonder. It is highly surprising, О
excellent sage. On seeing the glory of Ayodhya, О ascetic, I have
attained this excessive bliss today.

On hearing the words of Agastya, Vyasa said to that sage:

Vyasa said:
57-58. О holy lord, tell me accurately and in detail, the great­
ness and glory of the great city Ayodhya along with its secrets
and its superior qualities. What is the procedure of the pilgrim­
age? What are the TTrthas? What is the method of performing the
Yatra? What is the benefit of the holy bath therein? О great sage,
what is the benefit of the charitable gift (given there)? Recount
all this in detail, О excellent one among eloquent persons.

Agastya replied:
59. Oh! Blessed indeed is your intellect, О ascetic, for you are
enquiring about the glory of Ayodhya.
60. The letter “ A” indicates Brahman (Brahma?); Visnu is
meant by the letter “ УА” . The letter “DHA" is a form of Rudra.
Thus shines the name Ayodhya.1
I. A Puranic etymology attributing meaning to every syllable of A-xo-dhxa.
II. v iii.1.61-78 145

61. Since this city is not reached by all (major) sins like the
murder of a Вrah man a etc. along with minor sins, it (the city) is
known as Ayodhya. (i.e. The city is beyond the pale of sins.)
62. О Brahmana, this is the first city of Visnu. It does not touch
the earth. This city that causes merit on the earth is stationed on
Sudar£ana, the Discus of Visnu.
63. By whom can the glory of this (city) be (adequately) de­
scribed, О ascetic? It is here that Lord Visnu himself dwells res­
pectfully.
64-67. The holy place is situated thus1: Beginning from Sahasra-
dhara, a distance of a Yojana constitutes the eastern part. Simi­
larly in the west too, the limit is Samata (?) up to one Yojana.
In the southern and the northern parts Sarayii and Tamasa form
the boundary. This is the situation of the holy place. This is the
place wherein stands the sanctum sanctorum of Hari. This city of
Visnu is said to have the shape of a fish. Its head is in the west
between Gopratara and Asita, О Brahmana. Its back is in the east
and its middle portion lies from north to south. In this city, О
highly fortunate one, the Lord designated as Visnu-Hari dwells.
His power is already well-known.

Vyasa said:
68. О holy lord, what is the power of this Lord who is glorified
by you as Visnu-Hari?2О tiger among sages, how did he become
famous? Describe all this in detail to me.

Agastya said:
69-78. Formerly there was an excellent Brahmana well-known
by the name Visnu $arma. He was a knower of the essence of
Vedas and Vedahgas; he was devoted to pious and holy rites. He
regularly practised Yoga and meditation. He was engrossed in
devotion to Visnu. That excellent Vaisnava came to Ayodhya once
in the course of his pilgrimage.
The heroic Brahmana Visnu (£arma) thought that Visnu must
be present there directly and personally. (For that purpose) he
began to perform penance. He started his austerities with green
1. Boundaries of Purinic Ayodhya.
2 The story is meant to explain the name of the deity *'Visnu-Hari* which was
so-called as it was installed by Vi$nu §arma, vv 101-105.
146 SkandaPurana

roots and fruits forming his diet.


During summer he performed penance seated in the midst of
five fires. During rainy season he had nothing to protect him (to
ward off the rain). During early winter.he used to take his holy
bath in the excellent lake and perform the worship of Visnu according
to the injunctions. He brought under his control all the sense-
organs and kept his mind free from impurities.
He fixed his mind on Visnu and restrained his vital airs. He
repeatedly uttered “OM” and made the lotus of his heart blossom.
Within it he imagined the circles (spheres) of the Sun, Moon and
Fire-god duly. There he conceived the eternal Lord Hari in a
personified (embodied) form. He conceived the Lord as one wearing
yellow robes and holding a conch, discus and iron club. He wor­
shipped the Lord with flowers and dedicated his mind unto him.
He meditated on Hari in the form of Brahman and repeated the
twelve-syllabled Mantra. The Brahmana stayed there for three
years.
Thereafter the excellent Brahmana bowed down to Hari, the
lord of the universe, the sire of mobile and immobile beings, and
meditated on him. Visnu Sarma eulogized Hari Narayana alertly.

Visnu Sarma said:


79-83. Be pleased, О Lord Visnu; be pleased, 0 Purusottama;
be pleased, О lord of the chiefs of Devas; be pleased, О lotus­
eyed one. Be victorious, О Krsna; be victorious, О inconceivable
one; be victorious, О Visnu; О immutable one; be victorious, О
lord of Yajnas; be victorious, О Lord Visnu; О lord, the all-
powerful one.
Be victorious, О infinite one; О dispeller of sins, be victorious;
О dispeller of the ailment of births. Obeisance to the lotus-navelled
one; obeisance to the lord with lotus garlands; obeisance, О lord
of all, О lord of all living beings; obeisance, О slayer of Kaitabha;
obeisance to the lord of the three worlds; О root of the universe,
О lord of the universe. Obeisance to the overlord of Devas; obeisance
to Narayana. Obeisance to Krsna, to Rama. Obeisance to the lord
with the discus as his weapon.
84-87. You are the mother of all the worlds. You alone are the
father of the universe. You are the sincere friend of those who
are frightened and distressed; you are the father, you are the
II. viii. 1.88-98 147

grandfather. You are Havis. You are Vasatkara; you are the master.
You are the Fire-god. You alone are the instrument, cause and the
creator; you alone are the greatest lord.
О Madhava, wielding the conch, discus and iron club in the
hands, redeem me. Be pleased, О supporter of the Mandara mountain;
be pleased, О slayer of Madhu; be pleased, О lover of Kamala;
be pleased, О lord of the worlds.

Agastya said:
88-91. As he eulogized with great devotion in his mind, Visnu,
the soul of the universe appeared before that noble-souled (Brahmana).
He was seated on Garuda, holding the conch, discus and iron club
in his hands and wearing yellow robes.
Acyuta, the immutable one, who was delighted in his mind said
to Visnu Sarma:

Sri Bhagavdn said:


О dear one, I am pleased with your great penance now. О
(Brahmana) of excellent intellect, all your sins have perished now
on account of this prayer. Choose your boon, О eminent Brahmana.
I cannot be seen by anyone who has not performed penance.

Visnu Sarmd said:


92-94. I am contented and blessed, О Lord of Devas, with your
vision now. О Lord of the universe, grant me unshakeable devo­
tion to you.

Sri Bhagavdn said:


May your steadfast devotion to me be the bestower of salvation.
May your Vaisnava devotion to me be firm. Let the river JahnavT,
the bestower of salvation, be present here itself. О highly fortunate
one, this holy spot will become renowned with your name.

Agastya said:
95-98. After saying thus, the Lord of the chiefs of Devas dug
that spot with his discus and made the water of Ganga manifest
itself from the sphere of the nether worlds.
148 SkandaPurana

The Lord, the storehouse of mercy, made the ground free from
sin in a trice mercifully, by means of that sacred water. Ever since
then, О Brahmana, that became renowned as CakratTrtha.1 That
became a splendid TTrtha destroying mass of sins and renowned
in all the three worlds. By taking the holy bath there, and making
charitable gifts, one shall go to the world of Visnu.
99. Then Lord Visnu, Acyuta, who is friendly and favourable
to Brahmanas, became filled with great compassion and said to
Visnu Sarma:

Sn Bhagavan said:
100. Let my idol stay here, О Brahmana, with your name prefixed.
It shall be well-known as Visnuhari. It shall be the bestower of
salvation.

Agastya said:
101-105. On hearing these words of Vasudeva the intelligent
Brahmana installed an idol of the Discus-bearing Lord with his
own name prefixed. Ever since then, О chief one among Brahmanas,
the Lord stationed himself there under the name Visnuhari, hold­
ing the conch, discus and iron club in his hands and wearing
yellow garments.
The annual festival will begin from the tenth day of the bright
half of the month of Karttika and conclude on the full-moon day.
By taking his holy bath in CakratTrtha a man is liberated from all
sins. He is honoured in heaven for many thousands years. If people
offer rice-balls, with Pitrs in view, the Pitrs shall become con­
tented. They will go to the world of Visnu. There is no doubt
about it.
106-109. By taking holy bath in CakratTrtha and by visiting
Lord Visnuhari, one shall get all the sins destroyed and shall be
honoured in heaven.
The man who is freed from sins shall make charitable gifts in
1. CakratTrtha: De 43 records one CakratTrtha at (1) Kuruk$etra, (2) Prabhisa,
(3) Tryambaka, (4) VaranasT and (5) Rame£vara but none at Ayodhya. Kane adds
Amelaka-grama, Ka£mTr, Mathura, Asthipura (HD IV, 742) but none at Ayodhyd.
But the author gives us the details and the importance of the CakratTrtha at Ayodhya.
As in other places, this CakratTrtha was created by Vi$nu's discus.
The annual celebration of this deity takes place from the 10th *fithi to the 15th
Tithi (full-moon day) of the bright half of Karttika.
Il.vin.2.1-6 149

accordance with his capacity. That intelligent man shall stay in


the world of Visnu as long as fourteen Indras reign.
On other occasions too men can take bath in CakratTrtha. By
controlling the sense-organs and seeing Lord Hari but once, one
is liberated from all sins.
Thus Hari who is the ocean of all good qualities, whose image
must be meditated upon and who is the conscious soul, has stayed
there in his great idol for the sake of salvation (of all).
One who worships him with great devotion and takes the holy
bath in CakratTrtha shall dwell in the world of Visnu. He will be
an embodiment of meritorious deeds.

CHAPTER TWO

Brahmakunda and Sahasradhara

Suta said:
1. After recounting the story pertaining to CakratTrtha thus, О
excellent Brahmanas, Sage Agastya began to narrate further the
story of Lord Visnuhari.

Agastya said:
2. After coming to know that Lord Hari, Acyuta, had become
resident of Ayodhya formerly, Brahma, the creator of the uni­
verse, stationed himself too there.
3. After his arrival there Brahma duly performed the pilgrim­
age. And after collecting the different requisites (of a sacrifice)
he performed a sacrifice according to the injunctions.
4. Thereafter, Brahma, the grandfather of the worlds, made a
Kunda known after his name.1 It was large and frequented by
many deities.
5-6. It is a sacred pit that is destructive of sins. It is large; its

1. VV 2-18 describe Brahma-Kunda. It is to the east of CakratTrtha. It was


created by God BrahmS after performing a' sacrifice.
The annual festival at the Kunda is celebrated on the 14th Tithi of the bright half
of Karttika (vv 16-17).
150 SkandaPurana

water is full of ripples. It abounds in lilies, blue lotuses, red


lotuses and white lotuses. It is very charming with swans, jcranes,
ruddy geese and other (water) birds. It is full of various other birds
gracefully perching on the branches of the trees on the banks.
7-8. On taking their holy bath in that Kunda all the Suras
became endowed with great purity. All their impurities disap­
peared and they attained refulgence. On seeing this great miracle
all those Suras devoutly bowed down to Brahma and said thus with
palms joined in reverence:

The Devas said:


9-10. О Lotus-seated Lord, recount the entire glory of this
Kunda accurately. It has been dug (by you) and its refulgence is
free from impurities. By taking a holy bath herein all our impu­
rities have gone away. We are surprised on observing this miracle,
0 excellent one among Suras. Hence do recount (it).

Brahma said:
11-12. May all the Suras listen attentively to the efficacy of this
Kunda along with the different kinds of benefit accruing there­
from. Listen to it, ye Suras who are (obviously) surprised. By
taking the holy bath here in accordance with the injunctions even
sinful creatures will be clad in fascinating robes. They will occupy
an aerial chariot fitted with swans and go to the world of Brahma.
They will stay there till all the living beings are annihilated.
13. (Corrupt reading) О excellent suras, acquire merit here by
performing charity, Нота, Tuladana and ASvamedha according to
your capacity.
14-18. By taking the holy bath in this lake of mine, a man
becomes glorious. Hence, if holy bath, charitable gifts, Japas etc.
are performed here in accordance with the injunctions, they shall
be on a par with all Yajfias and be destructive of all sins.
This holy pit shall attain renown of great excellence as Brahmakunda.
1 will always be present in this Kunda.
On the fourteenth day in the bright half of the month of Karttika,
О excellent Suras, the annual festival of mine shall always be
celebrated. It is conducive to auspiciousness and is destructive of
heaps of great sins.
Gold should be gifted always with various kinds of clothes, О
Il.vui.2.\9-31 \5\

Suras. Brahmanas should be propitiated in accordance with one’s


capacity.

Agastya said:
19-20. After saying thus, Brahma, the lord of Devas, the grand­
father of the worlds, glanced at the TTrtha (once more) and van­
ished along with the Suras, О ascetic. Ever since then that Kunda
became exceedingly famous on the earth. That great Kunda is
situated to the east of Cakratlrtha.

Suta said:
21. After saying this, Agastya, the pot-born sage, who had
accumulated a mass of penances was asked once again. The great
sage thereupon continued to recount the story to Vyasa.

Agastya said:
22. Listen to the efficacy of another TTrtha, О highly fortunate
one. It is a TTrtha very difficult of access to persons of evil
actions. It is called Rnamocana1 (‘Liberator from indebtedness’)
and it is adjacent to the banks of Sarayu.
23. О excellent sage, it is situated in the waters of Sarayu seven
hundred Dhanus (i.e. about 700 metres) to the north-east of Brahma-
kunda.
24. Formerly, the excellent sage named Loma£a came there
during his pilgrimage. He performed the rite of holy bath in accordance
with the injunctions.
25. Thereby he became free from indebtedness and got rid of
his sins. On observing this great miracle, he gladly spoke to the
sages.
26-31. Tears welled up in his eyes. He lifted up his arms and
spoke out with great delight:

Lomasa said:
May (the sages) see the merits of this great TTrtha, the most

1. VV 22-23 describe Rnamocana TTrtha. It is to the north-east of Brahmakunda


at a distance of 700 Dhanus (1 Dhanu = 31/2 Hastas) but it lies in the waters of
Sarayu. The association of the name of Sage Loma£a adds to the importance of the
Tirtha.
152 SkandaPurdna

excellent one among all the TTrthas. This is the most excellent
TIrtha named Rnamocana. By taking the holy bath here living
beings will be able to repay'all their debts of this world as well
as of the world hereafter, the three-fold debt of men. All these
perish instantaneously on taking bath in this TIrtha.
This is the most excellent of all the TTrthas. It immediately
furnishes proof worthy of belief. Its benefit has been perfectly
experienced by me. (I have got rid) of my indebtedness. Hence
holy bath and charitable gifts must be made here in accordance
with one's capacity and in accordance with the injunctions, by
persons endowed with faith and desirous of benefits. They must
take bath and give away gold, clothes etc. according to (their)
capacity.

Agastya said:
32. After mentioning the great efficacy of the TIrtha thus,
Loma£a, the excellent one among sages, vanished while joyously
eulogizing the TIrtha.
33-35. Thus, О Brahmanas, the* TIrtha named Rnamocana has
been described. By taking a holy bath therein the indebtedness of
living beings perishes instantaneously. The TIrtha called Rnamocana
is in the water of Sarayu in the East.
Within a distance of twenty Dhanus (1 Dhanu=3!/2 Hastas) therefrom
is the TIrtha named Papamocana1. By taking holy bath therein one
gets his soul rid of all sins instantaneously. No doubt need be
entertained in this respect. О excellent sage, the great glory (of
the TIrtha) has been witnessed by me.
36. There was a Вrah mana in the land of Pancala, named Narahari.
As a result of contact with bad people, he became a sinner.
37. On account of his association with sinners he became one
who censured the path of Vedas. He committed different kinds of
sins such as that of murder of a Brahmana etc.
38-43. Once he happened to be in contact with some good
people engaged in pilgrimage. О Brahmana, that Brahmana, the
perpetrator of great sins, came to Ayodhya along with them.

1. VV 33-43 describe Papamocana TIrtha (a TIrtha absolvent of sins). It is at


a distance of 200 Dhanus to the east of Rnamocana TIrtha. It lies in the current
(water) of Sarayu but adjacent to the bank itself. Its annual festival is held on the 14th
day in the dark half of Magha.
II:v’rii. 2.44-48 153

Since he was in the company of good people, he took bath in


the TIrtha called Papamocana. The mass of his sins perished. He
became free from sins in a moment. A shower of flowers fell on
his head from heaven, О eminent sage. The Brahmana rode in a
divine aerial chariot and went to the world of Visnu.
After noticing this great miracle, О eminent Brahmana, the
holy bath was specially undertaken by me with great faith. For
the sake of dispelling all the sins the holy bath should be particu­
larly undertaken on the fourteenth day in the dark half of the
month of Magha by men. Charitable gift too should be made.
(Even) on other occasions, if the bath is performed, all the sins
will be dispelled.
44-46. To the east of Papamocanatlrtha and about a hundred
Dhanus from it there is another excellent Tirtha named Sahasradhara.1
It is destructive of all sins. It was in this, that, at the behest of
Rama, the heroic Laksmana, the slayer of enemy warriors, cast
off his life by Yogic process and regained his original form of
Sesa.
They know that the length of a Dhanu is equal to three and
a half Hastas. Four Hastas constitute one unit that is called Danda.

Suta said:
47. On hearing these words of the Pot-born Sage, Krsna Dvaipayana
Vyasa asked him again out of curiosity.

Vyasa said:
48. О sage of good excellent holy rites, narrate in detail the
greatness of Sahasradhara. My mind is not fully satiated by lis­
tening to the glory of the Tirtha.

I. VV 44 ff describe the greatness of Sahasradhara Tirtha. Sahasradhara Tirtha


is associated with the end of Laksmana’s life at Rama’s behest, for disobedience of
his order of not admitting anyone during Rama’s conference with Kala, a story given
currency by the author of the Uttara Kanda—a supplement to Ramayana. Laksmana
was an incarnation of the thousand-hooded serpent Sesa. When Sesa came up for
Laksmana’s absorption in him, he made one thousand apertures (bores) in the earth
(vv 64-65). Hence it is called Sahasradhara. It lies at a distance of 100 Dhanus to
the east of P&pamocana Tirtha. It is in the waters of SarayQ and is 25 Dhanus in area.
The annua] festival of the Tirtha is celebrated on the 5th day in the bright half of
jravana (observed as N&gapaffcami elsewhere in India). Bath etc. in the month of
Vatfakha is also recommended.
154 SkandaPurana

Agastya said:
49. Even as I recount the story, О sage, listen to it with rapt
attention. I shall recount the origin of the TTrtha Sahasradhara, the
story of which is conducive to great prosperity.
50. Formerly, Rama, the leader of Raghus, completed the task
of Devas. The great king met Kala and began to discuss some
matters with him.
51. He made the stipulation: “ If anyone comes near us and sees
us taking counsel together, he is to be punished by me immedi­
ately.”
52-53. While they were discussing and Laksmana was standing
at the entrance, Durvasas, the great ascetic and storehouse of refulgence,
came there. On his arrival, he immediately spoke to Laksmana
lovingly, as he was famished and agitated.

Durvasas said:
54. О son of Sumitra, go quickly and report to Rama that I am
here on a job. It does not behove you to disobey this (request of
mine).

Agastya said:
55. As he was afraid of his curse, the son of Sumitra hurried
to their presence. He informed Rama that Sage Durvasas, son of
Atri, had come and sought an audience with him (Rama).
56-58 Rama took leave of Kala and sent him off. Coming out
he met the sage and bowed down to him with great respect. The
Lord fed the excellent Sage Durvasas himself and bade farewell
to him. Afraid of violating his own vow, the heroic Rama aban­
doned Laksmana then.
Laksmana, the great warrior, wanted to make the words of his
elder brother true. The hero of great intellect came to the banks
of Sarayu.
59-61. He went there, took his holy bath, resorted to meditation
immediately and fixed his tranquil mind on the Soul of Perfect
Consciousness. He stayed there thus.
Thereupon $esa, the excellent Serpent, adorned with a thousand
hoods, pierced the ground in a thousand places and appeared before
him. Surendra from the world of Suras came there along with the
immortal beings. Then, even as the Suras remained there watch-
W . N \ \ \ l. « r l4

ing, £akra spoke these sweet words to Laksmana of truthful words,


who got merged into Sesa.

Indra said:
62-68. О Laksmana, get up. Quickly go up to your own po­
sition. О heroic slayer of enemies, the task of the Devas has been
accomplished by you. Attain the great eternal abode of Visnu.
Your own original form, Sesa, has come with his graceful hoods.
He pierced the earth in thousand places by means of his thou­
sand hoods. Since they have come up by piercing a thousand holes
in the earth, О prince of good holy rites, since the places were
burnt (i.e. brightly lit up) by the crest jewels on the thousand
hoods of Sesa, this splendid TTrtha on the banks of Sarayu shall
become well-known as Sahasradhara. There is no doubt about it.
The extent of this holy spot is twenty-five Dhanus. By taking
holy bath here and giving charitable gifts as well as by performing
£raddha with sincerity one shall get rid of all sins in his soul and
shall go to the world of Visnu.
The man who takes his bath here, intelligently worships £esa,
the immutable one, and duly adores the TTrtha, shall attain the
world of Visnu.
Therefore, the rite of taking the holy bath here should be performed
in accordance with the injunctions. Brahmanas should be particu­
larly worshipped and meditated upon as serpents in the form of
$esa.
69-73. Gold, cooked rice and clothes should be given by per­
sons endowed with sincerity and faith. Holy bath, charitable gift
and the worship of Hari—everything shall have infinite (merit).
Hence this TTrtha shall become a great TTrtha always bestowing
all desired objects on the earth. There is no doubt about this.
On the fifth day in the bright half of the month of Sravana a
grand festival with serpents in view, with the worship of Sesa as
the main function, should be celebrated with great effort by good
people. If the festival is celebrated in that great TTrtha by men,
if Brahmanas are devoutly propitiated along with the worship of
serpents, all the serpents will become delighted and will never
harass men.
74. Those who take holy bath here with concentration and
mental purity in the month of Vai£akha, will never return to the
earth even in hundreds and crores of Kalpas.
156 Skanda Pur ana

75-80. Hence in the month of VaiSakha, holy bath, charitable


gift, worship of Hari and propitiation particularly of Bratynanas
should be performed by men with great effort. If these are done
by men, the holy spot bestows all desired benefits.
If, with Visnu in view anyone were to give a milch cow along
with her calf and befitting ornaments to a deserving Brahmana in
this excellent TTrtha, his residence shall be in the eternal world
of Visnu. By the holy bath in the TTrtha a man shall enjoy infinite
bliss in heaven.
Here in the month of Vai£akha a Brahmana couple should be
particularly adored with ornaments and clothes, by men endowed
with faith, for the purpose of propitiating LaksmI-Narayana and
particularly for the attainment of fortune.
In the month of VaiSakha, all the Tirthas situated on the earth
join together and stay here. There is no doubt about this. Hence
by taking holy bath particularly in the month of Vai£akha here,
one will get the great benefit of taking the holy plunge in all the
Tirthas.

Agastya said:
81-84. After saying this, О eminent sage, Indra installed Sesa,
i.e. Laksmana who got merged into £esa and who was capable of
removing the burden of the earth, in that holy TTrtha. He made
Laksmana sit in his vehicle and started for heaven.
Ever since then that TTrtha attained great fame. The glory of
the TTrtha in the month of Vai6akha is said to be very great,
particularly on the fifth day in the bright half of the month of
Sravana. On other occasions such as Parvan days, one should take
special holy bath in Sahasradhara TTrtha. The man shall attain
heaven.
The intelligent and excellent man who duly performs holy bath
and charitable gifts in the TTrtha in accordance with his capacity,
shall become a purified soul. He shall enjoy immense pleasures.
By devotion he attains union with SrTpati who sleeps on the serpent
(Sesa).
II.viii.3.1-10 157

CHAPTER THREE

The Tirthas: Svargadvara: Candrahari:


Conclusion o f Candra Sahasra Vrata

Suta said:
1-3. On hearing these words of the Pot-born Sage with great
respect, the intelligent sage Krsnadvaipayana spoke these sweet
words:

Vyasa said:
О holy lord, the glory of this TTrtha is excellent. On hearing
this from you my mind has attained supreme delight. Describe
accurately another excellent TTrtha even as I listen. On listening
to you, О sage of good holy rites, my mind is not fully satisfied.

Agastya said:
4. It is always destructive of all sins. Listen, О Brahmana, I
shall describe another excellent TTrtha well-known as Svargadvara.1
5. There is none who is competent to describe in detail the
glory of Svargadvara. Hence, О dear one of good holy rites, listen
to a brief (description).
6-7. According to experts, the knowers of Puranas, Svargadvara
has an extent of six hundred thirty-six Dhanus to the east of
Sahasradhara in the waters of Sarayu
8. (I aver it thrice) that it is true, it is the truth. My speech
is not untrue. There is no other TTrtha on a par with Svargadvara
in (the whole of) the sphere of the Cosmic Egg (Brahmanda-
golaka).
9. All the celestial and terrestrial TTrthas leave off their (re­
spective places) in the morning and gather together and stay there
as their resort, О sage of good holy rites.
10. Hence the holy bath here should be particularly taken in
the morning by a person who desires to get the benefit of the holy
plunge in all the TTrthas for himself.

1. This TTrtha is to the east of Sahasradhara in the waters of Sarayfl. Ft is 636


Dhanus in extent.
158 Skanda Pur ana

11. The living beings that cast off their lives inside Svargadvara,
О Brahmana, go to the supreme abode of Visnu. There is no "doubt
about it.
12. See that this is the entrance to salvation. It is conducive
to the attainment of heaven by men. Hence this excellent Tfrtha
has become famous as Svargadvara.
13. Svargadvara is exceedingly difficult of access even to the
Devas. There is no doubt about it that whatever a man desires
there, he obtains it.
14. The highest achievement lies in Svargadvara. The highest
goal lies in Svargadvara. The Japa performed, the charitable gift
offered, the Н ота done, the things seen, the penance performed
there and the meditation, the Vedic study, done there—all shall
have everlasting benefit.
15. All the sin accumulated during thousands of his previous
births perishes (completely) (the very moment) one enters Svargadvara.
16-22. Brahmanas, Ksatriyas, Vaisyas, Sudras, mixed castes,
worms, barbarians, all sorts of inferior classes of men, insects,
ants, animals and birds—that attain death in Svargadvara in due
course of time, shall become persons (equipped) with KaumodakT
(the iron-club of Visnu) in their hands. All the birds will become
the Garuda-emblemed Lords. Men will become Visnus in the splendid
city of Visnu.
Whether he has any desire or has no desire at all, if one goes
to the TTrtha Svargadvara and forsakes his life, he will be honoured
in the world of Visnu.
Sages, Deities, Siddhas, Sadhyas, Yaksas, groups of Maruts,
those who make divisions in the TTrtha (Com.) only by means of
the sacred thread (?) and the groups of Devas are present here
at midday. Hence they consider the midday bath with great re­
spect.
Those who have conquered their sense-organs and observe fast
at Svargadvara and those who observe fast for a month go to the
supreme abode.
23. Those who are engaged in giving cooked rice, those who
give jewels, those men who gift plots of lands, those who distrib­
ute (as gift) cows and clothes to Brahmanas—all these go to the
abode of Hari.
24. Siddhas, noble-souled sages, Pitfs—all these go to heaven
through this TTrtha. Hence this is said to be Svargadvara (‘gate­
II.viii.3.25-38 159

way to Heaven’).
25. Hari himself, the Lord of Devas who has split his person
into four and sports about here (as Rama), stays happily along with
his brothers.
26. The Four-faced eternal Lord, the grandfather of the worlds,
has forsaken the world of Brahma and he sports about here along
with Devas.
27. Siva, the permanent resident of Kailasa, is also stationed
there (at Svargadvara) itself.
28. A mass of sins as huge as Meru or Mandara (mountain)
becomes completely destroyed on reaching Svargadvara.
29. The goal that is attained through perfect knowledge and
penances and the goal that is obtained by the people who perform
Yajfias, that auspicious goal is decreed for those who die in Svargadvara.
30. Svargadvara is resorted to by multitude of sages, Devas and
Asuras, engaged in Japa and Н ота and also by ascetics desirous
of salvation.
31. If in Kaliyuga anyone stays in the city of Rama, the son
of Da£aratha, even for (a period of) half a wink, he obtains that
benefit which is obtained by staying at KasT for sixty thousand
years.
32. Merely by taking the holy bath in Sarayu on Hari’s day (i.e.
the eleventh lunar day) one attains that goal which is obtained by
those endowed with Yogic practice and those who cast off their
lives in Varanasi.
33. No one who dies in Svargadvara sees hell. Blessed by KeSava
all of them attain the greatest goal.
34-38. О excellent Brahmana, this TIrtha excels all the TTrthas
(which exist) on the earth, in firmament and in heaven.
If people adopt devotion to Visnu and confidently rejoice therein,
if they restrain in accordance with their capacity their lustful ardour
for sensual objects, if they gather together all their power and
engage themselves in penance, they will never return even in
hundreds and crores of Kalpas.
Even if a learned man who stays here is killed with hundreds
of weapons, he goes to that great region. After going to that place
no one bewails.
If anyone dies in Svargadvara, he attains the greatest goal.
There is no question at all whether the period of death is during
the Northern Transit of the Sun or the Southern Transit.
160 SkandaPurana

39. All times are auspicious to those who resort to Svargadvara.


Merely by taking bath here sins of embodied beings perish.
40. To all the people on the earth who commit whatever amount
of sins with their bodies, Ayodhya has been mentioned as the
greatest abode (for the purpose of removing them).
41. It is laid down by Devas that the annual festival of Lord
Candrahari is to be celebrated especially on the fifteenth day in
the bright half of the month of Jyestha.
42. On that day the Udyapana rite (concluding rite) should be
performed by those who have observed the holy vow called Candra-
sahasra. О Brahmana, it should be performed with scrupulous care.
It is conducive to a benefit that is superior to the benefit of all
Yajnas.
43. If that is performed, men will obtain heavenly abode be­
cause the great sins perish (thereby).

Sri Vyasa requested:


44. О holy lord, recount (to me) accurately the highly auspi­
cious origin of Candrahari and also the procedure of the conclud­
ing rite (Udyapana) of the holy vow called Candravrata.

Agastya said:
45-47. After bowing down to Visnu, the resident of Ayodhya,
Moon-god, the storehouse of nectar, was eager to witness person­
ally the glory of the Tfrtha. After coming here Moon-god per­
formed the pilgrimage.
Capable of performing different kinds of miraculous acts, he
propitiated Visnu in accordance with the injunctions and in the
proper order and by means of penance very difficult to perform.
He obtained his (Lord’s) favour. He installed Hari with his own
name prefixed (as 1Candra-Hari’). Therefore he (the lord) is known
as Candrahari.1
48-51. With the favour of Vasudeva that spot became a miracu­
lous one. Indeed, О sage of good holy rites, that spot of Vasudeva,
the lord of all living beings, became an exceedingly secret (sa­
cred) spot for^he purpose of attaining salvation.
In this (holy spot), О Brahmana, Siddhas have always observed

1. The deity called Candra-Hari was installed by Candra (v 47). Its annual festival
is celebrated on the 15th day of the bright half of Jyesfha.
Il.viii.3.52-57 161

the holy vow of Govinda.


They hold different types of symbols. They are desirous of the
world of Visnu. Those (Yogins) who have subdued their sense-
organs and are liberated souls, practice the highest type of Yoga
(here).
In other places one does not secure as much merit as in this
TIrtha. Charitable gifts, Vratas and Homas—all these shall become
infinite in benefit.
52. Living beings always attain their cherished desires and benefits
(here). Hence charitable gifts etc., the worship of Brahmanas and
particularly of couples, should be performed here by all living
beings with great effort and in due order.
53-54. By visiting this, living beings attain all that benefit and
the merit which men obtain by visiting all the Deities, by taking
the holy bath in all the TTrthas and by performing all the Yajnas
of superior benefits. Hence this is extolled as a great holy spot in
Puranas etc.
55. The rite of Udyapana should be performed here with the
guidance of Brahmanas in the presence of Candrahari. The Vrata
is called Candrasahasra Vrata.1
56-57. (According to the reckoning of the Lunar months) when
two years, six months, five (?) fortnights and two and one-eighth
days pass by there is one intercalary month.
When eighty-three years and four months definitely pass there

1. VV 55-83 describe the (Jdvapana (conclusion) of the Candra-Sahasra-Vrata.


It is to be done after seeing one thousand full moons i.e. after 83 years and 4 months
(v 57).
Though it is called a Vrata, it is a Santi The procedure given in this Purana is
different from what is current now-a-days. Vayovasthabhidha-Santi-Samuccaya (col­
lection of iantis—pacificatory rites at certain stages of life) by Narayana Sastri Anjarlekar
(K.B. Davale Pub. Bombay) pp. 46-51 give the following procedure for this:
Sahasra-Candra. It is to be performed after the completion of 79 (Lunar) years.
The main deity is the Moon to whom 1008 or 108 (or according to one's capacity)
ghee oblations are to be offered with the Mantra *navo navo bhavati*. The next Adhi-
devata is Tryambaka whom 108 or 28 (or as per one's capacity) ghee oblations are
to be offered with the Mantra tryambakam yajamahe; the next deity to be propitiated
is Sun-god (Kala-svarupa sQrya) to whom 28 or 8 (or as per one's capacity) ghee-
oblations are to be offered with the Mantra akrfttena. Lastly the Naksatra-devata, the
star or Naksatra under which the Yajamana is born is to be propitiated with 28 or
8 ghee oblations.
162 Skanda Purana

will be a thousand Moons.1 If a man lives up to that age he should


celebrate the LJdyapana (of this Vrata) and (perform) the pilgrim­
age with effort.
58. The merit that is declared (as acquired by) performers of
continuous sacrifices, by the (life-long) speakers of the truth and
donors of gold, that merit is acquired by persons who live (long
enough to see a thousand moons).

THE PROCEDURE OF UDYAPANA

59-64. A meritorious Vrata like that which yields all happiness


is described here. On the fourteenth day the devotee should clean
his teeth, take his holy bath and remain pure. He should observe
restraint in speech, body and mind and take to the vow of celibacy.
He should do the same on the full-moon day also and then perform
the worship of the Moon.
At the outset the Mothers should be worshipped in the order of
Gaurl and others. He should then devoutly worship the Rtviks and
perform Vrddhi Sraddha. The pure devotees should get the replicas
of the lunar sphere made. They should be a thousand in number,
half of it or one-fourth of it, or in accordance with one’s own
means it may be still half of it or even one-fourth of it. Thereafter
the worship should be performed as one’s own faith and means
permit.
Or sixteen auspicious replicas should be made carefully. There­
after he should perform the worship of Moon-god in accordance
with the injunctions of the Agamas. Everyone of the auspicious
replicas should be made of sixteen Masas (of gold etc.).
65. The Н ота should be performed with the Soma Mantras in
accordance with one’s riches. He should install the images and
recite the Soma Mantras.
66. He should read out (the portion of the story narrating) the
origin of Soma and recite the Somasukta carefully. Thereafter he
shall perform the worship of Candra (Moon) in accordance with
the injunctions of the Agamas.
67. He should perform the Nyasa (symbolical assignment of the
part of the body to the deity) rite of the Moon and of the Kalas
(digits) in the disc of the Moon. Similarly he shall perform the

1. According to calculation of the Solar Year this reconciles the previous statement.
Il.viii.3.68-83 163

Nyasa rite of the eleven organs (including organs of sense and of


action) duly. There shall be water kept in the mystic diagram.
68-73. The mystic diagram should resemble the lunar disc. It
should be made with auspicious rice grains. The KalaSa (Pot) shall
be placed in the middle and it should be filled with cow’s milk.
In the four corners of the square outside, the devotee should place
the full KalaSas.
The worship of the Moon should be performed in the Mandala
(mystic diagram) in the order of the names:
“ Obeisance to HimamSu. Obeisance to Somacandra. Obeisance
to Candra, to Vidhu always; obeisance to Kumuda-bandhu (‘the
kinsman of lilies’); obeisance to Soma, to Sudhamgu (’Nectar-
rayed’); obeisance to OsadhI€a (‘lord of medicinal herbs’); obei­
sance to Abja (‘born of water’); to Mrganka ( ‘one marked by the
image of a deer’); obeisance to the storehouse of Kalas ( ‘digits’);
obeisance to Naksatranatha (‘lord of the stars’); obeisance to SarvarT-
pati (‘lord of the night’); to Jaivatrka (‘the long-lived one’); perpetual
obeisance to Dvijaraja (‘king of the twice-born’)’’.
Thus the Moon should be worshipped by means of the sixteen
names in order.
74. Then the pure devotee should duly offer the water of a
conchshell along with the requisite Mantra. He should take the
conchshell water along with flowers, fruits and sandalpaste.
75-79. “ Obeisance to you, О SaSanka ( ‘having the hare for a
mark’) who are bom again and again at the end of every month;
do accept my Arghya along with RohinT.”
After duly worshipping Moon-god, the devotee should bow down
to him. Sixteen other Kalasas filled with milk and covered with
cloths along with jewels should be given to a Brahmana for the
sake of peace.
Then he should perform the rite of ablution by means of milk
and water. The minds of the Rtviks should be propitiated in accordance
with one’s riches. He should feed a Brahmana, particularly one
with a (large) family. A Brahmana couple should be worshipped
then by means of clothes with great care. Thereafter ample and
excellent monetary gift should be made.
80-83. The replicas should be given to Brahmanas along with
cows, gold, silver, clothes and cooked rice in particular. All these
should be gladly given to a Brahmana for the propitiation of
Moon-god.
164 SkandaPurana

The intelligent devotee should spend the rest of the day by


observing fast. On the next day he should perform the worship of
the Lord. He should take food along with kinsmen. He need not
observe the restraints further.
If a person performs this excellent Candra-sahasra-vrata, even
if he is a Brahmana-slayer, drink-addict, thief, or a defiler of the
preceptor’s bed, he shall become a purified soul by this Vrata.
The man shall go to the world of the Moon. Whatever he was
before, О Brahmana, he shall become a favourite of Narayana. If
a man performs the Vrata like this regularly, he shall become
blessed and contented.

CHAPTER FOUR

The Greatness of Dharmahari

Agastya said:
1. From the holy spot of Candrahari in the south-eastern direc­
tion, there is the deity by name Dharmahari1 who is the destroyer
of the sins of Kali Age.
2. Formerly a Brahmana named Dharma who was conversant
with the principles of the Vedas and Vedangas and who scrupu­
lously adhered to his duties, came here on a pilgrimage.
3. After arriving he conducted an extensive pilgrimage with
great respect here. He was surprised on noticing the matchless
glory of Ayodhya.
4. Lifting up his arms, the Brahmana proclaimed joyously: “ Oh!
How very beautiful is this TTrtha! Oh! How excellent is its glory!
5. No other city like Ayodhya is seen. Being always stationed
on the Discus of Visnu, it never touches the earth.
6. As Hari Himself is stationed in it, with which (city) can it
be compared? Oh! All the TTrthas (here) are the bestowers of the

I. This deity is to the south-east of Candra-Hari. It got its name from its founder
(installer) Brahmana Dharjna who propitiated Vi$nu and was allowed to prefix his
name to Visnu's idol. Its annual festival is celebrated on the eleventh day of the
bright half of A$adha.
II.viii.4.7-17 165

world of Visnu.
7. Oh, Visnu! Oh, TTrtha! Oh, great city of Ayodhya! Oh,
matchless glory! Which one stationed here is not worthy of praise?
Everything hereof is extremely praiseworthy.”
8-9. After saying this, Dharma was overwhelmed with raptur­
ous delight and danced there in various ways after observing par­
ticularly the glory of Ayodhya.
On seeing Dharma dancing thus the yellow-robed Lord Hari
who became kind and compassionate, manifested himself before
him. Dharma bowed down to Hari and eulogized him with great
respect.

Dharma said:
10. Obeisance to the Lord residing in the Ocean of Milk. Bow
to the Lord lying on a couch (of Sesa). Obeisance to Visnu whose
divine feet are touched by Sankara.
11. Obeisance to the Lord whose excellent feet are devoutly
worshipped. Hail to you, the favourite one of Aja (Brahma) and
others! Repeated obeisance to Madhava of splendid limbs and
excellent eyes.
12. Obeisance to the Lord with lotus-like feet; to the lotus-
navelled one; obeisance to the $arhga-bearing one whose body is
touched by the waves of the Ocean of Milk.
13. Ош, salute to the Lord having Yogic Slumber; to the Lord
whose Atman is meditated upon by leading Yogins. Repeated
obeisance to the Lord seated on Garuda, and to Govinda.
14. Obeisance, obeisance to Sridhara who has excellent tresses,
nose and forehead; to the discus-bearing Lord who has good robes
and good complexion.
15. Obeisance to you with good mighty arms. Bow to you
having fascinating shanks. (Hail) to the Lord having good resi­
dence and learning; (obeisance) to the exceedingly divine mace­
bearing Lord.
16. Obeisance, obeisance to Ke£ava, the quiescent one, to Vamana.
Obeisance to you fond of Dharma; to the Lord having yellow
robes.

Agastya said:
17. On being eulogized thus by Dharma, the liberal-minded
166 Skanda Purana

Hrslke£a, the delighted Lord of Sri, the Lord of the universe joy­
ously spoke to Dharma, these words:

£ri Bhagavan said:


18-19. О Dharma of good holy rites, I am delighted by this
prayer of yours. О (Brahmana) conversant with Dharma, choose
a boon, whatever appeals to your mind. The man who with alert­
ness eulogizes me by means of this prayer attains all cherished
desires. He is worshipped and is always endowed with glory and
prosperity.

Dharma said:
20. О Lord, if you are pleased, О Lord of Devas, О Lord of
the universe, I shall install you (here) with my name (prefixed),
О Sire of the universe.

Agastya said:
21. After saying “Let it be so”, the Lord became Dharmahari.
Merely by remembering Lord Dharmahari a man becomes liber­
ated.
22. The devotee should take his bath in the waters of Sarayu
with his mind full of pious thoughts and witness Lord Dharmahari.
He shall then be liberated from all sins.
23. The rites of charitable gifts, Н ота, Japa and the feeding
of Brahmanas performed here shall become infinite in benefit and
are conducive to the attainment of residence in the world of Visnu.
24. In case any evil has been committed knowingly or unknow­
ingly, expiatory rites should be performed scrupulously for dispel­
ling it.
25. By the due performance of the expiatory rite his sin per­
ishes. Hence expiatory rites must be performed here in accordance
with the injunctions.
26. If there is any break or omission of the daily routine of
religious rites knowingly or unknowingly, or on account of being
restrained by the king or others, in case a man is under duress,
the expiatory rites should be performed by him with great care.
27. Here Lord Visnu himself resides with great love. Hence the
greatness (of this) cannot be described by human beings.
II.viii.4.28-40 167

28. On the eleventh day in the bright half of Asadha, his annual
festival is to be celebrated in accordance with the injunctions, О
excellent Brahmana.
29. By taking the holy bath in Svargadvara and by visiting Lord
Dharmahari, the devotee shall be rid of all his sins and shall
always dwell in the world of Visnu.
30. To the south of this is an excellent mine of gold.1 It was
here that Kubera caused a great downpour of gold because he
became afraid of Raghu.

Vyasa said:
3 1 .0 illustrious one, О knower of truth, tell me how the shower
of gold took place? Why was Kubera frightened of King Raghu?
32. Narrate all this in detail, О (sage) of good holy rites. By
listening to the (holy) tales and (divine) secrets my mind is not
satiated.

Agastya said:
33. Listen, О Brahmana, I shall tell you about the excellent
origin of the gold. Hearing about it (i.e. the showering) causes
great surprise to people.
34. Formerly there was a king (named) Raghu who caused the
race of lksvaku to flourish. He administered the entire world with
excellent vigour and prowess of his own arms.
35-40. By means of his exalted prowess he had harassed his
enemies who then (sang songs of) praise of his good reputation.
As he protected his subjects very well and justly, his spotlessly
pure glory spread in all the ten quarters.
By means of his conquests he accumulated a great lot of riches.
He invaded different countries with fully equipped four divisions
of his army. He won over all living beings and levied taxes and
tributes through the threat of punishment.
The heroic king subjugated great kings with power and influ­
ence. Then he seized from them different kinds of precious stones.

1. The place where Kubera showered gold for Raghu is called ‘Svarpa-khani’.
That is to the south of Dharma-Hari. The story of sage Kautsa and his donor King
Raghu is given in w . 31-71. This generosity of King Raghu is beautifully described
by Kalidisa in Raghuvamia.
168 SkandaPurana

Powerful that he was, he conquered all the quarters and gathered


together heaps of gems. Then the king returned to his splendid
capital Ayodhya.
After his return to his capital city, the descendant of Kakutstha
became eager to perform a Yajna. He had the pure and pious idea
of performing a good holy rite befitting his family.
41-42. Realizing (his duty), the king, through his well disci­
plined and excellent Brahmana (adviser) brought Vasistha, Vamadeva,
КаЗуара and other excellent sages who had been living in different
holy places.
43. Having learnt that they had arrived and on seeing them all
staying like (so many) blazing fires, Raghu, the highly glorious
conqueror of the capital towns of enemies, came out (of his pal­
ace) duly, as required by the rules of propriety.
44. The humble descendant of Kakutstha uttered the following
pious words about his eagerness to perform a Yajna to those excellent
Brahmanas.

Raghu said:
45-46. О all ye sages, listen to my words. I wish to perform
a Yajna. It behoves you all to accord me permission for the same.
О excellent sages, which Yajna will be befitting me now? Ye
leading sages, ponder over this and tell me exactly.

The sages said:


47. О king, the Yajna known as Visvajit is the most excellent
of all Yajnas. Perform that Yajna with great effort. Do not delay
it unnecessarily.

Agastya said:
48-51. Thereupon, the king performed the Yajna called Visvadigjaya.
It was very fascinating because of the various requisites that had
been gathered together. His entire possessions were offered by him
as monetary gifts.
The sages were rendered highly delighted and contented with
different kinds of charitable gifts. With great reverence and re­
spect, he gave everything he possessed to the Brahmanas.
When all of them had returned to their abodes after being duly
adored, when the kinsmen had been rendered contented and when
II.viii.4.52-60 169

the sages were duly bowed to, that king of auspicious conduct
instantaneously became resplendent like Devendra in heaven on
account of the due performance of that sacrifice.
52. In the meantime, there came a sage known as Kautsa. He
was a disciple of Sage Vi£vamitra and was the most excellent one
among those who had self-control.
53-54. He came there to sanctify that king (by making him
donate money) for the sake of the fee to be given to the preceptor.
The intelligent sage Kautsa came there to respectfully beg (the
king) for the (payment of) fee to the preceptor who had angrily
told him (Kautsa) thus when he (the preceptor) was repeatedly
requested (to specify the fee to be given to him). (Vigvamitra had
said:) “Bring me immediately fourteen crores of gold pieces. That
is my fee.” Kautsa came there to request Raghu, the ornament of
kings, who had (unfortunately) already given his entire wealth as
monetary gifts.
55-58. On seeing that he had come, Raghu, the scorcher of
enemies, got up promptly and duly worshipped him. During his
reception service, he used only earthen pots for the sake of the
holy rites.
On seeing the collection of the requisites of such a nature for
the worship, the eminent sage was dismayed. Without any joy he
abandoned the hopes of getting the amount of fee and yet he spoke
sweetly because he was an expert in making appropriate state­
ments.

Kautsa said:
О king, may you be prosperous. I am now going elsewhere for
fetching the fee to be given to the preceptor. I do not intend to
request you as you have donated everything of yours as religious
gift (and yourself) lack in funds. I am, therefore, going elsewhere.

Agastya said:
59. On being told thus by the sage, Raghu, the conqueror of
enemies* cities, meditated for a short while. With his palms joined
together in reverence and humility, he spoke to him thus:

Raghu said:
60. О holy lord, kindly do stay in my palace for a day. I shall
170 SkandaPurana

seriously endeavour for the sake of getting some money for you.

Agastya said:
61. After saying these words of great liberal-mindedness, Raghu
of exalted intellect, started with a desire for conquering Kubera.
62. As he was approaching, Kubera made him delighted in mind
by conveying his oral message (regarding shower of gold) and
offered him an endless downpour of gold.
63-65. The place where the shower of gold occurred is the
excellent Svarnakhani. He pointed out to the sage the mine thus
offered by him (Kubera). Raghu dedicated that excellent mine to
him. The eminent sage of superior good qualities accepted it, but
took only what should be given to the preceptor. Everything else
he respectfully returned to the king. The delighted Kautsa, the
most excellent one among intelligent persons, granted him boons
too.

Kautsa said:
66-68. О king, may you get a veiy good son possessing all the
good qualities of your own family. This Svarnakhani shall imme­
diately bestow the desired benefits on you.
There will be a great Tirtha here. It shall always dispel all sins.
By taking holy bath here and making charitable gifts men shall
obtain fortune and glory.
It is to be remembered that the annual festival should be cel­
ebrated on the twelfth day in the bright half of the month of
Vai£akha. At my instance, men will obtain all the different things
desired by them.

Agastya said:
69-71. After granting boons thus to the king, Kautsa who was
delighted in his mind, set off for his own task towards the her­
mitage of his preceptor eagerly.
The contented king took the remaining amount. He gave gifts
unto Brahmanas duly and protected the subjects.
Thus the Svarnakhani became celebrated on account of the
eminent sage (Kautsa).
II.viii.5.1-14 171

CHAPTER FIVE

The Efficacy o f Tilodakl

Vydsa said:
1-2. О holy lord, tell me exactly how (and why) Sage Vi£vamitra,
on being repeatedly requested and pressed, angrily asked his own
disciple Kautsa to bring such a huge amount that was very dif­
ficult to get even with the greatest endeavour. If you have any
kindness for me, narrate to me the entire episode.1

Agastya said:
3-9. О Brahmana, listen with the concentration of all sense-
organs on this story.
Once Vi£vamitra, the most excellent of all sages, endowed with
the divine vision born of knowledge, performed a very difficult
penance. He observed Vratas with great purity. Once Sage Durvasas
came there to see him. On arrival that Brahmana (Durvasas) who
was afflicted with hunger cried loudly: “I am thoroughly afflicted
with hunger. Let food be served to me. I am famished; give me
quickly hot pudding of pure milk, О Brahmana."
On hearing these words, ViSvamitra immediately (prepared the
pudding) with great effort. He took the pudding in a pot and was
about to give it to Durvasas. On seeing him rising, holding the
pudding in his hand, Durvasas who was given to play his char­
acteristic (pranks), spoke these sweet word» to the sage:
“ O eminent Brahmana, wait for a moment so that I shall take
my bath and return. Stay for a moment; stay, do stay. I shall come
presently.”
After saying this, Durvasas went away to his hermitage then.
10-14. ViSvamitra, the ascetic, remained motionless like a mountain
for a thousand years in accordance with the divine reckoning. He
stood there steadfast in mind.
Sage Kautsa devoted to holy rites remained there serving him.
He was of great liberal mind, free from jealousy. Durvasas devoid
of sins came back once again, consumed the milk pudding and

1. VV 1-18 describe why ViSvamitra demanded such an exorbitant Dak$ina from


his favourite pupil Kautsa.
172 Skanda Purana

went away to his own hermitage.


When that excellent sage had gone, YiSvamitra, the storehouse
of penance, discharged Kautsa, the most excellent one among the
learned, and permitted him to go home (to take to the householder’s
life).
On being discharged, he said to the preceptor, “Let the fee be
asked for.” ViSvamitra said to him: “ What fee will you give?
Your service itself is my fee. Go back to your house, О sage
devoted to holy rites.”
15-18. The disciple said this again and again to the preceptor
and repeatedly pressed him. Then the preceptor became exceed­
ingly furious and spoke these harsh words to the disciple:
“Bring me fourteen crores of gold pieces of excellent colour
as my fee, О Brahmana, and go home thereafter.”
On being told thus by his preceptor, Kautsa pondered over it
and approached the descendant of Kakutstha, the conqueror of the
quarters. He requested him for the preceptor’s fee.
Thus, О excellent sage, what has been asked by you has been
recounted.
Once again, listen to another TTrtha, the excellent cause (of
welfare).
19-23. To the south of,this holy spot is the confluence that is
resorted to by Siddhas. It is well-known on the earth due to the
confluence of TilodakT and Sarayu.1
By taking a holy bath there, О highly fortunate one, men become
free from sins. A righteous-souled one, devoted to holy rites, should,
by taking the holy bath there, attain that benefit which is obtained
if ten horse-sacrifices are performed.
He who gives gold etc. to a Brahmana who has mastered the
Vedas obtains the auspicious goal. He shines like fire.
By giving cooked rice in accordance with the injunctions at the
confluence of TilodakT and SarayQ, that is well-known in the worlds,
one is not reborn.
One who observes fast and propitiates Brahmanas obtains the
fruit of Sautramani Yajna.
24. If a person stays there for a month while regularly per­
forming holy rites and taking a single meal per day, all the sins

1. VV 19-29 describe the greatness of the confluence of SarayQ and TilodakT—


a river created by Rlma for horses from Sindhu (v 26). The confluence to the south
of Svarna-khani. Its annual festival is celebrated on the new-moon day of BhSdrapada.
II.viii.5.25— II.viii.6.7 173

committed by him throughout his life shall perish instantaneously.


25-28. On the new-moon day, in the month of Nabhasya (Bhadra-
pada) the annual festival is to be celebrated. Formerly this river
was created by Rama, as if it is another Sindhu. О sage of good
holy rites, it was intended for the drinking purposes of the horses
from Sindhu territory. Since the water therein shines always dark
like gingelly seeds, it has come to be famous as TilodakT. This
river is of meritorious water always. If a person takes his holy bath
in TilodakT anywhere other than at the confluence, he is liberated
from sins accruing in the course of seven births.
Hence the bath in the TilodakT is destructive of all sins, О sage.
It should be carefully undertaken by all living beings desirous of
piety. Bath, gifts, Vrata and Н ота here shall have infinite merit.
29. A person who performs pilgrimage in accordance with the
different injunctions and acquires merit shall go to the greatest
abode. His good qualities will develop gradually. He should worship
Hari in all the TTrthas with dedicated feelings. Somehow he shall
get rid of all his sins.

CHAPTER SIX

The Greatness of Svargadvara and Gopratdra

Agastya said:
1-2. To the west of that confluence (of Sarayu and TilodakT)
is situated the holy pit called STta Kunda.1 It is well-known as the
bestower of all desired benefits, О Brahmana. By taking his holy
bath there, О Brahmana, a man is absolved of all sins. That Kunda
is made by STta herself. By the boons granted by Rama it has been
rendered highly meritorious.

$rl Rama said:


3-7. Listen, О STta, I shall tell you, of what nature the glory
of your Kunda shall be. C lady of great felicity, I shall mention
it out of pleasure for you. A holy bath, charitable gifts, Japa,
I . VV 1-9 describe the importance of Siti Kunda. It is to the west of the confluence
of SarayO and TilodakT. Its annual festival is celebrated on the 14th day in the dark
half of M£rga£Tr$a.
174 SkatidaPurana

Н ота and penance—all these performed here in accordance with


the injunctions will be infinite in merit, О lady of pure smiles.
Particularly, a holy bath on the fourteenth day in the dark half
of the month of MargaSTrsa is always destructive of all sins of all
those who take the holy bath.

This was the boon granted to SIta by Rama who was fond of
his subjects.
Ever since then that Kunda became well-known on the earth
as STtakunda. It causes great wonder to the people. By taking holy
bath in that Kunda a man shall certainly attain Rama.
8-9. If one takes the holy bath, makes charitable gifts and
particularly performs penance, if he worships Rama and STta with
scents, garlands, incense, lights and different kinds of elaborate
and luxurious offerings and services, he shall become liberated.
There is no doubt about this.
The holy bath must be performed in the month of Margaglrsa.
Thereby one will no longer stay within any womb (i.e. will be
liberated). If a man takes the holy bath at any other time, he goes
to the world of Visnu.
10. To the west of (the spot of) Lord Visnuhari,1О Brahmana,
is the Lord named Cakrahari, the bestower of all desired benefits.
11. The great power of that Cakrahari cannot be described by
men, even by the most intelligent and skilful among them, О
Brahmana.
12. To the west thereof is the meritorious shrine of Visnu well-
known by the name Harismrti. It is the bestower of the best fruit
in the form of salvation. Merely by the sight of that Lord one is
liberated from all sins.
13. By seeing these two all the sins of embodied beings—all
the sins which men commit on the earth, perish.
14. Formerly,12 when an exceedingly terrible battle was fought
between Devas and Asuras, the former were vanquished by the

1. The deities in this Mahatmya always have the suffix Hari. W 10-11 mention Cakra-
Hari as situated to the west of Vi$nu-Hari.
2. VV 14-56 explain why the deity came to be called Gupta-Hari. As usual the
scenario of the defeat of Devas, Visnu’s prayer etc. is given here. As Vi$nu secretly
performed a penance at AyodhyS for Devas, the deity became known a ‘‘Gupta-Hari”
(v 44) and the place where Visnu’s discus Sudarlana rested was called Cakra-Hari
(v 45). The annual festival is celebrated on the 11th day of the bright half of Marga!7r$a.
II. viii.6.15-26 175

latter who were puffed up with pride on account of their attain­


ment of boons.
15-23. As the Devas fled, their leader Нага stopped them all.
Keeping the Lotus-seated Lord at the head all of them sought
refuge in Visnu who lay in the Ocean of Milk on his couch of
$esa. LaksmT was seated at his side with her hands (stroking) the
Lord’s lotus-like feet.
The great good qualities of the Lord were being praised by
excellent sages including Narada. He was eulogized uninterrupt­
edly by Garuda who stood in front of him with palms joined in
reverence.
His robes were marked by the waves of the Milk Ocean as
though with drops of ichor (?) He shone with a large garland of
stars appearing like a garland of pearls.
He wore yellow robes. He was full of smiles and appeared
resplendent with the manifestation of his kindly nature. He had
large ear-rings in his ears refulgent with pearls.
He appeared to have round him a bright creeper studded with
jewels growing in the Svetadvlpa. He had on (his head) a crown
with rings of rubies.
He wore (on his chest) a halo of refulgence along with that of
the Kaustubha that dispelled the fear of the Sun-god that there was
another Rahu. It was dark-red in colour. Thereby it appeared as
though he contemplated on the production of another Four-faced
Lord.
With humility in his mind (Siva) sought refuge in him and
eulogized him. At that time, with all purity (of mind), Sambhu in
the company of all the groups of Devas eulogized Visnu, the
conqueror of the enemies of Suras.

Isvara said:
24. О Lord, you take (devotees) across the ocean of worldly
existence; obeisance to you, the Lord who give happiness to Suparna
(Garuda). Obeisance to Hari, the moon that dispels the intense
darkness of delusion.
25.1 resort to the sparkling lustre of the jewel of perfect knowledge,
the moonlight associated with the mind, the river that flows in the
garden of the mind full of devotion to the Lord.
26. (I resort to) the power of enthusiasm that shines playfully,
that pervades through all the three worlds and that is the initial
176 Skanda Purana

stage of all living beings and animals. It is the Vaisnavl power.


27. To the creatures that are about to fall—the creaturts that
stay at the border as it were of the petals of the lotus tossed about
by wind, the sole cause of stability is Harismrti ('Remembrance
of Hari’).
28. Obeisance to you of the nature of the Sun-god having the
cluster of rays of perfect knowledge. Obeisance to the Lord that
causes opening of the glorious lotus of heart.
29. Obeisance to that perpetual goal of Yogins, to the Lord of
restraints. Obeisance to the great Lord who is beyond the lustre
and darkness.
30. Obeisance to Yajfia; to the Lord who partakes of Havis; to
the Lord of the form of Rk, Yajus and Saman. Obeisance to the
Lord who possesses divine good qualities praised by Sarasvatl.
31. Obeisance to the quiescent one; to the storehouse of Dharma.
Bow to the Ksetrajna (Soul) of the nature of nectar. Salute to the
Lord who has established the path of Yoga among disciples. Bow
to the sole cause of JTvas (individual souls); obeisance to the
terrible maker of Maya; obeisance to one with a thousand heads.
32. Obeisance to the Atman engaged in Yogic slumber. Salute
to the Lord from whose navel the lotus (the seat) of the Creator
of the universe has originated; obeisance to one (who is) the cause
in the form of water, and (who is the cause) of the sustenance of
the universe.
33. Obeisance to the powerful one who can be inferred only
through the effects; obeisance to the JTva, to the Supreme Atman;
to the protector of all living beings; to the vital air of living
beings; obeisance to the universe, to the creator.
34. Obeisance to the Lord in the physical form of the proud
lion; to the cause of the annihilation of Daityas; salute to the Lord
favourable to heroes; to the Lord of infinitely deep mind; obei­
sance to the Lord adopting the form of the universe.
35-37. Obeisance to the Lord who cuts off (and dispels) the
great darkness of ignorance (which is) the cause of the worldly
existence; salute to the Lord of unimaginable refulgence; to the
Lord occupying the cave (of the heart); to Rudra. Obeisance to
the great reviver.
Obeisance to the quiescent one; to the bestower of salvation
wherein the billows (mental disturbances) have quietened down;
obeisance to one who is apart and distinct from all other living
II.viii.6.38-47 177

beings; obeisance to the Atman identical with everything.


I bow down to Visnu who is dark-complexioned like a blue
lotus, who has the graceful charm of the refulgent filament, who
wears the Kaustubha jewel and who is elixir unto the eyes.

Agastya said:
38. On being eulogized thus, the Garuda-emblemed Lord, the
bestower of boons, became delighted in his mind. The compas­
sionate Lord showered his nectarine glances on all the Devas. He
spoke these sweet words to the Suras who bowed down their heads
with great humility.

$rl Bhagavan said:


39. О Devas, I know everything that you think by means of
meditation. I know that your region has been attacked with violent
force by the Daityas who are proud (of their ability) to fight.
40. The valour of those deficient in strength has been subdued
by the enemies of greater strength and power. Now I shall perform
penance for the purpose of getting you more strength.
41. I shall go to the city of Ayodhya and perform an excellent
penance. 1 shall remain unmanifest there and perform the penance
in order to increase your refulgence and to suppress the Daityas.
42. With minds devoid of impurities, you too do perform severe
penance after going to Ayodhya quickly. О Devas, perform the
penance for the destruction of the Daityas.

Agastya said:
43. After saying this to the Devas, the Garuda-vehicled Lord
vanished. He arrived at Ayodhya immediately and performed the
excellent penance.
44. Since he performed the penance after becoming hidden, for
the purpose of increasing the refulgence of Suras, the Lord became
famous by the name Guptahari.
45. (The Lord) at the place where at the outset the Discus
named Sudar$ana fell down from the hand of Hari who arrived
there is known as Cakrahari.
46-47. Merely by visiting these two one is liberated from all
sins.
By the power of Hari Devas became exceedingly refulgent.
178 SkandaPurana

They defeated all the Daityas in battle and regained their own
original positions. They assailed the Asuras and became brilliant
with excessive pleasure.
48. Then all of them gathered together immediately. With Brhaspati
at their head, all the Devas eagerly came to Ayodhya to visit Hari.
They bowed down to Hari whose lotus-like feet were adored with
the garlands from their crowns.
49-50. They arrived and listened respectfully to the different
good qualities (of the Lord that were praised in songs). They
worshipped him with meritorious feelings (of devotion). They bowed
down to Hari with hands folded respectfully and meditated on him
with full concentration of mind.
They stood there with palms joined in reverence. On seeing
them arrive and bow down, the yellow-robed Janardana, the im­
manent soul of the universe, became delighted and said:

Sri Bhagavan said:


5 1 .0 Devas, after a long time you have come within the range
of my vision. What wish of yours, О Suras, shall I fulfil now. Tell
me quickly; О fearless ones, why do you delay?

The Devas said:


52-57. О Lord, О Lord of the chiefs of Devas, О Lord of the
universe, all the tasks have become fulfilled on account of you
now. Yet, О Lord, you must be here always for the sake of our
protection. You should be present here itself, in the manner of one
who has conquered the sense-organs. In the very same way you
must bring about destruction of partisans of the enemy.

Sri Bhagavan said:


Thus I shall bring about the conquest over your enemies. О
Suras, I shall enhance your refulgence forever. This story shall
attain excellent renown. This Lord shall become well-known all
over the worlds by the name Guptahari. My place of concealment
will become famous.
A most excellent one among living beings who very devoutly
performs worship, Yajna, Japa etc. here, attains the greatest goal.
58-62. A person who has conquered his sense-organs and who
makes charitable gifts according to his capacity, attains matchless
II.viii.6.63-74 179

position in heaven. He will never be grief-stricken.


О Devas, in order to please me, a cow and her calf should be
carefully given away in this place in accordance with the injunc­
tions by all living beings desirous of merit. The cow should have
gold caps on its horns and silver (covering) on the hoops. A pair
of cloth coverings should be given (along with the cow). A milking
vessel made of bell metal should be given. The cow should be of
red-coloured back and should possess many good features. Jewels
must be tied to the tail. The cow should be one still yielding milk.
She must be adorned with bells and ornaments and be worshipped
with scents, flowers etc. She must be gay by nature. No progeny
of her should have been dead. The cow should be given to a
Brahmana well conversant with the Vedas, endowed with all good
qualities, and of a soul free from impurities. He should be a learned
devotee of Visnu and be very kind-hearted.
63-69. The cow should be given to a Brahmana of the above
description. The donor gets happiness everywhere. She should not
be given to a mere Brahmana by caste (devoid of these qualities).
He may cause the downfall of the donor.
In order to propitiate me, she shall be given here with a con­
science free from impurities.
Those who take holy bath for the sake of purity in this place,
those who are engaged in devotional activities for me, will find
salvation within their reach (as if on their palm). They will have
heavenly goal forever.
For the sake of propitiating me, excellent charitable gift should
be made at the pedestal of Cakrahari. Japa, Н ота etc. should be
scrupulously performed by men. All of you, О excellent ones,
celebrate the festival too in accordance with the injunctions.
Very near this spot of Guptahari, there is the splendid confluence.
It is three Yojanas (3x12=36 Kms.) from Gopratara to the west.
It is there that SarayQ joins the waters of the river Gharghara
(mod. Ghagra or Gogra).
After taking a holy bath here in accordance with the injunctions
the Lord should be visited enthusiastically, the Lord named Guptahari,
the bestower of all desired objects.

Agastya said:
70-74. After saying this, the yellow-robed Acyuta, the Lord
vanished. The Devas celebrated the festival in accordance with the
180 Skanda Purana

injunctions with great care. Fascinated by the excellent qualities


of Hari they permanently settled at Ayodhya.
Ever since then, О eminent Brahmana, that holy spot became
well-known all over the earth. There shall be a special annual
festival on the KarttikI (full-moon day in the month of Karttika)
for Lord Guptahari after a regular holy bath at the confluence.
After taking bath at this TTrtha, i.e. Gopratara, which is on (the
confluence of Sarayu and Gharghara, the Lord should be wor­
shipped. He is the bestower of all desired benefits.
The annual festival of Cakrahari should be scrupulously per­
formed by men on the eleventh day in the bright half of the month
of Marga€Irsa. He who celebrates this festival rejoices in the world
of Visnu.

§ri Suta said:


75. When the Pot-born Sage stopped after telling this, Vyasa,
Krsnadvaipayana, said again with surprise.

Vyasa said:1
76-77. О Brahmana, О ascetic, you have narrated this exceed­
ingly wonderful story whereby my mind has become full of sur­
prise. Tell me in detail the greatness of this.

Agastya said:
78. Listen, О eminent Brahmana, to the glory of the confluence.
It is highly surprising. It has been heard by me from Lord Skanda.
I shall recount it to you correctly.
79. I have learnt from Skanda that there are thousands and
hundreds of crores of TTrthas at the confluence of Sarayu and
Gharghara.
80. There is perpetual presence of the deities, Suras, Siddhas
and Yogins as well as Brahma, Visnu and Siva.
81-85. О Brahmana, listen with single-minded attention. I shall
tell you the benefit that one attains by taking the holy bath with
1. VV 76-116 describe the glory of Goprataraka Tirtha which is located on the
confluence of Sarayii and Gharghari or modem Ghagra (v 72). Its special month
of bath is Pau$a. The special historical (?) importance is that at the behest of R&ma,
all the citizens of AyodhyS drowned themselves in waters here and went to heaven
(v 116).
II.viii.6.86-95 181

mental purity in the waters of that confluence, by offering liba­


tions to Pitrs and Devas, by making charitable gifts in accordance
with one's capacity and by performing Homas with the Vaisnava
Mantras.
He will have the same benefit as one gets through a thousand
horse-sacrifices and a hundred Vajapeyas or the same merit as one
gets by making gifts of gold everyday or by performing holy rites
in the great holy place of Kuruksetra when the Sun is swallowed
by Rahu (i.e. at the time of a solar eclipse).
The holy bath taken on the new-moon day, full-moon day, on
both the twelfth days, on the day of Ayana and during VyatTpata,
yields the benefit of attaining the world of Visnu.
86. If a person stands on a single foot for a thousand Yugas
(and performs penance) and if a person duly takes his holy bath
in the confluence on the full-moon day in the month of Pausa, the
benefit of both is equal.
87. If a man hangs (himself) upside down for ten thousand
Yugas (for performing penance), (he gets the same benefit as)
those who purify their souls by means of the pure waters at the
confluence.
88. The benefit derived by those who take their holy bath in
the confluence cannot be attained by men even by means of hundreds
of sacrifices.
89. Particularly the holy bath taken in the month of Pausa
yields much benefit.
90. Whoever takes the special holy bath in the month of Pausa
with great faith—whether he is a Brahmana, a Ksatriya, a VaiSya,
a Sudra or a man of mixed caste, he goes to the abode of Brahma
with no possibility of returning to the earth.
91. 0 Brahmana, listen to the benefit of that person who faithfully
and duly offers an excellent lamp fed with ghee in the month of
Pausa.
92. The sin acquired by him in the course of different births,
whether small or big, shall perish entirely like salt dropped in
water.
93. One who offers light (lamps) attains excellent happiness
and benefit, long life, health, prosperity, progeny etc. (and is endowed
with merits).
94-95. One who undertakes Vratas here with great purity on the
thirteenth day in the bright half of the month of Pausa, a wise man
182 Skanda Purana

who performs Jagara ( i.e. keeps awake at night) shall go to the


abode of Hari. A Brahmana who, while keeping awake at night,
has subdued his sense-organs and has undertaken pious obser­
vances should perform Н ота after offering light.
96. A devotee of Visnu should keep awake performing the
worship of Visnu, listening to the story of Hari, presenting vocal
and instrumental music and dances causing pleasure to Visnu or
(listening to or narrating) meritorious stories and anecdotes of
Visnu.
97. When the day dawns with bright light, he should duly
take bath with great reverence and worship Visnu and Brahmanas.
Gold etc. should be given in accordance with his capacity (to
Brahmanas).
98. The learned devotee equipped with faith, who gives gold,
cooked rice and clothes at the confluence duly attains the greatest
goal (i.e. Moksa).
99. The rite of Jagara should be performed every year by
persons engaged in meritorious rites.
100-101. Hari should be worshipped. Brahmanas should be well-
propitiated by men in accordance with their capacity. Thereby
Visnu will be delighted much. All the sins will be dispelled and
rendered ineffective like serpents becoming bereft of poison at the
sight of Garuda. One who takes bath there goes to heaven. One
who takes bath here shall become happy.
102. All the living beings in the three worlds, on being pro­
pitiated, attain the greatest delight by means of the waters of the
confluence.
103. To all living beings tormented by miseries and seeking
relief, there is no other goal on a par with the confluence.
104. One who takes the holy bath in the confluence redeems
himself, seven generations succeeding and seven preceding him.
105. Those who do not come here and take bath in the confluence
of Sarayu and Gharghara are similar to those who are born blind
and those who are lame.
106. Among TTrthas the confluence is (the highest) like Brahmanas
among the different castes. In contact with the confluence of Sarayu
and Gharghara, a man is always like one who is a resident of
Vaikuntha.
107. A man who has subdued his sense-organs will attain heaven
by taking a holy bath, by making charitable gifts according to his
II. viii.6.108-118 183

(financial) capacity, and by а Н ота performed duly (as per in­


junction) here (at the confluence).
108. Whether the devotee is a man or a woman, he or she
should duly take the holy bath. Undoubtedly the benefit shall be
residence in the heavenly world.
109. Just as fire burns everything, whether dry or wet, so also
the holy plunge in that confluence reduces all sorts of sins to ash.
110. If all the TTrthas and the benefits of all kinds of sacred
pursuits are placed in one (pan) and (the benefits from) the confluence
of Sarayu and Gharghara (on the other), the latter will be found
to be heavier.
111. By taking the holy plunge in the confluence men will
derive such benefit as is proclaimed in the Srutis as the benefit
of taking the holy bath in all the TTrthas.
112. О sinless one, there is another TTrtha named Gopratara
near the confluence itself. It is destructive of great sins.
113. There has never been nor will there ever be a TTrtha on
a par with Gopratara. By taking the holy plunge therein and by
making charitable gifts no man shall ever be grief-stricken.
114-115. Just as Manikarnika at VaranasT, О learned one, or the
shrine of Mahakala at UjjayinT, О Brahmana, or CakravapT at
Naimisa are proclaimed as the holiest of TTrthas, so also, О
Brahmana, the TTrtha named Gopratara is a great TTrtha at Ayodhya.
116. It was here, О learned one, that at the bidding of Rama,
all the people of the city Saketa (Ayodhya) drowned themselves
in the great waters and attained the matchless bliss of heaven.

Vyasa enquired:
117. How did the citizens of Saketa attain heaven? How did
Rama go to heaven, О learned one? О sage of good holy rites,
narrate this.

Agastya replied:
118. Listen, О sage, with attention to this detailed narrative as
to how Rama and the citizens went to heaven.'1

1. VV 118161 describe how R§ma, after instructing his closest associates like
Hanuman and Vibhl$ana, entered Sarayu finally. This Tirtha naturally came to be
known as Svargadvara ('Gateway to Heaven’).
184 Skanda Purana

119. Formerly Rama completed the task of Devas with great


care. Then Rama of heroic intelligence decided to go to heaven
along with two of his brothers (i.e. Bharata and £atrughna).
120. Through spies the monkeys who could assume any form
they wished, heard about it. Many kinds of monkeys, the Rksas,
Gopucchas and Raksas came jumping.
121. These monkeys were the children of Devas, Gandharvas
and sages. Coming to know about (the imminent) passing away
of Rama, all those monkeys arrived there.
122-123.They approached Rama. All the leaders of the herds
of monkeys said: “ O sinless king, we have all come here to follow
you. О Rama, the great ruler of men, if you go without us, it will
be as though we are struck dead with a huge stick, О king.”
124. On hearing the words of those bears, monkeys and de­
mons, Raghava instantaneously spoke these words to VibhTsana:
125-126. “ As long as there are subjects alive (i.e. to the end
of the world), О VibhTsana, rule the great kingdom. You will
protect Lanka. Rule your kingdom. Do not make my words oth­
erwise. (Do not disobey me.) Protect your subjects righteously. It
does not behove you to tell me anything subsequently (against my
behest). ”
127-130a. After saying this, the descendant of Kakutstha said
to Hanuman: “ O son of Wind-god, live long. Do not belie (your)
vow. As long as the people recount my story, О great monkey,
you do sustain your life keeping up your vow. Mainda and Dvivida
had both of them partaken of nectar. As long as the worlds hold
on, they too will live. May these monkeys protect our sons and
grandsons here.”
130bc. After saying this Raghava, the descendant of Kakutstha,
spoke thus to all (the other) monkeys: “ You do come along with me.”
131. When the night dawned, Rama of broad chest, great arms
and eyes like the petals of a lotus, spoke to his priest:
132. “ Let all the (sacred fires of ) Agnihotra sacrifices go
ahead shining brilliantly. Let the Vajapeyas and the Atiratras go
ahead of me.”
133. Then the brilliant Vasistha inwardly decided everything
and duly arranged for all the rites of the Great Departure (Maha-
prasthana).
134. Then the king clad in silken robes, who had adopted the
vow of celibacy, taking Darbha grass in his hands, prepared him­
II. viii.6.135-150 185

self for the Great Departure.


135-136. The king uttered no auspicious or inauspicious words.
Like the moon coming out of the ocean he came out of the city.
Sri with a lotus was on the left side of the king, while the large­
eyed Hari accompanied him on the right side. Vyavasaya (Enter­
prise) went ahead.
137. Different kinds of weapons beginning with the bow, the
bowstring etc. followed Kakutstha (Rama). All of them had human
forms.
138. In the form of a Brahmana, the Veda went behind Rama
on the left side and Savitri on the right side. Omkara and Vasatkara
too followed Rama.
139. The noble-souled sages and all the Mountains followed
Rama who had reached Svargadvara.
140. All the women of the inner apartment followed the de­
scendant of Kakutstha, including old ladies, children, slaves, at­
tendants and sentries.
141. Accompanied by the women of their inner apartment, Bharata
with Satrughna also proceeded along with him. Following Rama
who went ahead the entire race of Raghu proceeded ahead.
142. Thereafter the noble-souled Brahmanas with the Agnihotra
sacrifices all round and accompanied by their wives and sons followed
Kakutstha.
143. The ministers with their servants, sons and kinsmen, all
of them with their followers, went after Raghava.
144. Then all the members of the administration, of graceful
manners and good qualities and surrounded by delighted and well-
nourished people followed Rama as he proceeded ahead.
145-146. All the subjects along with their sons and kinsmen
became the followers of Raghava. After seeing him devoid of sins,
they were clad in white clothes after their bath. All of them were
of controlled minds. They followed Raghava making tumultuous
sounds expressive of joy.
147. No one was distressed or dejected, frightened or miser­
able. All of them were very delighted and gay and very much
wonderstruck.
148-150. The bears, monkeys and the Raksasas, the people of
the city and those residing in outlying rural districts were eager
to witness the Nirvana (4Passing-away’) of the king. They saw him
going by the aerial path. After their arrival, they followed him
186 Skanda Purana

with great devotion. Those living beings in the city that had al­
ready vanished from sight, followed Raghava who arrived at Svargadvara.
151. All those living beings, whether mobile or immobile, that
saw Kakutstha, became inclined to go to heaven.
152. There was no living being, even the subtlest one in Ayodhya,
which did not follow Raghava who had reached Svargadvara.
153. After going half a Yojana, Rama proceeded ahead facing
the West. He saw the river SarayQ of meritorious waters.
154. At that auspicious hour, Brahma, the grandfather of the
worlds, came there to Kakutstha who had approached Svargadvara.
He (Brahma) was accompanied by all the Devas and noble-souled
sages.
155-158. All round him there were hundreds and crores of divine
aerial chariots that brightened the firmament. There was an ex­
cellent fiery brilliance due to the self-luminous great persons of
meritorious activities.
Auspicious, sweet-smelling and pleasant breezes blew. There
was a splendid shower of flowers along with a gust of wind of
great velocity. At that time Sun-god also came along with Gandharvas
and Apsaras. Rama touched the waters of Sarayu with his feet.
Thereafter Brahma began to eulogize along with the Devas.
159-163. “Indeed you are the lord of the worlds. No one knows
you. But I am, О wide-eyed lord, one who has been accepted by
you before. You are the great Being unimaginable and everlasting.
О lord of great vigour, enter that body of yours which you have
wished to adopt for the purpose of sustaining the worlds.”
At the instance of the grandfather of the worlds, the lord, along
with his younger brothers, entered the exceedingly divine fiery
world of Visnu.
Thereafter the Devas worshipped the excellent one among the
Devas, adopting the form of Visnu.
Sadhyas, the groups of Maruts along with Indra with Agni as
their leader, the celestial groups of sages, Gandharvas, celestial
damsels, Suparnas, Nagas, Yaksas, Daityas, Danavas and Raksasas—
all of them realized their desires completely. Devas were highly
delighted. All of them stationed in heaven exclaimed, “ Excellent!
Excellent!”
164-170a. Then Visnu of great refulgence spoke to Brahma1: “ O
1. VV 164-175 describe the creation of a special heaven called Santanika for the
people, monkeys etc. who followed Rama in the Sarayii waters.
II.viii.6.170b-178 187

lord of good holy rites, it behoves you to give a (separate) world


to these crowds of people. All these men have come here because
of their affection for me. They are devotees full of sincere love.
They have abandoned themselves completely.”
On hearing this utterance of Visnu, the lord of all the worlds
(Brahma) spoke: “ These men will occupy the world named Santanika.
He who meditates on Rama alone devoutly and abandons his life
in this TTrtha of Svargadvara, shall attain the great world of Santana
which is beyond the world of Brahma.
The monkeys will attain the source of their origin. The Raksasas
will reoccupy the Raksasa form. All of them who were born of
the bodies of Suras and Asuras will regain the same i.e. the bodies
from which they originated. Sugrlva, the son of Sun-god, will
attain the solar disc. The sages, the Nagas and the Yaksas will go
back to their origin.”
170b-176. When the lord of Devas said thus, the waters of
Gopratara reached SarayQ. All the places were filled with water
completely. All of them plunged into the waters joyously and cast
off their lives.
Men abandoned their human bodies and got into aerial chariots.
The beings of lower strata of animals entered SarayQ, abandoned
their bodies and assumed divine bodies. So also, in the case of
other beings, both mobile and immobile. After attaining excellent
bodies, they came to the world of Devas.
When that had been achieved, the monkeys, the bears and the
Raksasas cast off their bodies and entered (the celestial world).
Remembering the Lord, the sire of the worlds, they entered
heaven. The delighted, highly wise Rama went there along with
the Devas. Hence that TTrtha named Gopratara became famous.1
The greatest salvation is had only at Gopratara and not in other
TTrthas.
177-178. (In the other TTrthas) О Brahmana, if Yoga is achieved
through hundreds of births, salvation may or may not be achieved
in the course of one birth. But there is no doubt at all in the case
of Gopratara. A person well equipped with devotion to Hari attains
Yoga and salvation in the course of a single birth.

1. VV 176 ff describe the glory of Gopratara Tirtha. The procedure of performing


the Yatra of Svargadvara is also described. Near the temple of Guptira Mahadeva,
a place is pointed out where Rama ended his life (De 71).
188 SkandaPurana

179. A learned man, whoever he may be, who take his holy
bath in Gopratara, certainly enters the greatest abode that i& dif­
ficult of access even to Yogins.
180. Particularly on the KarttikT day, persons who have con­
quered the sense-organs should definitely take their holy bath. О
Brahmana-sage, all the Devas including Indra come to Ayodhya
for bathing especially in Gopratara, in the month of Karttika.
181. A TTrtha on a par with Gopratara has never been there
before nor will there ever be. Even Prayagaraja (the king of all
TTrthas) comes here in the month of Karttika for the purpose of
the holy bath.
182. (Defective Text*) (On taking its holy bath here) Prayaga
becomes sinless after abandoning (i.e. absolving himself of) all
sins. His body becomes white (clean) and the garment too is white
(spotless). In the matter of purification, he will realize his desire,
О excellent sage,
183. Whatever TTrthas there are, whether in heaven or on the
earth, О sage of good holy rites, all of them stay in Gopratara in
the month of Karttika.
184-185. Japa, Нота, holy bath and charitable gift according
to one’s capacity in the Gopratara TTrtha yield infinite bliss. With
faith and holy vow and observances all the TTrthas go over to
Gopratara in Karttika with the wish ‘Let us go to Gopratara in
order to dispose of our sins.’
186. The holy bath undertaken in Gopratara is destructive of
all sins. By taking the holy bath in Gopratara and by visiting Lord
Guptahari, one is rid of all sins. There is no doubt about this.
187. After taking the holy bath the worship of Brahmanas with
Visnu in view (i.e. regarding them as Visnu) should be particularly
performed by persons endowed with faith as well as by those of
controlled holy rites.
188. A milch cow should be given to a Brahmana well-versed
in Vedic knowledge. The cow should be adorned according to
one’s capacity. The Brahmana should be very pure. He must observe
holy rites regularly. She (i.e. the cow) shall be given by one who
has controlled himself for the purpose of propitiating Visnu.

* *Pravage* in this verse may be amended as Prayago. In Devanagarl script


(ge) and (go) being so similar, printers must have just missed the difference.
II.viii.6.189-203 189

189. Many kinds of cooked rice, gold, and clothes of various


kinds should be given by persons endowed with great devotion for
attaining Hari.
190. By offering lights here one will obtain that benefit (merit)
which is obtained in Kuruksetra by giving Tuladana at the time
of a solar eclipse and on (the bank of) Narmada at the time of
a lunar eclipse.
191. If the light offered by one burns brightly with ghee or
gingelly oil, О tiger among sages, of what avail is horse-sacrifice
unto him?
192. If light is offered by one in front of Ke$ava, in the month
of Karttika, it is as good as having performed all Kratus and
having taken the holy plunge in all the TTrthas.
193. The different kinds of TTrthas that yield worldly pleasures
and salvation, are not worth even a sixteenth part of Gopratara
TIrtha.
194. One who gives a small bit of gold to a Brahmana well-
versed in the Vedas attains the auspicious goal. He blazes bril­
liantly like fire.
195. By giving cooked rice in accordance with injunctions at
the TTrtha called Gopratara which is well-known in the three worlds,
one (i.e. the donor) is not reborn.
196. A man who takes his holy bath there and who propitiates
Brahmanas attains the benefit of Sautramani Yajna.
197. If a person observes holy rites with restraints and spends
a month taking only a single meal everyday, all the sins commit­
ted by him in the course of the whole life, perish instantaneously.
198. People who immolate themselves in fire in accordance
with the injunctions at Gopratara, О ascetic, undoubtedly enter the
region of Visnu.
199. If people observe fast (unto death) here decisively, urged
by devotion to Visnu, they will never return to the earth even in
hundreds and crores of Kalpas.
200. If a person worships Govinda in Gopratara, it is said that
he has acquired the merit of (gifting away) ten gold pieces.
201. The incense offered to Govinda yields the merit of Agnihotra.
The merit of giving scents and perfumes is said to be equal to that
of gifting plots of land.
202-203. О learned one, this holy spot is exceedingly miracu­
lous. It is highly glorified. Particularly in the month of Karttika,
190 Skanda Purana

if a person takes his holy bath here or in Svargadvara with pure


holy rites, he obtains the merit of donating ten gold pieces. The
donor of gold who gives away with faith shall be a resident of
heaven.
204. One should perform the rite of Jagarana during the night
on the fourteenth day in the bright half of the month of Jyestha
during holy Parvan days in this excellent Tirtha which yields the
benefit of donating ten gold pieces.
205. He should observe fast and be pure after the holy bath.
He should be devoted to the worship of Visnu. He should carefully
offer light that gives different kinds of merit.
206. The merits in heaven, in the terrestrial world, and in the
nether worlds roar only as long as light is not offered in the water
in front of Kegava in the month of Karttika.
207. On the full-moon day, the devotee should take bath early
in the morning with mind devoid of impurities. He should duly
worship Hari and perform £raddha with great reverence.
208. He should offer cooked rice according to his capacity and
propitiate Brahmanas. He should honour a Brahmana couple by
means of ornaments, garments etc.
209. He shall then visit Lord Guptahari and worship him in
particular. Thereafter, he should bow down to him as well as the
Tfrtha with the mind fixed on the deity with purity.
210. Then he shall take holy bath duly in Svargadvara at midday.
He shall be rid of all sins and shall be honoured in the world of
Visnu.
211. Thus, the devotee should take the holy bath in accordance
with the highly important injunctions in Gopratara with great care.
Thereby his form of meritorious deeds shall be well-known. By
worshipping Acyuta he shall eliminate all the sins. Due to his
reverence he shall have pure refulgence and attain Sayujya with
Visnu.
II.viii.7.1-8 191

CHAPTER SEVEN

Brhaspati, Rukmini and Other Kundas

Agastya said:
1. I shall describe another TTrtha which is known as Kslrodaka.1
This TTrtha is fascinating on account of its good qualities. It is
situated to the north-west of STtakunda. It is the abode of the mass
of merits. It is destructive of all miseries.
2. It is at this place that formerly King Da£aratha performed
a sacrifice named Putresti. It was for the sake of a son that he
performed the Yajna with great faith in accordance with the in­
junctions.
3. With great pleasure, he concluded the sacrifice wherein
monetary gifts were profusely and liberally distributed. At the
close of the Yajna Kratubhuk (i.e. the Lord who accepts the of­
ferings in sacrifice) appeared in an embodied form.
4. In his hand he held a gold vessel of great excellence filled
with Havis. The excellent Vaisnava refulgence had been mixed
with that Havis. The king divided it into four parts and gave them
to his wives.
5. The place where the milk which was very difficult to get
was obtained, has become well-known as Kslrodaka. It is destruc­
tive of all sins. It became manifest with water (watery form). It
is excellent and is a bestower of benefits.
6. By taking a holy bath there with great reverence, a wise
man who has conquered his sense-organs, obtains all his desires
and gets famous sons.
7-8. On the eleventh day in the bright half of the month of
Alvina, one should successfully perform the holy rite. He shall
take his holy bath in accordance with the injunctions and offer
charitable gifts to a Brahmana according to his capacity. By per­
forming the worship of Visnu duly as prescribed, he shall realize
all his desires. He shall obtain sons too. Know that the man will
duly obtain religious merits too.

1. VV 1-8 describe the TTrtha Kslrodaka on the north-west of STta Kun4a. Dafaratha
performed the Putra-Kame^i sacrifice here and got a gold vessel full of milk from
Fire-god. Hence the name Kslrodaka. The special day for this TTrtha is the 11th day
in the bright half of Ativina.
192 Skan da P u rd n a

9-10. There is a TTrtha situated to the south-west of Kslrodaka


TTrtha. It is well-known as Brhaspati Kunda.1It is decorated in an
extraordinary manner (?) It subdues all sins. It is full of nectarine
ripples of merits. It was here that the preceptor of Suras built his
residence himself.
11. Accompanied by many groups of sages, the liberal-minded
Brhaspati duly performed a Yajna there. That Kunda is beautiful
and it bestows many benefits. The»Kunda which has plenty of
shade from the splendid leaves (of many trees) is inaccessible to
sinners.
12. Devas including Indra took their holy bath there with care,
and obtained the benefit inwardly desired by them, namely, ex­
cessive beauty and liberal-mindedness.
13. By taking the holy bath here and by making charitable
gifts a man is liberated from sins.
14. The annual festival is to be celebrated on the fifth day in
the bright half of the month of Bhadrapada. It is beneficial on
other occasions too. A holy bath on Thursday yields much benefit.
15. He who performs the worship of Brhaspati as well as
Visnu at that place, becomes liberated from all sins. He rejoices
in the world of Visnu.
16. The holy bath in accordance with the injunctions along
with Sahkalpa (ritualistic resolve) should be performed by that
person who is afflicted due to the Gocara and Vedha of Brhdspati
(Jupiter).
17-19. That person should perform Н ота and then, standing in
water, should give an idol of Brhaspati made of gold, to an extremely
pure Brahmana conversant with the Vedas. The idol shall be given
along with a yellow garment, after the holy bath, for the purpose
of alleviating the affliction. The Нота should be performed in
accordance with the injunctions for the Japa of the Planets. If this
is performed thus the affliction caused by the Planet disppears.
There is no doubt about it.
20. The excellent RukminI Kunda12 is to the south of it. The

1. VV 9-19 describe the efficacy of Brhaspati Kunda. It lies to the south-west


of the above-mentioned Kunda. Its annual festival is celebrated on the 5th day in
the bright half of Bhidrapada.
2. VV 20-30 describe Rukmint Kunda lying to the south of brhaspati Kunda. Its
special day is the 9th day in the dark half of Karttika (v 23).
ll.viii.7.21-38 193

gentle lady RukminT, the beloved of Krsna herself, built it.


21. Visnu himself stays there in the water. Out of love for his
wife, he granted a boon and made it well-arranged and effective.
22. With purity, a man should perform holy bath, Нота with
Vaisnava Mantras, charitable gift, worship of Brahmanas and that
of Visnu there.
23. The annual festival is to be celebrated carefully with special
effort on the ninth day in the dark half of the month of Karttika,
for the purpose of dispelling all sins.
24. By celebrating the annual festival even an impotent man
begets a son. There is no doubt about it. The holy bath should be
respectfully undertaken by a man or a woman.
25. After enjoying all kinds of worldly pleasures, they rejoice
in the world of Visnu. Particularly, if one desires fortune and
glory, one should undertake the holy bath.
26. By taking the holy bath a man obtains all desires. For the
propitiation of RukminT and SrTpati charitable gifts must be given
according to one’s capacity.
27-30. Brahmanas should be particularly worshipped in accor­
dance with the injunctions. The Lord of LaksmT should be medi­
tated upon in this manner: He holds the conch, discus and iron
club. He wears a yellow garment and garlands. He is eulogized
by Narada and others. He is seated on Garuda. He wears a crown
(on his head). He is adorned by Mahendra and others. Kaustubha
jewel can be seen on his chest. He is dark in complexion like a
linseed flower. His eyes free from impurities resemble a lotus. For
the purpose of acquiring all desires and benefits he is to be meditated
upon thus.
If everything is performed thus, one shall realize all one’s desires.
There is no doubt about it. After enjoying pleasures in this world,
he rejoices in the world of Hari.
31-32. Henceforth, I shall recount another TTrtha that dispels
sins. It causes the annihilation of all the sins and defects of Kali.
It inspires faith. It is exceedingly sacred. It is matchless and bestows
all desired objects. It is well-known as Dhanayaksa.1It instils great
confidence.
33-38. The TTrtha is situated to the north-west of RukminT Kunda.

1. VV 31-68 describe the TTrtha called Dhana-Yaksa. Its special day is the 14th
day in the dark half of Magha.
194 Skanda P u ra n a

It is very auspicious. There was abundant wealth of the saintly


king Harigcandra. A formidable Yaksa had been posted fhere for
guarding the vast wealth.
Formerly Vifivamitra, the sage, had defeated king Hari£candra,
the performer of a great Rajasiiya sacrifice. The sage confiscated
the entire kingdom including the army consisting of four divisions
(i.e. Elephants, Chariots, Cavalry and Infantry). The sage entrusted
the entire wealth to the care of the Yaksa. He was named Pramanthura.
He was a jolly good fellow. As he guarded the wealth with very
great care and effort, the intelligent sage became satisfied. The
sage who had conquered his sense-organs spoke these sweet words
with great pleasure:

Visvamitra said:
39-40. Choose your boon, О (Yaksa) conversant with Dharma,
without any greed. Do it quickly. О intelligent one, I am particu­
larly delighted with your great devotion.

Yaksa said:
О excellent Brahmana, if you wish to grant me a boon as desired
by me, then О great sage, О Brahmana-sage, be pleased to render
my body sweet-smelling. It has become obnoxious in odour due
to the curse of the king.

Agastya said:
41-43. When the Yaksa spoke thus, the sage closed his eyes in
meditation. He discerned him to be one deserving this on account
of his great devotion. He bathed him with the Tfrtha water duly
after respectfully performing the rite of Sahkalpa. Within a mo­
ment he became one whose body was rendered very fragrant.
Having become transformed like that, the intelligent Yaksa stood
in front of him bowing down his head with humility. He spoke
these sweet words with palms joined in reverence:

Yaksa said:
44-46. Thanks to your mercifulness. I have become possessor
of a fragrant body, О clever sage. Do something so that this holy
spot may be well-known, О omniscient one. О Brahmana-sage, do
ll.vni.7.47-60 195

exert yourself so that with your favour it shall become famous.

Agastya said:
On being told thus, the sage thought for a short while with
closed and motionless eyes. Being delighted with the Yaksa, he
spoke to him in a gentle tone:

Visvamitra said:
47. О Yaksa, this holy spot will attain matchless renown. This
TTrtha will become well-known as Dhanayaksa.
48. It will bestow bodily beauty. It will instil faith and con­
fidence. By taking the holy bath in accordance with the injunction
(here), one will get rid of foul smell. Holy bath here should be
carefully taken by those who are desirous of merit.
49-50. Charitable gift should be given as per one’s faith as well
as financial capacity. Worship of LaksmT should be particularly
performed. By means of holy bath and charitable gift (one should
strive) for the propitiation of LaksmT in particular. О Yaksa of
good holy rites, by the worship of the nine Nidhis (Treasures) too
(this shall be achieved). He will enjoy happiness in this world and
rejoice in the other world.
51-57. These are the nine Nidhis: Mahdpadma, Padma, Sankha,
Makara, Kacchapa, Mukunda, Kunda, Nila and Kharva.
О sinless one, these Nidhis will also be present in this Kunda.
A special worship of these yields much benefit. The worship of
Goddess LaksmT and of the Nidhis should be performed in the
middle of water. Many kinds of cooked rice and different kinds
of clothes should be given. Gold etc. should be given according
to one’s capacity, but one should not be too miserly in spending
money for this purpose. The charitable gift should be distributed
scrupulously and secretly. Fruits and gold pieces should be given
in particular. The holy bath taken on the fourteenth day in the dark
half (of the month) yields much benefit. It should be performed
with more intense faith by persons endowed with great faith.
58-60. The annual festival is to be celebrated on the fourteenth
day in the dark half of the month of Magha. Holy bath should
be taken and libations to the Manes must be particularly offered.
The devotee should say like this: “ May the universe including
Brahma at the top and a blade of grass at the bottom be pleased”.
196 Skanda P u ran a

Saying thus he should offer three handfuls of water as libations


duly with the sacred thread over the right shoulder. One who does
like this, О Yaksa, never becomes deluded. One who takes bath
here goes to heaven. One who takes bath here shall be happy.
61. О Yaksa, at the outset your worship must be performed
by a person who takes his bath. By your worship in accordance
with the injunction the sins of men will perish.
62. The Mantra for the worship is like this: “ Obeisance, О
lord of Pramathas.” The worship, Sravana (listening) etc. should
be performed in the middle of the Tirtha.
63. The worship of Nidhis and LaksmT and particularly your
worship, О Yaksa (shall be performed so). The clever one who
does like this shall attain all the desired objects.
64-65.0ne who seeks wealth shall obtain wealth; one who seeks
sons shall beget a son; one who seeks salvation shall attain sal­
vation. What is that which is not obtained here?
О Yaksa, if anyone, out of delusion, does not take the holy bath
here, you will take away his full one year’s merit.

66-68. After granting him boons like this, Vi£vamitra, the great
sage, a storehouse of penance, vanished then.
Ever since then, that holy spot attained great fame. The entire
ground of that holy spot is made of gold. It is studded with plenty
of divine jewels. It is rendered splendid all round. О learned one,
he who does like this attains the greatest goal.
69. To the north of Dhanayaksa, О Brahmana, is situated the
well-known Vasistha Kunda1that is destructive of all sins always.
70. Vasistha, the excellent storehouse of penance, resides there
always. Arundhatl, of pure holy rites, is always near him.
71. If any intelligent man of great purity takes holy bath there
especially along with offering Sraddha, his merit is very excellent.
72. Vamadeva too is present there, О sinless one. Vasistha
and Vamadeva are to be worshipped with great care.
73. Arundhatl, the chaste lady, is to be specially worshipped.
Holy bath must be taken duly and charitable gift must be made
according to one’s capacity.
74. There is no doubt about this that he will obtain all the

1. VV 69-76 describe Vasistha Kunda which lies to the north of the above Kunda.
Its annual festival is celebrated on the Sth day in the bright half of Bhadrapada.
II.viii.7.75-85 197

desired benefits. He who takes holy bath here, shall become equal
to Vasistha.
75. The annual festival is to be celebrated on the fifth day in
the bright half of the month of Bhadrapada by a person with self-
control as his Vrata. The festival should be celebrated in accor­
dance with the procedure.
76. The worship of Visnu should be performed here scrupu­
lously and faithfully. He (i.e. the worshipper) shall be rid of all
sins and be sanctified and honoured in the world of Visnu.
77. Stationed to the west of Vasisthakunda, О eminent Brahmana,
is the well-reputed Sagara Kunda1, the bestower of all desires,
good things and accomplishments. By taking the holy bath here
and by making charitable gifts one shall obtain all desires.
78. One who takes holy bath here on Parvan days, shall attain
that imperishable merit which one attains through the holy bath
in the sea on a full-moon day.
79. Hence holy bath must be taken here in accordance with
the injunctions by those who desire a son. The special holy bath
should be taken on the full-moon day in the month of Alvina.
80. A man who does like this, О learned one, is liberated from
all sins. By taking the holy bath here and by making charitable
gifts according to one's capacity, a man shall go to heaven.
81. To the south-west of Sagara is situated the excellent YoginT
Kunda where the sixty-four YoginTs stationed in the waters are
present.
82. They are the bestowers of all objects on men and on
women in particular. All of them accord the greatest Siddhis; they
bestow all desires and benefits.
83. Holy bath should be carefully and particularly taken by
men for propitiation of the YoginTs on the eighth day in the bright
half of the month of ASvina.
84. Holy bath and charitable gifts—all shall be fruitful here. Yaksinls
and others can be won over here. There is no doubt about it.
85. To the east of YoginTkunda is the excellent Urva£Tkunda12.
1. To the west of Vasistha Kunda is Sagara Kunda (vv 77-80) and to the south­
west of it lies YoginT Kuncja (vv 81-84).
2. VV 8S-107 give an interesting story about how the celestial damsel UrvaST
approached Sage Raibhya (different from Sage Raibhya of Mbh) to disturb his
penance and was cursed to be ugly. Her beauty was restored at what is known as
Urvafi Kunda. Her annual festival is celebrated on the 3rd day of the bright half
of Bhidrapada.
198 Skanda P u ran a

A man who takes his holy bath here, О learned one, shall attain
UrvaST in heaven.
86-87. Formerly, it is said, a clever sage named Raibhya, an
ascetic, performed a great penance on the slopes of Himavan,
abstaining from food and curbing his sense-organs. On seeing the
elaborate penance the Lord of Suras became frightened. Zealously
he despatched Urva£T for causing obstacles in his penance.
88. On being sent by him, that lady with stately, elephent-like
gait stayed near the excellent hermitage of Raibhya on the slopes
of Himavan.
89-90. She (sported about) among the bowers of creepers and
bushes of full-blown flowers in the forest, where birds chirped
sweetly, where deer stood motionless on hearing the songs play­
fully sung by KinnarTs and which had golden colour on account
of the filaments and blossoms shaken and separated from Punnaga
(Calophyllum inophyllum), Kesara (Rottleria tinctoria) and A£oka.
It appeared as though a second Meru mountain had been created
by Brahma. There Urvagl shone like a receptacle of all the splendour
that the Lord of Love with the flowery bow possessed.
91. She was (as it were) a nectarine river of very extra-or­
dinary beauty.
92. She appeared to be shining with the lustre of white pearls
on account of the excellent complexion and refulgence of her
limbs. She was embellished with youthful sweetness and youth.
93-98. As she turned her gaze backwards, her side-glances shed
forth white lustre. With this she made her lips resemble fresh
sprouts. A bunch of mango blossoms wherein bees were humming
was hanging from each of her ears. She was (on the whole) like
a Parijata creeper growing out of divine nectar. Her waist was
slender. She had broad hips and fully developed breasts. Her com­
plexion was fair. She was as though a spear (in the hands) of the
god of Love who had sharpened his arrows on a whetstone.
The sage saw that lady of large eyes within that hermitage. It
appeared that in order to deceive the Three-eyed Lord the god of
Love who had been burned in the fire of the eye (of Siva) had
created the physical form of a maiden. On seeing that large-eyed
lady who had tucked a creeper of the hermitage into her girdle
and the flowers thereof into her ear-rings, the sense-organs of the
sage became stirred and excited. He became extremely furious.
Blazing with anger he cursed her.
II.viii.7.99-110 199

Raibhya said:
99. Become exceedingly ugly, О woman, too proud of your
beauty. It is for the purpose of causing obstacles in my penance
that you have come near me.

Agastya said:
100. On being cursed thus angrily by that sage that woman of
splendid eyes joined her palms in reverence and spoke to the sage
respectfully:

Urvafx said:
101. О holy lord, be pleased with me because I had been only
a tool in the hands of others, fully dependent upon them. О sage
of steady vows, how can I get redemption from your curse?

Raibhya said:
102-103. In Ayodhya there is an extremely great and holy Tirtha.
Do take your holy bath therein and regain your great beauty.
Certainly that TTrtha will acquire fame after your name.

Agastya said:
104-107. At the instance of that Brahmana, she performed everything
with great faith. She became a beautiful woman once again im­
mediately. That holy spot became very famous.
If any person duly takes holy bath here, О excellent sage, he/
she will acquire great charm and beauty. There is no doubt about
it.
The annual festival shall be on the third day in the bright half
of the month of Bhadrapada.Visnu should be worshipped by the
people here for the attainment of all desired objects.
A learned man who does like this shall always live in the world
of Visnu. The man or the woman shall attain all desires.
108-110. To the south of Urva^Tkunda, О tiger among sages,
is Ghosarka Kunda1, a great Tirtha that destroys all the sins for­

I. VV 108-139 describe how (the mythical) King Ghosa was cured of his fes­
tering wound by his bath in this Tirtha and he installed Sun-god here, bearing the
joint name of himself and Sun-god (Ghosarka).
200 Skanda P u ran a

ever. By taking the holy bath here and making charitable gifts one
is honoured in the world of Sun. There is no other Tirtha any­
where on a par with this Tirtha.
A man with festering sores and wounds, an impoverished per­
son, a leper or one overwhelmed with misery shall attain all desires,
if he takes the holy bath duly.
111-113a. The holy bath should with faith be performed par­
ticularly on Sundays. If desirous of going to the world of Sun-god,
a holy bath should be performed on the sixth day in the bright
half of the month of Bhadrapada or Magha. The bath should be
taken duly and carefully. The holy bath in the month of Pausa,
particularly on Sundays, is highly beneficial. The holy bath on the
seventh day coinciding with a Sunday, is excessively beneficial.
113b-l 15. Formerly there was a king in the solar race named
Ghosa. He was the sole emperor of the entire earth girdled by the
ocean. Due to his fame the spheres of the three worlds shone
brilliantly. Remarkably refulgent due to his valour he appeared
like another Sun. He had vanquished hordes of enemies by means
of his powerful brawny arms.
116-121. Once that ruler entrusted the ministers with the ad­
ministration of the earth. Interested in hunting, he wandered in the
forest where many trees had grown thickly together. Though that
king was handsome, yet his lotus-like hands became infested with
worms due to the sins of the previous births indicating inauspi­
ciousness. He was devoid of all pride. He happened to be hunting
alone. Once while he wandered about here and there in the forest
killing deer, boars and lions, he became oppressed with thirst. His
body became utterly tired and emaciated. In front of him, the king
saw a lake and sages engaged in taking holy bath and saying the
Sandhya prayers etc. Thereupon, the king duly performed the Acamana
rite and took the holy bath. Presently he assumed a divine body.
His mind was filled with delight and free from impurities. He
knew from the sages that it was a Tirtha. He then recited the
prayer pleasing to Sun.

The king said:

122. О lord, О lord of the chiefs of Devas, obeisance to you;


to the lord in the form of consciousness. Obeisance to Savitr, to
Surya who gives delight to the universe.
II.viii.7.123-131 201

123. Obeisance to the lord, to the abode of refulgence. Obei­


sance to you, identical with the three (Vedas). Obeisance to you;
to Vivasvan; to the lord conversant with Yoga; to the lord in the
form of Sat (existence).
124. Obeisance to the gratest one; to the great lord; to the
dispeller of darkness of the three worlds; to the unthinkable lord;
obeisance to you always having brilliant refulgence.
125. Obeisance to one fond of Yoga; obeisance to Yoga; obei­
sance to the one conversant with Yoga always; obeisance to Orhkara;
to the one in the form of Vasatkara; to the one, embodiment of
perfect knowledge.
126. Obeisance to Yajna; to the lord with Yajna as the mea­
suring unit; obeisance to Havis; obeisance to the Rtvik; obeisance
to the destroyer of sickness; obeisance to the one of good form;
to the one who accords delight to lotuses.
127. Hail to the excessively gentle; to the one extremely fierce!
Obeisance to the lord of Suras; salute to you partaking of the
Satras (sacrifices); to the protector of devotees; to the one fond
of the Atman.
128. Obeisance to the perpetual brightener of the worlds; to the
one who causes welfare to the worlds. Be pleased with me. I have
bowed down to you now. I am devoted to you.

Agastya said:
129. Even as he said thus Sun-god became himself pleased
with the king. With a desire to do something pleasing to his devotee
(Sun-god) promptly appeared before him. As the king bowed down
his head with humility, he spoke these sweet words:

Sun-god said:
130. О great king, choose a boon. I am pleased with you. Here
I am in front of you. I shall grant you the boon that is mentally
desired by you.

The king said:


131. О lord, О infinite one, О Sun-god, if you wish to grant
me a boon, may an image of yours named after me stand here
permanently.
202 Skanda P u ran a

Sun said:
132-135. Let it be so, О lord of men. Your desire is a fasci­
nating one. I will be pleased with those men who read this prayer
composed and recited by you. О king, I shall give them all that
they desire. This holy spot will become extremely renowned in the
world after your name. One who takes the holy bath here, obtains
all desires. The holy bath here shall always be undertaken by a
devotee of mine. Whatever he desires he shall obtain it.

Agastya said:
136. After granting this boon, the lord who was endowed with
great compassion, Sun-god with a thousand rays, vanished.
137. The king installed an idol of Sun-god, that issued forth
from the disc of the Sun. He himself worshipped that excellent
idol.
138. That Kunda became well-known as Ghosarkakunda after
the name of the king. By taking holy bath there a man shall shine
and reside in the world of Sun always.
139. Thus, in accordance with the good injunctions the devotee
should worship the idol of Sun with great devotion, free from
impurities and with great respect. At the outset he shall take his
holy bath in the nectarine'Kunda. (Thereby) he shall attain wide
reputation free from impurities. He shall reside in the world of
Sun.

CHAPTER EIGHT

Ratikunda and other Holy Tirthas

Agastya said:
1-6. To the west of GhosarkatTrtha, О Brahmana-sage, is situ­
ated a TIrtha well-known as Rati Kunda.1It is destructive of all
sins always. By taking holy bath here and by making charitable
gifts, one shall attain excellent splendour.

1. VV М 2 describe Rati Kunda and Kusumiyudha Kunda which lie to the west
of Ghosarka Tirtha. Its special day is the Sth day in the bright half of iftagha (known
as Vasanta-PaflcamI).
II.viii.8.7-18 203

To the west of that is situated a TTrtha named Kusumayudha


Kunda. This is matchless and famous. It is conducive to the at­
tainment of all desired objects. By taking holy bath here and by
making charitable gifts in accordance with the injunctions a man
obtains physical form on a par with that of the god of Love. О
sage, there is no doubt about it.
One who faithfully takes holy bath, О Brahmana, in Ratikunda
as well as Kusumayudhakunda, shall attain the highest happiness.
Couples who take holy bath in both the Kundas will become
famous like Rati and Kama. They will be handsome and charming
permanently.
Hence holy bath in accordance with the injunctions should be
taken by those who desire Dharma. Charitable gifts should be
given in accordance with one’s capacity for the propitiation of
Rati and Kama.
7-10. Rati and Kama shall invariably be pleased with them.
Holy bath taken here on the fifth day in the bright half of Magha
bestows auspiciousness.
Couples must first take their bath in Ratikunda and afterwards
in Kandarpakunda on that day very scrupulously, О Brahmana.
The worship of Rati and Kandarpa should be specially performed.
A Brahmana couple should be honoured with ornaments, garments
etc. The devotee shall attain all desires. There is no doubt about
this.
11. The devotee should worship the Brahmana couple with
sandalpaste, agailochum, camphor, musk, saffron etc., with differ­
ent kinds of clothes and with flowers.
12. When this is performed for the propitiation of Rati and
Kandarpa, there is no doubt, О Brahmana, that the couple shall
be on a par with Rati and Kandarpa.
13-14. A holy spot well-known as Mantre£vara‘ is situated to
the west of Kusumayudhakunda. It is very rarely accessible. If
persons take their bath in that TTrtha and visit Lord Mantre£vara,
they will never return (to the earth) even in hundreds and crores
of Kalpas.
15-18. Formerly Rama of pure holy rites completed the task of
the Devas. Then the king had consultation with Kala in regard to1

1. VV 13-20a give the importance of Mantre£vara installed by RSma after his


consultation with Kala. Its special day is the 14th day in the bright half of Caitra.
204 Skanda P uran a

going back to heaven. Where the Lord who had conquered the
sense-organs took his bath, he installed a Linga well-known
MantreSvara.
To the north of it there is a beautiful lake adorned with lilies
and blue lotuses. Taking holy bath there and making charitable
gifts bestows various benefits. It is very excellent.
The annual festival is to be celebrated on the fourteenth day
in the bright half of the month of Caitra. By taking the holy bath,
by making charitable gifts and by worshipping Brahmanas, one
attains infinite bliss in heaven. There is no doubt about this.
19-2la. The greatness of Mantresvara cannot be adequately
described by anyone, О Brahmana. The Lord is the bestower of
excellent benefit. A Linga on par with Mantresvara has never
existed before nor will there be another.
The deity should be worshipped carefully by means of fragrant
flowers, incense etc., unguents and other things. It is the bestower
of all desired objects. If everything is performed thus, undoutbtedly,
salvation is within his reach.
21b-22. To the north of this, О sinless one, is the Goddess
Sltala1stationed. By worshipping that goddess a learned man is
liberated from all sins. The goddess can be worshipped always but
particularly on Mondays the worship is to be performed by men
with great care for the attainment of all objects.
23. When there is fear of the outbreak of smallpox etc. her
worship is to be performed by men. It is destructive of the eruption
of the disease etc.
24-28. There itself, to the north of it, is the goddess well-known
as Band?. Merely by remembering her, one is rid of the fear of
being fettered.
Those who are bound with chains by an infuriated king, shall
become liberated instantaneously on remembering Goddess BandT.
A festival should be celebrated in her honour strenuously by
men particularly on Tuesdays. It bestows all desired objects.
She is to be ardently and carefully worshipped by means of
perfumes, flowers, incenses, lights and food offerings of various
kinds, О sage of holy rites. In order to propitiate Band!, О ex-1

1. There are minor sacred spots and deities described like $Itala, the deity of
Smallpox (vv 2 lb-23), BandT, the releaser of prisoners (vv 24-28), CudakT (vv 29-
37), MahSratna (vv 35-37), Durbhara and Mahabhara (vv 38-47).
Il.viii.8.29-42 205

cellent sage, Brahmanas should be fed. If this is done, one shall


attain all desires. There is no doubt about it.
29-32. There itself, to the north of it, is the goddess well-known
on the earth as CudakT. By remembering her, men can achieve
great Siddhis.
When success in undertakings is doubtful, when there is an imminent
fear, men shall remember her. They will achieve everything.
In front of her, men should make the sound of snapping the
fingers and the thumb. Lights should be offered carefully by per­
sons of controlled selves. The offering of lamps is honoured. It
bestows all desired objects on men. Her festival is to be celebrated
on all Caturda€I days.
33. To the east thereof is an excellent TTrtha well-known as
Maharatna. It is the most excellent of all splendid TTrthas.
34. By taking holy bath here, by making charitable gifts and
by worshipping Brahmanas, there shall be the attainment of all
desired objects. There is no doubt about it.
35-37. The annual festival is to be celebrated on the fourteenth
day in the dark half of the month of Bhadrapada.
It is learnt that the main festival is well-known as Maharatna.
Hence the excellent TTrtha is well-known as Maharatna. There,
charitable gifts giving satisfaction to Brahmanas should be made.
The festival of Jagarana (keeping awake) should always be cel­
ebrated, О Brahmana-sage, by women too for the sake of valour,
good fortune, prosperity and all sorts of happiness. Holy bath
should be taken faithfully and carefully by men.
38-42. To the south-west of it are the two auspicious lakes
Durbhara and Mahabhara. They are liberal in bestowing auspi­
cious merits.
By taking a holy bath there a man always attains the region of
heaven. Many kinds of wealth and garments should be given away
(at those TTrthas). Worship of Siva should be performed by men
after taking bath in both the lakes. One should be endowed with
ardent devotion and different kinds of (noble) sentiments.
MaheSvara, the blue-throated lord, should be worshipped with
splendid flowers, sweet scents etc. The Enemy of Andhaka is
worthy of being propitiated by even Yogins.
After meditating on Siva thus, along with (Goddess Parvatl), a
pure man devoid of sins attains all desires immediately. He shall
reside always in the world of Siva.
206 Skanda P u ra n a

43. By doing this, О Brahmana, a man is liberated from all


sins.
44-45. At the excellent TTrtha called Mahabhara and at Durbhara,
on the fourteenth day in the dark half of Bhadrapada, one should
devoutly and according to injunctions, perform the worship of
Siva and especially of Brahmanas.
A man who performs this with devotion happily resides in Siva's
world. A person who does it thus is never deluded.
46-47. The eternal Lords Visnu and Rudra become greatly pleased
with him. Merely by remembering these two one is liberated from
all sins.
Therefore, of what avail is much talk? О Brahmana, this TTrtha
is excellent; it suppresses all sins. It always brings about all the
desired objects.
48. Henceforth I shall recount another auspicious TTrtha, where
without good fortune it is impossible to celebrate festivals or to
make charitable gifts.
49-50. To the north-east of the holy spot of Durbhara there is
a great TTrtha named Mahavidya. (Merely) by visiting it Siddhis
will be within the reach of men. After taking holy bath in the lake
in front of the deity, a man who visits Mahavidya with faith and
devotion shall attain the greatest goal.
51. Similarly SiddhapTtha is very well-known. It inspires con­
fidence and faith. О Brahmana, worship should be performed there
with great devotion.
52-56. The pure devotee should, with concentration of mind,
always practise and repeat with faith any Mantra which may be
£aiva, Sakta (pertaining to Sakti), Ganapatya or Vaisnava. О learned
Brahmana, he shall achieve permanent Siddhi. It will be an as­
tonishing show.
Hence Japa etc. should be performed without any lethargy.
There should be had monthly festivals on the eighth and ninth
days. Various kinds of fruits and cooked rice in plenty should be
given away. The deity should be bathed with milk. It should be
ardently worshipped.
At this place even wicked black magical mantras especially
Uccatana (spells for eliminating the enemy) and Mohana (spells
for deluding the enemy) become perfected and mastered.
57. At the place called Siddhasthana, the mastering of Moksa
is the best. Japa, Нота, charitable gifts (everything)shali be of
II.viii.8.58-73 207

infinite benefit.
58. О Brahmana, О sage of auspicious rites, a man who goes
there during the nine days in the bright half of the month of
A£vina is liberated from all sins.
59-65. After conquering Ravana who had made the worlds cry
aloud, the leading scion of the family of Raghu returned in the
company of STta and Laksmana. In order to receive Rama, Bharata
went to this place on foot. Endowed with good fortune and ac­
companied by his followers (Bharata) had halted here.
The divine cow appeared there with milk flowing from her
udders in profuse quantity. On seeing the milk falling on the
ground, the monkeys and the Raksasas were struck with wonder.
They asked Rama (the lord of) mobile and immobile beings: “ O
great king, what is this?” The great scion of the family of Raghu
said to them: “ Vasistha knows everything. We shall ask that sage.”
On being told thus, all of them with the king as their leader, stood
in front of Vasistha and asked him with palms joined in reverence.
Vasistha meditated for a short while. Addressing Rama in front
of all, the sage said to him calmly:

Vasistha said:
66-68. Listen, О mighty Rama. This is the auspicious Kamadhenu.
Out of affection for you, she has come down here with milk
flowing from her udders.
In the middle of the flowing milk Rudra has come up. He has
come to see you, the excellent (warrior) who have conquered the
enemy and who have fulfilled the task of Devas. Worship him
quickly near this Kunda. Without any delay worship this auspi­
cious Siva ardently. In this Kslrakunda he is the holy deity well-
known as DugdheSvara.

Agastya said:
69. Then the glorious scion of the family of Raghu worshipped
that Linga, known as Dugdhe€vara, in accordance with the injunc­
tions of Vasistha.

70-73. Since that Kunda where the milk flowed, was honoured
by STta, that Kunda attained a matchless reputation as ‘STtakunda’
from that time onwards.
208 Skanda P u ran a

Men who take their holy bath in STtakunda and visit Lord
DugdheSvara are liberated from all sins. There is no doubt about
this. Holy bath taken, Japa, Н ота performed and charitable gifts
offered here shall bestow infinite merit.
By worshipping STta and Rama at STtakunda along with Laksmana
and by worshipping DugdheSvara one shall attain all desires. The
annual festival is to be celebrated on the fourteenth day in the
month of Jyestha.
74-78. One who is very righteous and merciful and performs
the rites like this duly, goes to the greatest abode, after reaching
which one does not become grief-stricken.
There on the eastern side is the great Tirtha of Taponidhi (‘Storehouse
of penance’) made by Sugrlva. It is an auspicious TTrtha that is
situated nearby. One who takes the holy bath there, makes chari­
table gifts and carefully worships Rama, shall attain all desires on
that very day.
To the west of it is the holy spot Hanumatkunda. To the west
of it, О Brahmana, is the splendid lake named VibhTsana Saras.
By taking a holy bath in both of them, by making charitable gifts
and by worshipping Rama there itself in accordance with the injunctions,
one obtains (fulfilment of) all desires.
This is that extremely pure Ayodhya. It is known as Dharmanidhi
(‘Storehouse of piety’).

79-81. On being told thus* all of them with VibhTsana as their


leader humbly asked sage Vasistha with great respect: “ O sage,
О storehouse of great penance, recount this rare story. Describe
the glory of Ayodhya, so that after hearing the excellent greatness,
we will be able to undertake the pilgrimage in accordance with
the injunctions. Take pity on us, О storehouse of penance, and
recount it.”

Vasistha said:
82. May all the sages listen to the wonderful glory of Ayodhya1.
On listening to it, one is rid of all sins. There is no doubt about
it.
* All the verses from v 71 sitakunde narah snatva “Men who take their bath in
STtakunda" up to this verse constitute presumably Vasistha’s speech.
1. After describing minor Tirthas, the author stresses the importance of Ayodhya
and outlines the pilgrimage to Ayodhya in vv 82*116.
II.viii.8.83-97 209

83. This exceedingly great, secret, holy spot named Ayodhya is


very excellent. It always causes salvation to all living beings.
84. In this (holy spot), Siddhas and Devas have adopted the
Vaisnava Vrata. They regularly wear different kinds of symbols
and are desirous of the world of Visnu.
85-88. They practise the great Yoga. They have just controlled
the Pranas (vital airs); they have subdued their sense-organs. This
holy spot is full of different kinds of trees and is the abode of
many kinds of birds. It is beautified by many lakes full of the
beauty and splendour of lotuses and lilies. It is frequented by
groups of celestial damsels. This is the holy spot of Hari. This
great place (city) named Ayodhya is an excellent holy spot.
89-91. By taking holy bath or by residing in Naimisa, Kuruksetra,
Gangadvara and Puskara salvation is not attained (as easily as) it
is obtained here. For that reason it surpasses all other holy spots.
Either at Prayaga or here, one will attain salvation by resorting
to Hari. This alone is known as greater than all other excellent
TFrthas.
Salvation which is considered difficult to have is obtained in
this holy spot by all Siddhas, great sages and ascetics of unmanifest
symbols.
92-94. Hari grants them Yogic power and excellent glory and
even Sayujya with himself. This excellent holy spot is desired (by
all).
Brahma accompanied by celestial sages, $ri, Vayu (Wind-god),
Divakara (Sun-god), the Lord of Devas (i.e. Indra) known as £akra
and other heaven-dwellers—all these noble souls worship Hari
everywhere with great respect. Other Yogins, Siddhas of great
holy rites identical with the holy spot, worship Hari with their
minds not diverted to anyone else.
95. Even a person whose mind is attracted towards sensual
objects, even a man who has forgotten everything about piety and
holiness, does not resume worldly existence after dying in this
holy spot.
96. Those who are dependent on Nigamas (Vedas), those who
abide by Sattras (sacrificial sessions), those who have conquered
the sense-organs, those who observe holy rites without undertak­
ing any other activities—all these are sanctified by Hari.
97. With the favour of Hari these intelligent ones devoid of
attachment attain the greatest salvation after the disintegration
210 Skanda P u ra n a

(i.e. death) of the physical body.


98. A Yogin practising for thousands of births may not attain
the great salvation. That salvation is obtained by dying here.
99. I shall succinctly describe the wonderful glory of this holy
spot. This alone is the greatest holy spot. This alone is the greatest
region. No other holy spot like this is seen elsewhere.
100. Persons desirous of merits should go to this holy spot on
pilgrimage. О intelligent ones, the pilgrimage has to be performed
by persons with great faith in accordance with the injunctions and
in due order.
101-103. On the first day Upavasa (holy fast) must be per­
formed by a person of controlled self. Thereafter he should un­
dertake holy bath and then (give) charitable gifts according to his
capacity. The term Upavasa means this: One who has abstained
from sins has his Vasa (residence) with good qualities. That is the
correct interpretation of the word Upavasa. Hence it means avoid­
ance of all sensual enjoyments.
After observing the fast the man of good holy rites should take
the holy bath and make charitable gifts according to his capacity.
104-107. One should perform all these in due order: After
worshipping a Brahmana duly, he should visit Lord Visnuhari.
Then he should take bath at Svargadvara and worship Visnu with
concentration. Then the devotee observing the Vrata shall have a
shave in the holy spot named Dharma. Thereafter, he should take
baths in Papamocanaka and Rnamocanaka TTrtha. Then he should
visit Lord Candrahari and Lord Dharmahari. After visiting Cakrahari
he should make charitable gifts according to his capacity. Then
the devotee takes his holy bath in Brahmakunda for the purpose
of achieving all desired objects. Then he should perform the Jagarana
rite at night in the vicinity of Mahavidya.
108. When the day dawns clearly, the person observing the
good holy rites should get up and duly take his holy bath at
Svargadvara carefully.
109-110. After performing the Sraddha rite duly and making
charitable gifts according to his capacity, the devotee should duly
worship Visnu and the Brahmanas repeatedly. A couple should
also be worshipped and honoured with garments etc. Plenty of
monetary gifts too should be offered by persons endowed with
great faith.
111-114. After honouring the Brahmanas duly, the pure man
n.viii.8.115— II.viii.9.1 211

should himself take his food. On the next day the devotee endowed
with great faith, should get up (early in the morning) and visit
RukminT Tirtha and other TIrthas in the proper order. In the different
places the man should take his holy bath and make charitable gifts
according to his capacity. Then he should worship Visnu carefully.
He shall be free from mental, verbal and physical impurities. Thus,
with the self fully controlled, the devotee of pure holy rites should
conclude his pilgrimage successfully. If at any place he may happen
to die (during the performance of pilgrimage) he shall attain the
great salvation.

Agastya said:
115-116. After listening to these words spoken by Vasistha thus
those Raksasas and others with VibhTsana as their leader per­
formed everything in accordance with the injunctions. Then they
became free from impurities.
Thus the (Monkeys etc.) with Sugriva as their chief performed
the pilgrimage in accordance with the detailed injunctions. They
acquired plenty of merit. Due to their endeavour to go back to
heaven all the dirt in their bodies vanished. They attained excel­
lent bodies. All or them attained the full complement of good
qualities.

CHAPTER NINE

The Glory o f Various Tirthas*

Agastya said:
1. To the south-east of Jatakunda is situated the great TTrtha
well-known as Gayakupa. It bestows everything desired.

* This chapter gives succinctly the importance of remaining Tirthas such as Gaya
Kupa (vv 1-11), Pi£2camocana (vv 12* 14), MSnasa (vv 15-18), the river TamasS (and
traditional yet fine description of its natural beauty) and the hermitage of Mandavya
(vv 19-38), SIta Kunda, Bhairava, Bharata (and his residence at Nandigrama) (vv
46-54), Jaffi Kun^a where R2ma and Lak^ma^a got their matted hair removed (vv
55-58). The annual festival thereof is celebrated on the 14th day in the dark half
of Caitra.
212 Skanda P u ra n a

2. By taking the holy bath there, by giving charitable gifts


according to his capacity and by performing $raddha-rite, an ex­
cellent Brahmana obtains everything he desires.
3. The manes (fathers and grandfathers), who may be in hells,
go to the world of Visnu when that $raddha is performed.
4-5. One shall become free from indebtedness to the Pitrs, О
Brahmana, when that £raddha is performed. The offering of rice-
balls should be in accordance with one*s capacity. It has been
directed by the Sages that a Sraddha should be performed with
barley grains, milk pudding, oil cake or jaggery in that TTrtha. It
is said that it causes satisfaction to the Pitrs.
6. Sraddha should be performed there by men endowed with
faith. Their Pitrs will be delighted. All the deities (too) will be
delighted.
7-10. When the Pitrs are satisfied, the devotee becomes pros­
perous and blessed with sons. The Pitrs propitiated by means of
£raddha grant many sons, prosperity and glory and abundant worldly
pleasures to those who perform &raddha. There is no doubt about
this.
Hence $raddha should be performed here ardently and in ac­
cordance with the injunctions by persons endowed with faith, who
wish to gain cherished benefits. Particularly the $raddha offered
to the Pitrs at Gayakupa becomes infinite in benefit.
When the new-moon day coincides with Monday, the £raddha
should be performed to the Pitrs. The $raddha offered thus has
infinite benefit.
11. Even on other Mondays £raddha can be performed in ac­
cordance with the injunctions. It gives satisfaction to the Pitrs.
What is offered will yield infinite benefit.
12. To the east of this is the TTrtha called Pi£acamocana which
is the most excellent among the excellent ones. It bestows ben­
efits.
13-14. If one takes bath there and makes charitable gifts, one
never becomes a Pi€aca. Holy bath, charitable gift and $raddha
should be particularly performed there with great effort by men
endowed with faith.
The holy bath should be taken especially on the fourteenth day
in the bright half of the month of Marga£Trsa for getting rid of
Pi&cahood.
15. Very near it, to the eastern side, is the TTrtha named
II.viii.9.16-28 213

Manasa. It is the foremost among residences of meritorious per­


sons. There the holy bath must be specially taken. One attains all
desired benefits by taking the holy bath and by making charitable
gifts.
16. Different kinds of sins, even if they were to be as huge
as Meru, vanish due to the holy bath there.
17. Whatever sin, whether mental, verbal or physical, exists
in one, shall become dissolved on account of the holy bath.
18. The (annual) festival of this TTrtha should be particularly
celebrated on the full-moon day in the month of Prausthapada
(Bhadrapada) by men of meritorious nature engaged in holy rites.
19. To the south of it is the river named Tamasa (mod. Tonse),
the sole source of merit. It is destructive of great sins.
20-23. The holy bath and charitable rites performed here are
always destructive of all sins.
There are many types of holy abodes of sages of purified souls
on its banks that are beautiful and always yield fruits. There is
the holy abode of Sage Mandavya. It is destructive of sins. It is
on its banks, О excellent sage. It is very fascinating everywhere.
His penance-grove is very beautiful and very charming on account
of the different kinds of trees. That forest from which the excellent
river Tamasa originates is highly meritorious and holy. It is an
excellent region.
24-28. By visiting it men will get all their sins destroyed. The
penance-grove is rendered splendid, due to the various hedges and
bushes in full bloom. It is very charming. A spreading network
of creepers droops down. There are Priyahgu (Aglaia odorata)
trees all round with plenty of flowers. There are Ketaka trees
(Pandamus odoratissimus) in full bloom with many thorns. It is
full of hedges of Tamala trees (Indian Cinnamon) of great fra­
grance, Karnikaras (Pterospermum acerifolium), Bakulas (Mimusops
elengi), ASokas and excellent Punnagas (Calophyllum inophyllum)
all in full bloom. Bees hover round these flowers in great swarms.
In some places the penance grove is resonant with (the sounds of)
birds embellished with the pollen-dust of full-blown lotuses and
moving about among the luscious fruits. In some places the sounds
of aquatic birds, water fowls, beautiful gallinules in great inebria­
tion and such other birds are heard. In some places the sounds of
ruddy geese are heard; in some places flocks of Kadamba (a dark-
grey-winged variety of geese) birds are seen; in some places, the
214 Skanda P urdn a

sounds of Karandava ducks are heard and in some places the


sounds of overjoyed and excited swarms of bees fill the air.
29-32. It is frequented by the excited and overjoyed bees. It
abounds in beautiful and fragrant flowers. In some places there
are mango trees with plenty of blossoms and Tilaka (Symplocos
racemosd) trees overgrown with creepers. It is frequented by delighted
birds of different kinds and it is filled with the sounds of the flocks
of Harlta pigeons. Thus that penance grove has a charming look
and it shines remarkably.
It appears blue with the dense growth of Nicula {Barringtonia
acutangula) trees; it is beautiful with peacocks; it is pleasant on
account of the chirping sounds of flocks of female birds inebriated
and joyous. The overjoyed and excited bees settle down among
the branches of the trees in full bloom. It is exceedingly splendid
with the beauty of the fresh sprouts and tender shoots. It is rich
in excellent fruits. Thus it possesses excessive splendour; it is
charming and pleasant in every direction; it is the place where
Sage Mandavya performed his great penance. Due to the power
of that sage this great TTrtha is always pure and sacred.
33-36. To the east of it is the great holy hermitage of Sage
Gautama. To further east is the hermitage of Sage Cyavana. This
first hermitage, О excellent one among sages, is that of Sage
ParaSara, your father, a storehouse of penance.
There are different kinds of TTrthas and hermitages all round
belonging to great ascetics on the banks of the river Tamasa. That
river Tamasa, it should be known, is very auspicious and remark­
ably splendid all round with a number of sacrificial posts fixed
therein. By taking the holy bath there, by making charitable gifts
and by performing Sraddha rites in particular, one shall achieve
all desired objects. There is no doubt about it.
37. The holy bath taken there particularly on the fifteenth day
in the bright half of the month of MargaSTrsa is always conducive
to the attainment of benefits by men.
38. Hence, О excellent sage, holy bath should be taken ar­
dently by persons with minds devoid of impurities. It bestows all
desired objects.
39. Henceforth, I shall recount another great and auspicious
TTrtha on Tamasa. It is well-known as STtakunda. It is in the
vicinity of £ri Dugdhe£vara.
40. The annual auspicious festival is celebrated on the fourth
II.viii.9.41-53 215

day in the bright half of the month of Bhadrapada. For the purpose
of attaining all desired objects, VighneSvara is to be worshipped.
All obstacles will be destroyed merely by remembering him.
41. To the south of it is the deity named Bhairava, on seeing
whom one is absolved of all sins. There is no doubt about it.
42-44. He is protected by Vasudeva and kept there honourably
for the sake of guarding the holy spot. His worship should be
performed duly and with great effort. By showing great reverence
to Bhairava, one will obtain all the benefits desired mentally.
The annual festival is to be celebrated on the eighth day in the
dark half of the month of Marga£Trsa there for the purpose of
attaining all desired objects. Worship along with the offering of
an animal should be performed by people. There is no doubt about
this that they will attain all desired objects.
45. It is with the favour of Bhairava that the residence in a
TTrtha is free from obstacles. Hence his worship must be per­
formed with great care.
46. To the north of this is the beautiful Bharatakunda. By
taking holy bath here a man is liberated from all sins. There is
no doubt about it.
47-53. The holy bath performed and charitable gift offered there
shall have infinite benefit. Different kinds of cooked rice should
be given. So also different kinds of clothes. The deities are to be
worshipped with great care by means of ornaments, clothes etc.
Formerly Bharata, the scion of the family of Raghu, the pure soul
with fully conquered sense-organs, stayed in Nandigrama* and
meditated upon Ramacandra. Seated there alone, he, dear to the
earth, protected all the subjects.
The king named Bharata made a big Kunda. After installing
Rama’s image, that prince of subdued sense-organs performed (the
worship). There is a great merit in that Kunda. It is associated with
various meritorious activities. There are various flowers such as
lilies, blue lotuses, white lotuses and red lotuses. It shines with
various birds such as swans, Sarasa ducks, and ruddy geese. It is
very pure with plenty of shade from the trees of the garden. The
holy bath taken there is highly meritorious. It is devoid of impu­
rities and is full of gaiety and bliss. If the devotee performs holy
£raddha rites and bath with the Pitrs in view, the Pitrs become
pleased with him. All the deities will be pleased with him.
Mod. Nundgaon close to Bharata Kuncfa, 8 miles from Fyzabad (De 138).
216 S kan da P u ra n a

54-58. Gold and cooked rice should be given in accordance


with the injunctions to Brahmanas. This must be performed with
great faith by piously disposed men. To the west of it is the
excellent Jatakunda where Rama and others dropped and removed
their matted hairs. Thus Jatakunda is well-known as the most
excellent of all excellent Tirthas. By taking the holy bath here and
by making charitable gifts, one attains all desires. In the previous
(? eastern) Kundas Bharata should be worshipped along with £ri.
In the Jatakunda Rama and Laksmana should be worshipped along
with SIta. The annual festival shall be on the fourteenth day in
the dark half of Caitra.
Thus in accordance with the great injunctions one shall worship
Rama and SIta (first), then in Bharatakunda one shall worship
Laksmana. The couple should take the holy plunge in the Amrtakunda
duly. Thereby the devotee dwells in the world of Visnu as an
embodiment of meritorious deeds.

CHAPTER TEN

Pilgrimage to Ayodhya

Agastya said:1
1-2. The devotee should worship Ajita (Visnu) by abstaining
from food or taking in only milk. Siddhi (spiritual achievement)
comes within his hands (power).
The great festival should be celebrated with vocal and instru­
mental music. An intelligent devotee who does like this and performs
the rites in this manner, shall attain all desires.
3-6. To the north of this is the auspicious TIrtha of VTra, the
great elephant in rut, О sage regularly performing holy rites.
After taking the holy bath, the devotee should stay there in
front of it determinedly. He attains the complete Siddhi on re­
alizing which he does not bemoan or regret.
VTra (Hero, the elephant deity here) is the defender of Ayodhya
and bestower of all desired objects. The annual festival shall be

1. Although the outline of the pilgrimage to Ayodhya is given in Ch. 8 vv 102-


116, a detailed treatment is given in this chapter in vv 1-73.
ILviii.10.7-19 217

celebrated on the PancamT (fifth) day during Navaratris (Festival


of nine days in Alvina). The deity should be worshipped cerefully
by means of scents, incense, flowers etc. and food offerings in
accordance with the injunctions. The deity shall be the bestower
of all desired objects. Whatever he may desire, he shall attain.
7. To the south of this is the demoness named Surasa. О
Brahmana, she is a perpetual devotee of Visnu. She is a bestower
of Siddhis.
8-12. By devoutly worshipping her one shall realize all desires.
She was brought from her abode in Lanka by Rama of magnificent
activities. She was installed in Ayodhya for the sake of its de­
fence. People must observe vows and restraints, worship her duly
and visit her with great respect. The festival for the sake of re­
alizing all desired objects, bestows auspiciousness. It should be
celebrated with great effort by means of vocal and instrumental
music.
The annual festival shall be celebrated on TrtTya (third day)
during the Navaratris. It is conducive to the attainment of hap­
piness and progeny. It bestows great objects. It shall be made
pleasant by means of songs, musical instruments and dances. If
everything is done thus, one shall be well-protected always. There
is no doubt about this.
13-16a. In the western direction to this is installed a very great
warrior of excellent heroism called Pindaraka. He is to be wor­
shipped with great effort by means of scents, flowers, raw rice-
grains etc. As a result of this worship Siddhis shall be within the
reach of men. The worship of that deity should be performed by
men in accordance with the injunctions of worship. The devotee
shall take his holy bath in the waters of Sarayu and then worship
Pindaraka who deludes sinners and bestows good intellect on men
of good deeds always.
The (annual) festival should be celebrated during Navaratris
with great luxury.
16b-17. To the west of it, the devotee should worship VighneSvara
by seeing whom not even the least obstacle remains (in the affairs)
of men. Hence Vignegvara, the bestower of all desired benefits,
should be worshipped.
18-19. To the north-east of that spot is the place of the birth
of Rama. This holy spot of the birth is, it is said, the means of
achieving salvation etc. It is said that the place of birth is situated
218 Skanda P u ran a

to the east of Vighnegvara, to the north of Vasistha and to the west


of Laumaga.
20. Only by visiting it a man can get rid of staying (fre­
quently) in a womb (i.e. rebirth). There is no necessity for making
charitable gifts, performing a penance or sacrifices or undertaking
pilgrimages to holy spots.
21. On the NavamI day the man should observe the holy vow.
By the power of the holy bath and charitable gifts, he is liberated
from the bondage of births.
22. By visiting the place of birth one attains that benefit which
is obtained by one who gives thousands of tawny-coloured cows
everyday.
23-25. By seeing the place of birth one attains the merit of
ascetics performing penance in hermitage, of thousands of Rajasuya
sacrifices and Agnihotra sacrifices performed every year. By seeing
a man observing the holy rite particularly in the place of birth he
obtains the merit of the holy men endowed with devotion to mother
and father as well as preceptors.

NOW THE DESCRIPTION OF SARAYO

26-27. It gives infinite satisfaction to the Pitrs, the devotee gets


more merit than that of Gayagraddha, if Sarayu is visited. One gets
that merit thereby which is obtained by staying in KagT for thou­
sands of Manvantaras.
28. By (visiting) the city of the Son of Dagaratha (i.e. Rama)
in Kali Yuga, it is said, one gets that merit which is obtained by
persons who perform Gayagraddha and then visit Purusottama
(Jagannathapuri).
29. If Sarayu is visited, one attains that benefit which a man
obtains when he stays in Mathura for the period of a Kalpa.
30. If Sarayu is visited, one obtains that merit which is ob­
tained in Puskara and Prayaga in the month of Magha or Karttika.
31. If Sarayu is seen, one obtains that merit which is obtained
by means of stay in AvantI for thousands and crores of Kalpas.
32. By visiting the city of Dagaratha’s Son in Kaliyuga (even)
for half a moment one obtains the merit of taking a holy plunge
in Gahga for sixty thousand years.
33. If living beings contemplate on Rama for a moment or
half a moment, it becomes the destroyer of ignorance which is the
Il.v iii. 10.34-44 219

cause of the worldly existence.


34. Wherever one may stay, if one mentally remembers Ayodhya,
there is no question of his returning (to the earth) even in the
course of hundreds of Kalpas.
35. Sarayu is Brahman itself in the form of water. It always
bestows salvation. There is no question of experiencing the effects
of Karma here. The man assumes the form of Rama.
36. Beasts, birds, and animals and all those living beings of
inferior species, become liberated and they go to heaven in ac­
cordance with the words of £rirama.

37. After saying thus the Pot-born Sage stopped. Then Vyasa,
Krsna-Dvaipayana, the ascetic, said once again:
38. “The detailed story in the proper order is not accessible
to all the living beings. I have heard the procedure (and the proper
order) from the men who come from there.
39. Now I wish to hear about the places of pilgrimage in
accordance with the injunctions. О excellent sage, I wish to hear
the proper order and procedure of the pilgrimage clearly from you,
О ascetic.
40. Even as I ask you for it, describe the benefit in detail and
in due order, О learned one, О most excellent one among merciful
person, if you have any pity for me.
41. О sage observing regular vows, the most excellent one
among those who know the entire universe, do it so that with your
favour I can also undertake the pilgrimage.”

Agastya said:
42-43. Listen. I shall describe accurately the procedure for the
pilgrimage, from the beginning, to Ayodhya and to the seven
TTrthas in the proper manner and in due order. A pilgrim must be
pure mentally, verbally and physically. His conscience must be
free from impurities. With the sense-organs under control, he should
take the holy baths in the Manasa (Mental) TTrthas. He who performs
the rite perfectly well like this, attains the merit of visiting the
TTrtha.

Vyasa said:
44. О ascetic, recount the Manasa TTrthas where the mind of
220 Skanda Purana

those men who take the holy bath becomes pure.

Agastya said:
45. О sinless one, listen as I narrate to you the Mental TTrthas,
by taking a proper bath in which a man attains the highest goal.
46-47. They are: Satyatirtha (Truthfulness), Ksamatirtha (For­
bearance), Indriya-nigraha (Restraint of the sense-organs), Sarva-
Bhuta-daya Tirtha (Mercifulness to all living beings), the most
excellent Tirtha of Satyavdditd (Speaking the truth), Jhdnatirtha
(Knowledge) and Tapastlrtha (Penance). Thus the seven TTrthas
have been recounted. The mind will become pure in the Tirtha of
mercifulness to all living beings.
48. Purification of the body alone by means of water is not
implied by the word Snana (holy bath). If the mind of a man is
pure he is said to have (really) taken Snana.
Listen to the criterion for the meritoriousness of the terrestrial
TTrthas.
49. Just as some parts of the body are known as excellent,
middling etc. so also there are some places on the earth that are
proclaimed as exceedingly meritorious.
50. Therefore, one should have his stay in the terrestiral TTrthas
as well as mental TTrthas., He who takes his holy bath in both,
attains the greatest goal.
51. Hence you too, О leading Brahmana, undertake the pil­
grimage with a pure conscience. Adopt it with great effort. (But)
the pilgrimage has not yet been described by me. О eminent
Brahmana, I shall describe the procedure for the pilgrimage in due
order.
52. Aquatic beings are bom in waters and they die in waters.
They are impure in mind. They do not become free from impu­
rities. They do not go to heaven.
53. Unceasing attachment to the objects of sensuous pleasures
is called the dirt or impurity of the mind. If the mind refrains from
coming into close contact with them, it is called its freedom from
impurities.
54. If the mind is internally defiled, holy bath in a TTrtha does
not purify one. A liquor pot is unholy even if it is washed with
water hundreds of times.
55. Charitable gifts, sacrifice, penance, cleanliness, pilgrim­
Il.v iii. 10.56-69 221

age to Tirthas, Vedas—all these are holy Tirthas if the devotee


is mentally and emotionally pure.
56. A man who has restrained the group of his sense-organs
may stay anywhere. That place is Kuruksetra, Naimisa and Puskara
for him.
57. Thus, О Brahmana, the characteristic features of a Mental
TIrtha have been recounted to you. If one takes bath therein all
one’s holy rites shall be fruitful.
58. An intelligent devotee should get up very early in the
morning and take bath in the confluence. After visiting Lord Visnuhari
he should take bath in Brahmakunda.
59. After taking the holy bath in CakratTrtha, visiting first
Lord Cakrahari and then Dharmahari, a man shall be liberated
from all sins.
60-62. The pilgrimage undertaken on every Ekada£T (eleventh)
day is conducive to auspiciousness. The intelligent devotee shall
get up early in the morning and take his plunge in the waters of
Svargadvara. After performing his daily round of duties he shall
visit Ayodhya. After viewing Sarayu he should visit the Elephant
in Rut (i.e. VTra). He should then see Band!, $Ttala and Batuka.
After taking his holy bath in the lake in front of him he shall see
Mahavidya.
63. After visiting Pindaraka he should see Bhairava. This pil­
grimage on the eighth and fourteenth days (of Lunar months)
bestows merit.
64. On the Ahgaraka CaturthT (fourth) day the devotee should
visit the deities mentioned before and then visit Vighne$vara for
the purpose of attaining all desired objects.
65-68. The intelligent devotee should get up early in the morning
and take his plunge in the waters of Brahmakunda. After visiting
Visnu and Visnuhari, he should, with mental, verbal and physical
purity, see Mantre£vara and then Mahavidya. Then he should visit
Ayodhya for the purpose of attaining all desired objects.
The devotee who has conquered his sense-organs should take
bath along with the clothes on. Due to the holy bath along with
the clothes one has on, different kinds of sins committed in the
course of many births perish. Hence one should take holy bath
with the clothes on. Thus the auspicious pilgrimage that dispels
all sins, has been recounted.
69. Even in the course of hundreds and crores of Kalpas one
222 Skanda P u ran a

does not return (to the earth), if one performs regularly the pil­
grimage that bestows auspicious benefits.
70. Hence you too, О eminent Brahmana, go to Ayodhya. Do
not delay. After going there undertake the pilgrimage with perfect
restraint on the sense-organs.
71. Ayodhya is the greatest holy place. Ayodhya is exceed­
ingly great. No other city like Ayodhya is seen.
72-73. Ayodhya is the greatest holy place established on the
discus of Visnu. Thus what was asked by you has been recounted,
О Brahmana, by me. Resort, О sage, to that and allow me (to
proceed) from here.

Siita said:
74. After saying these things when the Pot-born Sage stopped,
Vyasa, the storehouse of penance, spoke these sweet words:

Vyasa said:
75-76. I am blessed. I am contented, О sage, I have done my
duty. Truthfulness, cleanliness, learning, good conduct, forbear­
ance, straightforwardness—all these are in vain if one does not go
to Ayodhya. Since you who were pleased with me have pronounced
the right judgement, I shall go to the pure city of Ayodhya even
now. О great Brahmana, you too do go back to your own hermit­
age.

Suta said:1
77-78. After describing the excellent procedure for the pilgrim­
age in due order, the pot-born sage, Agastya, the mass of penance,
went to his penance-grove. The intelligent mass of splendour,
Vyasa, who had conquered his sense-organs, went to Ayodhya
with his eyes beaming with surprise and pleasure like a lotus in
full bloom. The Brahmana went to Ayodhya for the purpose of
attaining all desired objects.
79-82. After proceeding to Ayodhya he performed the pilgrim­
age in accordance with the injunctions in due order. On seeing the
excellent TTrtha, the performer of wonderful miracles, he became

1. In vv 77-87 Suta concludes the present Mahatmya with its P)ialaSruti.


Il.v iii. 10.83-87 223

exceedingly delighted. The intelligent sage ceremoniously sipped


the water therein. Then the sage, the great Brahmana, went to his
penance-grove.
The glory was recounted to me by Vyasa in the due order. I
listened to the glory and undertook the pilgrimage in accordance
with the injunctions. After coming to Kuruksetra it has been recounted
and reviewed before you.
83. The pure man who reads this matchless glory and listens
to this with faith, attains the great goal.
84. Hence this should be listened to with great care always
by people. The worship of Brahmanas and Visnu should be per­
formed scrupulously.
85. Gold etc. should be given in accordance with one’s ca­
pacity to a Brahmana. He who seeks sons will get sons. He who
seeks Dharma will get Dharma.
86. This has been described along with detailed injunctions.
It is conducive to Dharma. An excellent man who comprehends
this glory of the holy place with great devotion, shall be endowed
with prosperity. He goes to the abode of Hari after enjoying all
pleasures.
87. He who gives to the expounder of the Purana some time
money according to his capacity, vessels, clothes of great beauty
and charm, silver, gold and cows shall be liberated.

:: End of Ayodhya-Mahatmya ::
SKANDA PURANA

B ook II: VAISNAVAKHANDA

S ection IX: VASUDEVA-MAHATMYA'

CHAPTER ONE

Query by Savarni123

Reverential Salutations to Sri Krsna


Henceforth the glory of Sri Vasudeva is begun.

Saunaka* said:
1. О Sauti,4 means conducive to the beatitude of living beings
such as Dharma (duties pertaining to the different castes and stages of
life), knowledge, aversion to worldly desires, Yoga and others, have
been mentioned in various ways by you to us.
2. (These were explained) with various kinds of legends and
traditional accounts, clarifying them with great perspicuity. О highly

1. This is a text of Pancaratra Agama. The Agama claims Vedic origin as it


is said to be based on the extinct Ekayana recension of the Sukla Yajurveda. In
this Agama Vasudeva is Parabrahman, Narayana (Lakjml Tantra XV.9). Sartkarsana,
Pradyumna, Aniruddha are his manifestations. Though these are names of Yadava
heroes who lived at the fag-end of Dvapara Yuga, they are said to represent the
self (Jiva), the mind (Buddhi) and the ego {Ahamkara) and as such they are ancient
(Puratana) and not limited to Dvapara Age (Lak$ml Tantra VI. 12b, 13). Vasudeva
means one who is omnipresent and everything resides in him (VP 1.2.12). He is the
Supreme Lord who is glorified in this section. Hence the title Vasudeva-Mahatmya.
2. Savarni: A sage who propitiated God Siva in Krta Yuga and got the boon
of being immortal. He was a great author (Mbh, Anu 14.103-104). Savarni, the
future Manu is not intended here.
3. Saunaka: A sage of Bhrgu family, son of Sunaka, author of numerous works
like Rk-PratiSakhya, teacher of ASvalayana. His leadership in the sacrificial session
for 12 years in Naiini$a forest during which Sauti narrated Mbh (Mbh, Adi 1.19),
made him the traditional interlocutor of practically all Puranic works at this sac­
rificial session in Naimi$a forest.
4. Sauti: Ugra$ravas, son of Suta Romaharsana, the narrator of Mbh to £aunaka
(Mbh, Adi 1.5). He is the traditional narrator of Puranic works to £aunaka.
226 SkaruiaPurana

intelligent one! All of them have been respectfully and attentively


heard by us.
3. But they are very difficult to be performed by all human beings.
Moreover, achievement of success in them is very difficult to be had
on account of numerous intervening impediments (while performing
them).
4. It is after a pretty long time that those (means) give results
if they are pursued with great perseverance by men of great fortitude.
5. Hence may Your Honour proclaim to us the means easy to all
twice-born persons belonging to different castes (classes) and stages of
life, as well as to women and even Siidras (and other low castes) here.
6. (The means should be so easy that) by making the slightest
effort any embodied being could accomplish the great Fruit (Moksa)
without facing any impediments.
7. О highly intelligent one, after deeply deliberating and consid­
ering over that sort of means of (accomplishing) Moksa, it behoves you
to explain it kindly for the good of all living beings.
8. Through the grace of Baladeva, Vyasa and Janaka you know
everything. Be pleased to narrate it to us who are eager and desirous
(of knowing it).

Sauti replied:
9. О Saunaka, the great sage Savarni had humbly asked Skanda,
the son of Sankara, this very question.

Savarni enquired:
10. О Guha, various kinds of Dharmas, knowledge of Sankhya
and means like Yoga (as) explained by you on many occasions, have
been heard by me.
11. I certainly regard them too difficult to pursue in case of
people like me. Even for others who are great and capable, they can
be pursued with great difficulty and yield results after a long period
of time.
12. Hence, now it behoves you to tell me that most excellent
means which is easy to pursue for people of different classes and
stages of life and leads to their spiritual good (Moksa).

Sauti said:
13. When Guha was thus asked by that eminenfsage desirous of
H ix .l.14-23 227

knowledge, Karttikeya (Skanda) meditated on Vasudeva in his heart,


and spoke out.

Skanda said:
14. Listen, О Brahmana, I shall now relate to you what has been
heard by me from my father’s mouth, the means of attaining Moksa,
easy for all living beings.
15. To persons belonging to all castes and stages of life, who are
eagerly desirous of accomplishing their own cherished objects, there
is no other means at all in this world comparable to the gratification
of deities.
16. Even if the slightest meritorious act or service is rendered
with reference to deities, it confers the great fruit (of the act, probably
liberation) on men without any difficulty or impediment.
17. It is due to its association with deities that performance of
(ritualistic) acts pertaining to deities, manes, one’s own (specific) duty
or an act with some end in view, quickly yields accomplishment of
what one wishes for.
18. It is due to this that whatever (practice or act) such as Sankhya,
Yoga, Vairagya (indifference to worldly objects) etc. has been previ­
ously declared as difficult becomes easy to accomplish immediately.
19. Inasmuch as cherished objectives are achieved only by the
propitiation of God, he should be propitiated with love and devotion,
to the best of one’s capacity, by all men.

Savarni enquired:
20. О Six-faced Lord, formerly various types of gods have been
told by you to me. Various methods of propitiating them have been
described by you.
21. All the various kinds of fruits, the chief of which is the attain­
ment of heaven etc., (of those propitiations) have been proclaimed by
you. But they are swallowed up (terminated) by Time.
22. О Guha, the fruit such as the attainment of Jana (Loka) and
other higher worlds resulting from the propitiation of Brahma by Yogins
who abstain from worldly activities, is also impermanent and transi­
tory, as it lasts for two Parardhas (100 years of Brahma) only.
23. What is the propriety of acquiring those fruits with very great
difficulties by acts very difficult to perform, if the fruits obtained be
perishable?
228 Skanda Purana

24. I do not like the propitiation of deities whose body, position


and power etc. are perishable in course of time.
25. He who himself is free from fear and eternal is the remover
of fear of others. He has a permanent abode and is the donor of eternal
fruit and affectionate to his devotees.
26. О Guha, tell me of that god with whose grace all the desires
of all (people) will be easily accomplished in this very world.
27. Tell me truly the method of propitiating him which is easy
to follow and approved by honourable persons. I am eagerly desirous
of knowing this immediately.

Sauti said:
28. Lord Guha who was thus accosted by the great sage (Savarni)
became highly pleased. The noble-minded god respectfully spoke this
to him.

CHAPTER TWO

Meeting of Narayana and Ncirada

Skanda asked:
1. О you expert in making enquiries, О sinless one, you are asking
a very great (difficult) question, a reply to which cannot be found in
hundreds of years even by great knowers of Brahman, by one’s own
reasoning, except through the grace of God.
2. I shall tell you what became known to me through the favour
of Vasudeva. There is nothing that should not be told to a person devoted
to Dharma, О pious-minded one.
3-4. When the battle of Bharata was over, the King (Yudhisthira)
having no enemy yet bom, asked BhTsma who was superior among the
knowers of Dharma this very question. He (BhTsma) was lying on the
bed of arrows. He had attained undisturbed spiritual identity with Acyuta
(Krsna) through meditation. He was expert both in Vedas and Agamas.

Yudhisthira said:
5. If one desires attainment of the four (main) objectives of life
(i.e. Dharma, Wealth, Pleasure and Liberation), what deity should be
worshipped by one among the four castes (Brahmana, Ksatriya, Vaigya
H.ix.2.6-17 229

and ^udra) and in any of the four stages of life (i.e. Brahmacarya,
Grhastha, Vanaprastha and Sannyasa), О (grand)father?
6. What Siddhi (accomplishment) can be obtained without any
obstacles? How can it be achieved within a short time? How can a
person of a meagre store of merits attain a great position? О grand­
father, you are omniscient. Please remove this doubt (problem) of mine.

Skanda said:
7. When asked thus by that pious-souled Yudhisthira, BhTsma,
the son of Santanu, looked at the lotus-face of Lord Krsna and smiled
gently, О sage.
8. Directed to speak by a gesture of his eyes by him (Krsna), he
narrated the greatness of Vasudeva as proclaimed by Nara and Narayana,
as was heard from (his) father.
9. Having heard it, even Narada went again to Kuruksetra. He
came back to Kailasa, and narrated it to Father, who in turn told it to
me.
10. О guileless one, I shall communicate fully that to you, who
(devoutly) enquire about it. О excellent sage, it is decided in a great
assembly, and is devoid of all doubts.
11. Vasudeva, the Supreme Brahman, Srlkrsna, the Supreme Man,
the God, should be worshipped by men irrespective of their entertain­
ment of desires for objects, or desirclessness, and even by liberated
persons.
12. In every way, he is to be pleased with devotion, by means of
performance of one’s respective Dharmas (specific religious duties),
by twice-born castes in their stages of life, and by women, &0dra and
other lower castes.
13. Therefore, all religious and ritualistic acts pertaining to gods
and manes should always be done out of love (and devotion) for him
in the proper manner, as prescribed in the Vedas.
14-15. Whatever auspicious act is performed by men here for the
sake of attainment of happiness—even if it is properly done (in the
Gastric way)—if that act be devoid of its relation with Krsna, it should
be known as perishable and conducive to little fruit. It lacks excel­
lence of fruit, and due to factors like inauspiciousness of place etc.,
it is full of defects. It is never conducive to the attainment of men's
cherished objects.
16-17. Verily, that act is righteous, if it is performed for pleasing
£rikrsna. If related to him, then thereby everything becomes free from
230 SkandaPurana

restrictions. It gives imperishable fruit, much more than that desired


by oneself. It does not at all become defective in qualities by its contact
with impure place etc.
18. О Brahmana-sage, no impediment can frustrate that (pious)
act, from any quarter, through the power of the Discus-bearing Lord.
It gives success in the attainment of the object desired by him.
19. Even if one’s own merit be scanty, through direct contact
with the Supreme Soul, it (merit) gains considerable strength, О Brahmana.
20. Just as fire, though merely a spark, becomes uncontrollable
forest-conflagration through its contact with heaps of wild (dry) wood,
so it happens in this case through its contact with Hari.
21. Therefore, persons desirous of proper achievements (of their
objectives), should propitiate Vasudeva, irrespective of their being
established in Dharma of the type of active worldly life, or of the (non-
worldly) contemplative devotional type.
22. Here, they cite this ancient legend in the form a dialogue
between Narada and Sage Narayana.
23. Lord Vasudeva who is eternally abiding in Brahmaloka, mani­
fested himself through the daughter of Daksa from sage Dharma, for
the welfare of the world.
24. О excellent Brahmana, formerly in the Svayambhuva Manvantara
in Krta Yuga, he manifested himself in the twin form of Nara and
Narayana.
25. For performance of penance only for the welfare of men, they
proceeded from the hermitage of their father Dharma and both Nara
and Narayana came to the hermitage of Badarl.
26. There, both the Lords of the world, emaciated with their veins
lined like cords, shine with their own refulgence (so much so), that
they were difficult to look at even by gods.
27. He, on whom they confer their blessing, deserves (i.e. is capable)
to see them. Otherwise, it is not possible to see them, even for resi­
dents of their place.
28. On one occasion Narada, the Yogi, who was desired by them
to be seen, was strongly urged to do so in his heart, by their inner soul
(will power).
29. From the peak of the great Mount Mcru he immediately came
by aerial path to the place called Badarya£rama (the hermitage of
Badarl), О Brahmana.
30. He quickly came there at the time of their performance of
daily religious duties. He saw them from afar engaged in the religious
Шх.2.31—H.ix.3.4 231

duties of the first stage of life (i.e. Brahmacaryasrama).


3 1-32. As soon as he saw the performance of religious duties by
those Lords, a great curiosity arose in his mind: "Wonderful! Both of
these great Lords are adorable to all embodied beings. These are veritable
Supreme Brahman. What could be their daily religious routine. They
are the fathers (progenitors) of all beings, the deity of all gods. What
deity or manes could these highly intelligent ones might be worship­
ping!’
33. Thinking thus in his mind, that devotee of Narayana came
near him, paid obeisance to him, stood with palms folded in reverence.
34. When their duties (worship etc.) to gods and manes were over,
he was seen by them. He was worshipped as per Gastric injunctions,
О sinless one.
35. Having seen that unprecedented, greatly wonderful procedure
(of reception), the highly pleased Narada who was sitting near, became
wonder-struck.
36. After having observed Narayana properly, with his piously dis­
posed inner soul, he bowed down to him and addressed these words to
the Lord.

CHAPTER THREE
*
Sri Vasudeva to Be Worshipped by All

Narada said:
1. You are being praised in Vedas along with Puranas in all their
divisions and sub-divisions. О Acyuta, you are the eternal creator, con­
troller. You are the creator and this entire world is always within you
(i.e. you are all-pervasive).
2. О Lord, (persons belonging to) the four stages of life, (people
of) all castes, everyday adore with (worshipful, ritualistic) acts, you
who are abiding in various forms.
3. You are the father, the mother and the eternal God unto all.
We do not know whom you worship as father or god.

Narayana replied:
4. This esoteric matter should be kept secret with one’s own
232 SkandaPurdna

self. Still, О Brahmana, I shall accurately explain to you who are


devoted unto me.
5-7. Know him only to be our God and parent, who is described in
Vedas as the Truth, Knowledge, Infinite Brahman, the Person transcen­
dent to the three gunas, the person of divine personality who is called
the Supreme Man, Vasudeva, the Master, Narayana, Rsi (Sage), Visnu,
Krsna and the Lord. He is worshipped by us both, regarding him as God
and Parent.
8. О Brahmana, there is no one superior to him as Father (Pro­
tector) or God. Krsna, the Lord of Brahma-pura (-loka) should be known
as our soul.
9. He has proclaimed this limit for promoting the welfare of the
world, viz. performance of duties pertaining to gods and ancestors.
10. Vedic Karma is of two types—one Pravrtta i.e. pertaining to
the active duties (of worldly life), and the other, Nivrtta or abstaining
from worldly life. For realizing the objectives in life, it is prescribed
according to the capacity of men.
11-12. (Karmas under Pravrtta category are as follows:)
Marrying a woman suitable to oneself by procedure prescribed in
Tantra and/or Veda; earning of wealth in a just way; sacrifices involv­
ing expenditure of money, but performed with a desired objective; stay
in a village or a town; works of personal piety and works of public
utility,—all this is Pravrtta, which is said to be not contributory to
peace.
13-14. (Karmas under the Nivrtta category are as follows:)
Renuciation of wife, wealth, sex, greed and anger; stay in a forest;
indifference to worldly objects; penance; forbearance; equanimity; self-
control; recitation of the Vedas; Yoga-yajna; Jnana-yajfia; muttering
a mantra or prayer as sacrifice—all this has been mentioned as Nivrtta
Karma.
15. The movement of the souls of men who perform the Pravrtta
dharma is up to heaven in the three worlds.
16. Asa fruit of their respective merits, they certainly enjoy various
kinds of coveted lordly pleasures in the abodes of Indra, Candra, Agni
and others.
17. Having enjoyed pleasures so long as the (balance of) merits
lasts, those gods helplessly fall down to the earth again, when (the
store of) their merit is exhausted.*

* Cf. BG XI.47.
II.ix.3.18-32 233

18. О sage, when their (stock of) merit is exhausted, their enjoy­
ment and prosperity dwindle fast with the passage of time, even if they
are unwilling.
19. Even in the case of Devas who are established there as au­
thority, the destruction of their desired enjoyment and lordship frequently
takes place with the speed of Time during Brahma's day.
20. Yogins, the performers of penance who have firm devotion in
Nivrtta Dharma go to Jana and other three worlds beyond (our) three
worlds (viz. the earth, the nether world and heaven).
21. As desired by them, they enjoy the pleasures and lordship
afforded in those respective worlds. They live equally in happiness,
during the daily type of Pralaya (world destruction).
22. At the end of two Parardhas (i.e. one hundred) years of God
Brahma, their worlds as well as their prosperity, pleasures and lordliness,
perish with the speed of Time, О Narada.
23. Now this two-fold Karma, though possessed of Gunas, becomes
devoid of Gunas, if performed with reference to (i.e. dedicating it to)
Visnu.
24. Its fruit is imperishable. It is much more than what is desired
by men. Those devotees go to the supreme abode of the Lord from eight
(various) modes of life.
25. Hence people with (right) discrimination always do all the
acts, whether of the Pravrtta or Nivrtta type, (remaining imbued) al­
ways with devotion to Visnu.
26-28. О sage, Brahma, Siva, Manu, Daksa, Bhrgu, Dharma, Yama,
MarTci, Ahgiras, Atri, Pulastya, Pulaha, Kratu, Vaibhraja, Vasistha,
Sun-god, Moon-god, Patriarchs like Казуара, Kardama and others, all
gods, sages, all castes, and (persons belonging to) all stages of life—
all those who have resorted to Pravrtta Dharma (should) worship that
very Lord.
29-30. Sana, Sanatsujata, Sanaka, Sanandana, Sanatkumara, Kapila,
Aruni, Sanatana, Rbhu, Yati and sages like Hamsa who are steady
performers of vows—all these who arc established in Nivrtta Dharma,
worship that very Lord.
31. Considering gods and ancestors as parts of the person of Vasudeva,
they everyday worship them with the mode of worship free from injury
to beings.
32. Wherever these are posted by him according to their powers,
whether it is Pravrtta type of Dharma or Nivrtta type, they abide by
it. In both the cases they never transgress the bounds of morality and
234 SkandaPurana

propriety set by the Lord.


33. That Almighty Lord fully supplies whatever is most desired
by any of them in the four classes.
34. The Lord, being pleased, gives the great, cherished imperish­
able fruit (i.e. Moksa), for even a slight meritorious act done (unto
him) with devotion.
35-36. Out of them, those who, out of devotion to him in the world,
are established in devotion solely unto him, and all whose longings for
objects other than Vasudeva are thoroughly exhausted, at the end of
their life attain to his domain which is beyond darkness. With their
divine bodies they wait upon him with love.
37. Other devotees whose longings and false notions come to an
end in due course, by firmness of devotional service also go to him like
Ekantika devotees (i.e. devotees who are exclusively attached to a
single deity, Visnu).
38. He who is associated with him in whatever manner or capa­
city, never returns to Samsara anywhere like other living beings.
39. It is due solely to taking resort to him that the attainment of
the fruit of Karma Yoga or Jnana Yoga is quickly accomplished with­
out any impediment-
40. Hence, that very Lord should be propitiated with love and
devotion as per proper procedure by all people for the accomplishment
of the fruit desired by oneself.
41. Gods Brahma, Siva and others attained oneness (and merger)
with Brahman without any impediment. The great virtues of the Lord
accrue unto him who performs worship of Sri Visnu.
42. As you entertain constant devotion unto me, О Narada, I have
spoken to you with deep affection, the whole of this esoteric doctrine.

CHAPTER FOUR

Sveta-Dvlpa
Skanda said:
1. He (Narada) who was the greatest one among persons possess­
ing knowledge of the soul, and who was thus spoken to by the Superme
Person Narayana, addressed the following words to that Acyuta, the
greatest one among the worlds, the very abode of the welfare of the
world.
II.ix.4.2-11 235

Narada said:
2. О Lord, whatever has been spoken by you, who have concealed
your immense lustre within the form of a sage, has been heard by me
completely. But I know in my mind that all this is the sport of you
only, who are the Lord of all.
3. О Bhuman (Visnu), I shall have all my wishes fulfilled by
your sight only, which is earnestly desired by my heart. 1, however,
have a strong desire to see your previous (original) form. О Lord, I am
curious (to see it),

Sri Ndrayana said:


4. That form of mine is not possible to be seen by acts of charity
or religious gifts, performance of sacrifices, or practice of Yoga, or by
study or recitation of the Vedas, or performance of penance, О Narada.*
It can be seen only by complete, undivided devotion unto me, by excellent
devotees exclusively attached to me.
5. Your devotion unto me is undivided; your knowledge is
strengthened with disinterestedness to worldly pleasures. That is your
Dharma. Hence, you will have that vision which is very difficult to
have even by deities including the Lord of gods.
6. I am extremely pleased with your devotion. Today, I assure
you that vision. Go to Sveta-Dvlpa (lit. White Island). This desire of
yours will be accomplished there, О excellent Brahmana.

7. Having heard the words, Narada, the son of Brahma, worshipped


that ancient sage (Narayana). On an excellent auspicious astrological
yoga (astral combination), he flew up in the sky. He at once descended
on (a peak of) Meru.
8. Finding a quiet solitary place, the sage stayed for a while on
the peak of the mountain. While looking in the north-western direction,
he saw an extremely wonderful island.
9. To the northern side of the Milk Ocean (KsTrodadhi), there is
a famous vast island known as White Island (Sveta-Dvlpa). It is ever-
refulgent, radiating very bright, white mass of light spread all over its
extent.
10-11. It was surrounded and covered over with innumerable mango
trees, Terminalia tomentosa trees, Hogplumes (Spondias mangifera),

* Cf BG XI.47.
236 Skanda Purana

Neem, Nauclea cadamba, Ixora Bandhucca (Species of A€oka) Bilva


(Bassia latifolia), divine trees, Ficus infectoria, Banyan trees, KimSuka
and sandal trees, Vatica robusta, Sala trees, Bread-fruit trees,'Tamala
(Agati grandiflora), Ketakas, Campaka, Kunda trees, Jasmine trees,
divine Jasminum zambac trees—all of which were bent down with (the
weight of) flowers and fruits.
12. It was covered with many clusters of wish-yielding trees, and
with rows of golden banana trees and betel-nut trees. It was full of
innumerable great and excellent parks and gardens, rivers and lakes,
full of blooming lotuses and sweetly warbling excellent birds like swans
and others, and with excellent fleeing deer.
13. There all living beings, both movable and immovable, lead a
liberated life.
While he was observing, excellent devotees of the Supreme Lord
were seen by him.
14-16. They were beyond the ken of sense-organs.1They were devoid
of all sins and (bodily) discharges. They were sweet-smelling. They
were two-handed and some of them were four-handed. Some were white,
while others were like new clouds in complexion. Their eyes were like
petals of lotuses. Their limbs were symmetrical. They were extremely
powerful with beautiful heavenly limbs. Their hair were scattered. They
were ever youthful and were characterised with all auspicious marks.
Their palms and soles were marked with (the outlines of) lotus. They
were devoid of six defects of life (hunger, thirst, decay, death, grief and
illusion). They surpassed the Sun in lustre. They were clad in white.
They were gentle and absorbed in meditation. Even the god of Death
was always afraid of them.

Savarni said:
17. Who are those men who are beyond the range of sense-organs,
free from diseases and discharges of the body, full of sweet fragrance?
How are persons of such category born? What is their destiny?
18. £veta-dvlpa is on the surface of this earth, (though) in an ocean
of waters. How did you proclaim the state of being beyond the (ken of)
sense-organs, in case of the inhabitants of Sveta-dvlpa?

I. Cf. Mbh, Santi 335.8-12 for the description of residents of £veta-dvipa. The
Purana-writer has idealized £veta-dvlpa as compared with its description in Mbh.
This Dvfpa is located on the earth but the residents are Aksara-Purusas. This
DvFpa is a gateway to Goloka and Vaikuntha (infra Ch. 7.36-37).
II.ix.4.19-30 237

19. Only those who are established in the imperishable Brahman


of the form of existence, consciousness and bliss, full of (identical
with) pure thought (Brahman), are the liberated ones and not others.
20. Be pleased to remove this doubt of mine. I have got great
eagerness (to know). As you are expert in all sorts of discourses, I have
resorted to you.

Skanda replied:
21-22. Those persons called imperishable ones (Aksara) who, through
their undivided propitiation solely of the consort of Rama (i.e. Visnu)
during previous Kalpas, attained the state of Brahman and have at­
tained agelessness and immortality, stay in this domain of SvetadvTpa
for serving Vasudeva and are being watched by gods and sages.
23. When the time of world-destruction arrives, they will stay as
independent beings in the eternal domain (,Aksara-dhaman), free from
the fear of Kala (Death, Time) and Maya.
24. Even here, those persons as well, who are born of Maya and
hence are perishable, verily become similar to those (Aksara Purusas)
through pious adorations.
25-27. О excellent sage, persons really become like those (Aksara
Purusas) through (practice of) non-violence, penance, (by abiding) by
one’s specific duties, through non-attachment to worldly objects,
knowledge of the glory of Vasudeva and steadiness in (devotion to) the
Atman, supreme devotion (to the Lord), and contacts with the noble-
souled ones, even though (originally) they are devoid of service to
Hari, have no desire for liberation, and are covetous of all super-natu­
ral powers like Anima, but by hearing and describing to each other the
birth and great deeds of Sri Hari (they become so).
28. Even when the creation of the universe is under way, these are
not born through the force of Time anywhere. Due to their indepen­
dence they do not perish like others at the time of world-destruction.
29. Now, I shall narrate to you an ancient legend, О sage, whereby
a person belonging to this world, reached that stage.
30. О Brahmana, the legend that I heard from my father was a
long one. It is to be narrated to you today. It is only the summary of
it that is remembered.
238 SkandaPuram

CHAPTER FIVE

Uparicara Vasu, a Pious King


Skanda said:
1. О sage, formerly there was a king called Uparicara Vasu1(lit.
‘Vasu who always moved in higher regions*). He was the son of King
Ayu12 and was well-known as Amavasu. He was a friend of Indra. He
got (interested in) devotion unto Lord Narayana.
2. He was religious, devoted to his father and propitiated gods
and manes. He was engaged in pious conduct, alert and diligent. He
was tolerant and envious of none.
3. He rendered assistance to all. He was quiescent, interested in
the study of the Vedas (or celibacy), pure, not irascible, moderate in
his meals, gentle, free from bad habits, an ascetic.
4. He was unaffacted by pleasure-pain etc., free from passion,
bereft оf pride, resolute (and self-possessed), and knower of the Self.
He was devoid of hypocrisy, gave respect to others. (He was) a Yogi,
a performer of penance. He had completely subdued his sense-organs.
5. He was unattached to wealth, sons, wife and other relatives.
The king everyday performed devoutly the Japa of Narayana.
6. Being pleased with him, Lord Vasudeva offered him an empire,3
but he was not interested in it, but propitiated him (Vasudeva) only
respectfully.
7-8. With due attention he used to perform five times the worship
of the Lord, according to procedure prescribed in the (Vaisnava) Tantra
(prob. Pancaratra Agama). He worshipped gods and manes. He shared
what remained (of the previous worship) with Brahmanas and his de­
pendents. And he subsisted on the remaining food. He was devoted to
truth and was non-violent towards all living beings.
9. The king knew that consuming flesh of animals was a great
sin, and declared so to his subjects.

1. Uparicara Vasu: A pious king of Cedi, a great devotee of Visnu. Indra was
so intimate with him that he shared his seat and bed with him (Mbh, Santi 335.17-
26). Indra gave him his unfading VaijayantI garland and a heavenly car and so he
always moved in the sky and hence came to be known as Upari-cara (Mbh, Adi
63.13-17). Other details of his life are given in this and the subsequent chapters.
2. This Vasu was Ayu’s descendant and not son. His father's name was Krti.
(PE, pp 808-809).
3. According to Mbh, Adi 63.2, Indra gave him the kingdom of Cedi and not
Vasudeva.
ELix.5.10-24 239

10. He resorted with all heart to Janardana, god of gods, who has
no beginning, middle and end, the imperishable creator of the world.
11-15. The king always concentrated his mind at the feet of Sri
Vasudeva,1 and his ears in listening to the story of the Lord. He (de­
voted) his eyes to the vision of Mukunda, as well as of his devotees.
The Lord of the land (king) devoted his speech in praising the qualities
of Hari. The king used his nose in smelling the fragrance of TulasT
leaves and flowers, which had touched the feet of Narayana, and not
any other kind of perfume. He (concentrated) on the touch of the gar­
ments enjoyed (used) by the Lord of Sri (Visnu) to his skin (body). He
used his tongue (to take in and enjoy) the food offered to Narayana. The
king used his feet to go to the sacred precincts of the temple of the
Lord, and his hands for the service of Hari.
16. He used his head (the best part of the body) for paying obei­
sance to the feet of Visnu. He formed intimate friendship with great
devotees of the Lord.
17. Not a single moment of the royal sage, who observed the vow
of devotion to Visnu, was wasted without (performance of) devotion to
the Lord of Rama.
18. He celebrated with great preparations (and pomp), the festi­
vals of the birth etc. of Visnu. He constructed for this purpose temples,
gardens and parks.
19. О excellent Brahmana, while he was carrying on with such
devotion unto Narayana, the king of gods (Indra) offered him, of his
own accord, participation in his own bed and seat.
20. Indra gave him the most beautiful garland known as VaijayantT,
made of unfading lotuses. He also gave him precious stones and jewels
in abundance.
21. Everything, his own self, kingdom, wealth, queen, vehicles,
were always looked upon by him as belonging to the Lord.
22. With full concentration of mind and devoutly he resorted to
the Satvata form of procedure, and regularly performed all great sac­
rificial acts, both with desired objects in view, and as demanded by
the occasion.
23. In the mansion of that noble soul, prominent Brahmanas, experts
in the Pancaratra doctrine, generally used to enjoy food offered to the
Lord.
24. While the destroyer of enemies ruled in the righteous way, no
1. VV 11-18 describe how Vasu was an Ekantin devotee of Vasudeva. These
verses explain in a way how to perform such exclusive type of devotion.
240 Skatida Ригана

untruth was uttered (by him), nor did (his) mind get corrupt, not did he
commit the slightest sin physically.
25. For the sake of enhancing his devotion unto the Lord the king
daily heard the great Tantra called Pancaratra from the mouth of devo­
tees of the Lord.
26. Establishing pure religion and gratifying his subjects, the king
protected the earth like Indra taking care of heaven.
27. In his kingdom there was no person of the seven varieties of
flesh-eaters (Raksasas) nor were there any wearing the garb of atheists.
28. In his kingdom adulterous women and men seducing the wives
of others, or perpetrators of promiscuous, irreligious acts (such as intercaste
marriages) were not even heard of.
29. While he ruled his kingdom, nobody even smelt the fragrance
of eleven kinds of madya (inebriating drinks)1, nor three kinds of Surd
(spirituous liquors)12 (a kind of beer—MW).
30. Though he was endowed with these qualities, on a certain
occasion he fell down from heaven and entered the bowels of the earth
for speaking an untruth out of partiality for the heaven-dwellers (gods).
31. Even while he was within the bowels of the earth, the king,
a lover of piety, remained devoted to Narayana and was steady in
performing the Japa (muttering the name) of the Lord.
32. Through His grace, he was lifted up again (elevated), from the
place. After having attained heaven, he enjoyed pleasures as desired
by his mind.
33. Through the curse of his manes, he became the king of Cedi
(Bundelkhand and a part of Madhya Pradesh in India) on the earth. He
performed devotion unto Hari delightfully and alertly in the Pancaratra
way.
34-35. He then attained heaven. With his divine body the king increased
his propitiation of the Lord and great sages and staying there for some
time, he attained to the abode of the Lord which is free from all fears.

1. The following verse gives a list of wines of 11 kinds.


panasam draksa -madhukarii
kharcuram talam aiksavam I
madhvikam fahk-madhvikam
maireyam narikelakam II
samanani vijanlyan madyanyaikddasaiva tu I
Wine was then prepared from grapes, datepalm, palm-trees, coconuts, sugar-
canes etc. and each product was regarded as a separate kind of wine.
2. The three kinds of Sura are those prepared from honey, gur (raw sugar)
and flour (mddhvl gaudi ca paistl ca trividhd sura)
H.ix.6.1-7 241

CHAPTER SIX

Fall of Uparicara Vasu1*I.

Savarni said:
1. That King Vasu was a great devotee of the Lord. What lie
(deceitful statement) did he utter, whereby he went down from heaven
to the bowels of the earth?
2. Who lifted him up again on the earth? Why was he cursed by
his fathers. How was the king redeemed then? О Skanda, please narrate
it to me.

Skanda replied:
3. О Brahmana, listen to the story of Vasu who had the brilliance
of God Indra. By hearing it, there will be instantaneous destruction of
all sins.
4. Formerly, in the Svayambhuva Manvantara, Indra, by name
ViSvajit, began a great sacrifice called Asvamedha, О sage.
5. Beasts like goats and others were tied there and they were
bleating frequently. All the multitudes of Devas were desirous of the
taste (of their flesh).
6. By a lucky chance great sages having the refulgence of the
sun, came there in the course of their touring of the world for the
welfare of the people.
7. They were respectfully received with Padya, Arghya and other
items of (formal) welcome. Those sages saw the multitude of bleating
sacrificial beasts.

1. The story of the fall of Uparicara Vasu for deciding in favour of himsa
(killing animals) in a sacrifice is repeated in Vayu 1.57.89-114; MtP 152; Mbh,
Santi 337.13-16. It shows the spread of the influence of Ahiriisa. The original
procedure of this Yajha prescribes animal-slaughter (vide HD Il.ii. pp 1229-1236
for the procedure of Asvamedha). The Purana-writer’s tirade against this in vv
14-20 and affirmation that himsa in sacrifice is against Dharma, shows the social
change of attitudes to Himsa in the name of religion. Though the present Purana
advocates Paficaratra doctrine, it differs from the strange belief of Padcaratra
which advocates animal slaughter in sacrifice on the ground that as the animal
attains better world, it is not Himsa but protection (rakjanam). A great Vai$nava
advocate of Pahcaratra like Ramanuja states in this connection: atisayitabhyudaya-
sadhanabhuto vydpdroIpa-duhkhado’pi na himsa, pratyuta гаЦапат eva ($п-ЫиЦуа
III. 1.25)
No comment is necessary!
242 SkandaPurana

8. Seeing the violence involved in the paraphernalia of the sac­


rifice to gods who were of Sattvika nature, they were extremely
wonder-struck.
9. Observing the travesty of Dharma, those paraphernalia, the
Brahmanas of virtuous mind, out of compassion, asked the Devas, among
whom Mahendra was prominent:

The great sages said:


10. О Mahendra, listen to our speech along with Devas and sages.
We declare the essence of the eternal Dhrama as it stands.
11. At the time of the creation of the world, you were created by
the great god Brahma out of Sattva, and you are the upholders of Dharma
standing on all the four feet.
12. By means of Rajas and Tamas, he created Manus, kings, rulers
of Asuras, the supporters of Dharma.
13. For the guidance of you all regarding the procedure of perfor­
mance of sacrifice etc., he created the Veda, the conferer of all the
desired fruits for the welfare of all.
14. There, in the Veda, Ahirhsa (non-violence) alone has been glorified
as the supreme Dharma. The direct killing of a beast is not definitely
approved by the Veda.
15. The Veda has the aim of establishing the Dharma of four feet,
and not of the destruction of Dharma by committing violence.
16. Kings, rulers of Asuras, however, due to the fault of Rajas and
Tamas, and dullness of intellect, take ‘a he-goat’ etc. as the meaning
of “Aja” in the injunction “sacrifice should be performed with a sac­
rificial A ja” They did not know Vrlhi (rice) etc. (which is its meaning).
17. In your case, who are created out of Sattvaguna, the true meaning
of the Vedas should be accepted. Otherwise, that kind of performance
(involving violence) is not at all proper.
18. The nature of a person conforms to his Guna. One’s attitude
in the performance of a ritual conforms to one’s own nature.
19. To you who are Sattvikas the god is directly Visnu, the con­
sort of Rama. For his gratification one is authorised to perform a Yajha
which does not involve any violence.
20. The performance of a sacrifice by actually killing a beast, is
contrary to Dharma in your case, О excellent Suras.
21. These performers of sacrifice on your behalf have resorted to
Asura type of performance due to their being subjected to Rajas and
Tamas Gunas. They are ignorant of Vedas.
П.Ьс.6.22-35 243

22. It is due to your association with them that such perversity


has taken place just now. Certainly, it is due to this, that this perfor­
mance has been commenced by you.
23. For Asuras and human beings, characterised by Rajas and Tamas
Gunas, there are deities like Bhairava and others, worthy of being pro­
pitiated according to the Gunas (of the devotees).
24. In this world, for the gratification of one's deity of suitable
guna, conforming to one’s own (i.e. devotee’s) guna, the performance
of sacrifice involving violence is enjoined for them.
25. Even out of them, for the Daityas, Raksasas and human beings
who are devotees of Visnu, Yajna involving violence is not proper.
How can it be so, in your case?
26. It is only in accordance with (the injunction of) the Veda that
the remnants of the sacrifice are permitted to be eaten by all who have
performed the sacrifice.
27. Consumption of liquor and eating of flesh by Sattvika deities
is neither seen by us nor heard from the mouths of saintly people any­
where.
28. Hence this sacrifice should be performed with rice, milk, ghee
and other foodstuffs fit for being used in sacrifices, and not with the
killing of beasts.
29. Even out of them (the grain of rice etc.), (sacrifices should be
performed) with seeds which have attained the state of A-ja by their
being three years old and from which there occur no germination again.1
30-31. It has been proclaimed that non-injury, non-covetousness, self-
control, mercifulness to beings, penance, celibacy, truth, non-hypocrisy,
forbearance and courage, constitute the form (and content) of the eter­
nal Dharma.1 2 He who transgress it, is the destroyer of Dharma and
falls.

32. Though they were thus respectfully advised in good moral


conduct by the great sages, the knowers of the secrets of the Veda, they
(Dcvas), though acknowledging their authority, did not accept their
advice due to its being against their avowed declaration.
33. Self-conceit, wrath, arrogance and other ’descendants’ of
Adharma, keen to find out (moral) deficiences, entered into them, due
to their disregard for the great (sages).
34-35. Now, while they (Devas) were arguing that the term ‘Aja’
1. Cf Vayu 1.57.100-101.
2. Cf Vayu 1.57.116.
244 Skanda Purcina

means ‘a goaf and not 'seeds', and while the disconsolate great sages
were again admonishing them, the glorious King Uparicara (Vasu) came
there by chance. That intimate friend of Indra was illuminating the
quarters by his brilliance.
36. Having seen Vasu passing through the atmosphere coming there
all of a sudden, the Brahmanas told the Devas: "He will remove your
doubts".
37-40. ‘This lord of the earth formerly performed thousands of great
sacrifices according to the procedure laid down in the Satvata Tantra
and in Aranyakas, in any of which (sacrifice) killing of (sacrificial)
beasts never took place. There was no adoption of a substitute for
sacrificial fees. Nor was there even indirect homage paid to spirituous
liquor. The king is known everywhere for his protection of Ahimsa
(non-violence) and Dharma. He is the leader (i.e. most prominent one)
among the devotees of Visnu. He is an observer of the vow of having
one wife only. How will this great Vasu, who is such a great religious
person, speaker of the truth and expert in the knowledge of the Vedas,
speak a word other than the truth?”
41. Having reached such an agreement in opinion (about Vasu),
Devas and sages who were eager, immediately approached King Vasu
and asked him:

Devas and great sages asked:


42. О king, with what should a sacrifice be performed—with a
(sacrificial) beast or with plants, herbs (their products such as grains)?
Since Your Honour have been regarded as an authority, please com­
pletely remove this doubt of ours.

Skanda said:
43. Vasu folded his palms in reverence and enquired: “Tell me
with due deliberation, the truth as to what view is approved by whom.”

The great sages said:


44. О ruler of peoples, our view is that a sacrifice is to be per­
formed with grains. But the opinion of Devas is (that it should be
performed) with a beast. О king, please tell us your view (in the matter).

Skanda said:
45. Having known the opinion of Devas, Vasu due to his support
D.ix.6.46—Шх.7.7 245

of their views then told that sacrifices are to be performed with beasts
like goats.
46. He thus supported the view of those who believed in the wrong
and evil. Though he was the knower of Dharma, the king spoke the
untruth, which was violatory to the Veda.
47. At that very moment the king fell down from the sky due to
his faulty (untrue) speech, and immediately entered the earth.
48. The king lying in the bowels of the earth experienced great
distress. But due to his refuge in Narayana, his memory did not fail
(abandon) him.
49. The Devas, residents of Svarga, then set at liberty all the
beasts, and being afraid of (perpetrating) violence to living beings,
went to heaven and the great sages to their (respective) hermitages.

CHAPTER SEVEN

Uparicara Vasu Attains Liberation

Skanda said:
1. Then the king who was in the bowels of the earth, censured
his own act (of giving a false judgement). He deeply repented and paid
respect to those great sages. In his mind he muttered the three-syl­
labled Mantra of the Lord.
2. There, even in the chasm of the earth, the king respectfully
and with great devotion, mentally worshipped Hari, the Lord of Devas,
five times a day.
3. Then, Lord Vasudeva, the protector of the world, was pleased
with him (Vasu) who, even in adverse circumstances, worshipped him
at the proper time and in accordance with the Gastric injunctions.
4. Lord Visnu, the conferer of boons, spoke of his own accord to
Garuda, the best of birds, and of great velocity, who was standing near
him.

The Lord said:


5-7. О highly fortunate, excellent bird, go by my order. King Vasu,
the paramount sovereign of men, a pious soul who has resorted to me,
has entered the nether worlds due to his fault of transgressing the Veda
246 Skanda Purana

(Vedic injunction regarding sacrifices). Respectful prayer has been made


by him. Therefore, approach him today, О Garuda. By my order make
the king capable of moving through the sky—the king who i$ concealed
in the chasm of the earth and is able only to move beneath (the earth).
Don’t delay.

Skanda said:
8. Then Garuda, of the speed of wind, spread out his wings and
entered the chasm of the earth, where Vasu of controlled speech was
staying.
9. The son of Vinata (Garuda) lifted him up with his beak and
immediately flew up in the sky and left him there.
10. At that very moment, the king regained consciousness and
again became one moving in higher regions. Along with his (physical)
body he went to Svarga and got the supreme bliss.
11. О Brahmana-sage, in this way, on account of his disrespect
for the truth (or saintly people), by his sinful transgressive speech, a
state undeserving to performers of sacrifices was attained by that noble-
souled knower of Dharma.
12. Only Lord Hari, the Supreme Man, was served by him (through
devotion). Thereby, he got absolved of sins quickly, and obtained (stay
in) Svarga.
13. There, he enjoyed different kinds of pleasures as desired by
him. He lived there like another Indra, with his praises sung by Suras.
14. On one occasion, Acchoda saw him moving in an aerial car,
bright like the sun, accompanied by a divine damsel called Adrika.1
15. She was the mental daughter of the noble-souled, formless
manes called Agnigvatta, who dwell in the domain of Soma.
16. The lady of pure smiles did not know her own ancestors due
to their formlessness. She thought (king) Vasu as being her father. He
too regarded her as his own daughter.

1. Pre-birth has been a popular motif in ancient Indian stories to explain the
events of the present times. The Jataka Tales (Buddhist and Jaina) are examples
of the use of this motif in non-Bh&hmanical literature. Brahmanical Puranas abound
in such tales. The present episode explains the birth of Vyasa from Paralara in
unmanied state to SatyavatT and her marriage with £antanu.
The curse of Agni£vatta parents to their daughter Acchoda is used as a motif
to explain a “future inevitable event** viz. Vyasa’s birth from Satyavati in an
unmarried state. In Mbh, Adi 63.58 Adrika bacame a fish by Brahma's curse and
not by that of AgniSvattas, the parents of Acchoda.
D.ix.7.17-30 247

17-18. Seeing their mutual feelings of such (filial) nature, the manes
cursed them: “0 daughter, you will be the veritable daughter of this
king on the earth.
О Vasu, it is definite that you will be (born as) a human being on
the earth and give birth to this (daughter of ours) as your daughter from
this very divine lady as your wife.
19. Both of them who were thus cursed by the manes (Pitrs), bowed
down to them, and prayed to them for absolving them from the curse.
Then those compassionate ones spoke:
20. “It was due to the inevitability of such events that this curse
was incurred by you. But that will contribute to welfare of you both.
21. О Vasu, in the twenty-eighth Dvapara Yuga, you will be the
son of noble-souled King Krtayajna on the earth.
22. Even there (on the earth), you will be endowed with all your
present qualities, capable of moving in the sky, a leader of the great
devotees of the Lord.
23. Having devoutly worshipped Visnu as per procedure of the
Pancaratra, you, along with your progeny, will worship Devas and us
(Pitrs) with the remnants (of Visnu worship).
24. Then you will attain Svarga with a divine body. Having en­
joyed heavenly pleasures, you will get to the domain of Visnu.
25. О Acchoda, you too will be born with a part of yours from
Adrika in the form of a (female) fish. You will be well-known on the
earth as Kali.
26. There, in your girlhood (in an unmarried state), you will have
Hari as your son from Paragara. Through his grace alone you will get
enjoyment in life and liberation (after death).'*

Skanda said:
27. The king who was both imprecated and blessed by the Pitrs,
having been bom of Krtayajna on the earth, became famous on account
of his virtues.
28. As before (in his previous life), that knower of the procedure
of worship of Devas and Pitrs was a devotee of Krsna. The great Indra
gave his friend (Vasu) abundant wealth.
29. Indra gave him even the Flag of Victory (Vijayadhvaja) which
was formerly obtained by him from Vasudeva in Sveta-dvlpa, for de­
stroying his enemies.
30. The king who could move about in the sky enjoyed very rare
earthly pleasures. In the end he attained the celestial world (endowed)
248 SkandaPurana

with a heavenly body.


31. Asa fruit of the balance of his meritorious acts in his previous
birth, he enjoyed various kinds of pleasures as desired by his mind. He
(then) developed intense aversion to worldly pleasures.
32. In a solitary place, on a peak of Meru, being pure, and sitting
firmly on his seat, he meditated in the lotus of his heart on the consort
of Rama, the god worshipped by him with sacrifices.
33. Abandoning that celestial body, the sage, by his Yogic con­
centration of the mind, reached the disc of the Sun with his subtle
body—the disc which is called the gate to salvation to perfectly firm
Yogins.
34. His subtle body was burnt down by solar heat and lustre. He
became extremely pure and of (i.e. endowed with) a body consisting
of existence and consciousness. That blessed one became one whose
all residual traces of actions were wiped out.
35. Then by deities faster than wind, who are in the disc (of the
sun), he was taken to the wonderful abode of Visnu, called Sveta-dvlpa.
36 37. О sage, though the island is on the earth, it is extraordinary.
After having reached this residence of the devotees of Hari by exclu­
sive devotion to the Lord, it serves as a gateway to Goloka, Brahmapura,
Vaikuntha to those noble-souled devotees desiring to get to them.
38. О sage, those released from Sveta-dvlpa whose characteris­
tics have been described before, resort to that particular domain for
which they cherish a desire.
39. He became endowed with a divine body in that domain when
released from Sveta-dvTpa. After reaching the world called Goloka, he
obtained supreme delight.
40. In this way, those who propitiate Narayana, the Supreme Brahman,
by the Ekantika Dharnm (undivided devotion solely to Visnu) become
the liberated ones from Sveta.
41. Thus I have explained, О sage, whatever was asked by you
regarding the state of the devotees exclusively attached to the Lord
(Ekantabhakta) and the description of Sveta-dvipa.
Плх.8.1-10 249

CHAPTER EIGHT

Curse to Devendrax

Savarni enquired:
1. How is it that sacrifices (involving Himsa) became prevalent
again after sacrifices involving injury to animals were given up by
Devas at the request of great sages?
2. How is it that the eternal pure Dharma became perverse among
ancient and modern Devas, sages and kings?
3. О Six-faced God! A great doubt has been engendered today in
me. You are a knower of the truth of all Sastras. It behoves you to
remove that doubt.

Skanda replied:
4. Time (Kala) is mighty. The minds of the powerful ones who
arc possessed of desire, anger, taste for liquor, avarice, pride are pene­
trated by Kala.
5. Good ideas of men become spoiled by being subjected to anger
and pride owing to the transgression of (the advice of) the great ones
who speak true and beneficial (words).
6. Even though they arc wise, they are intent on doing a criminal
act, repent and continuously wander in Samsara.
7. But even Kala (god of Death, Time) is not able to create
aberrations in the mind of those who are devotees *
of Krsna and are
devoid of (illicit) desire for pleasure etc., and whose instinctive ten­
dencies have all ceased.
8. I speak the truth that any person who does not resort to proper
Dharma (path of virtue), shall never be liberated from Samsara.
9. О most excellent Brahmana! I shall now narrate to you, the
beginning of sacrifices involving violence, as I have heard it from the
mouth of my father (Siva).
10. Here they cite as an illustration this ancient legend in which
Narayana and LaksmT are glorified.I.

I. In this chapter also the curse motif is used to explain Indra's loss of fortune.
The episode is mentioned in BhP and Brahmanda P. (Purana Index 11.106). The
object here is to explain why Yajfias involving Hiihsa came in vogue even after
that punishment to Uparicara Vasu.
250 SkandaPurana

11. Due to his fault of transgressing great sages, the power of


mentally perceiving rightly what is good, was lost by Indra called
Visvajit, О sage.
12. Sage Durvasas, a part of god Sankara, a performer of penance,
once happened to go to the river Puspabhadra during his course of
wanderings in the worlds.
13. There he saw the wife of a Vidyadhara named Sumati sur­
rounded by her friends. She came down from heaven for water sports.
14. She was called Madakala (‘one singing softly as if intoxi­
cated'). She was holding in her right hand a very fragrant garland of
golden lotuses from the Heavenly Ganga.
15. Seeing her, the sage approached her. Like an intoxicated
person, he requested for the garland held by the Vidyadhara lady.
16. Knowing his greatness, she immediately bowed down to him,
and out of great respect, she made him wear the garland round his neck.
17. Being highly pleased in mind, the sage went away singing like
an inebriated person. On his way, he saw Devendra coming to the great
river.
18. His victories were being praised in sweet musical voice by
divine damsels and musicians (Gandharvas). He was riding a royal
elephant.
19. He saw Indra who was lost in the ecstasy of hearing the sweet
(vocal) music of Rariibha, whose eyes were fixed on her lotus-like face
and looked splendid, embellished as he was with (royal) umbrella and
chowries, but he was not looking at him (Durvasas).
20. Seeing him, the son of Atri (i.e Durvasas), laughing like an
intoxicated person, hurled at him the garland he was wearing round his
neck.
21. Indra who was already possessed (as it were), due to his con­
tact with Adharma (unrighteousness), was then overcome with passion,
placed it on the temples of the elephant. The royal elephant, with his
mind attracted by the fragrance, pulled it down with his trunk.
22. From his trunk it fell down on the ground. The elephant crushed
it under his feet while he was walking—all this happened while the
great sage, a storehouse of penance, was looking on.
23-26. Then the infuriated Durvasas, with his eyes red like the fire
appearing at the time of world-destruction, spoke to Indra:
“O intoxicated wicked-souled one, addicted to licentious pleasures,
you are arrogant. You do not welcome the garland, the abode of God­
dess Sri, given by me out of love (for you). You intoxicated fellow do
Шх.8.27—II.ix.9.4 251

not pay me obeisance, О fool. You do not take cognizance even of me


who am the only person who (can) teach a lesson to an arrogant and
inebriated fellow like you. You have become blind by getting the kingdom
of the three worlds. Now I shall teach you properly. Goddess Sri, with
whose favour you are enjoying the kingdom of the three worlds, has
abandoned you along with the three worlds and is submerged in the
sea.”
27. As soon as he heard his (Durvasas’) words terrible like a stroke
of thunderbolt, he at once jumped down from the elephant. With his
pride humbled, Hari (Indra) fell at his feet.
28. Trembling and bowing down again and again, he prayed:
“Compassionate as you are, it behoves you to show favour unto me.”
29-31. He (Durvasas) spoke out, “О &akra, I am not verily a sage
(like) Gautama.1Know me to be Durvasas who is the very essence of
non-forbearance and wrath. Other sages spoiled by you are your follow­
ers. But I, a desireless sage, have no regard for worms like you. Is there
a sinner in the whole of the universe who is not afraid of me, of my
brilliant mass of matted hair, and my (angry) sight with curved eye­
brows?”

CHAPTER NINE

Genesis ofYajnas involving tL-.nsa

Skanda said:
1. О sage, under the influence of Time leading to the perversity
of Dharma in future, he (Durvasas) said, “I will not forgive” and went
to Kailasa.
2. Goddess £ri also then disappeared from the three worlds into
the sea. All the celestial damsels in a body left Indra and followed &ri.
3. Penance, Purity, Mercy, Truth, Pada (?), True Dharma, Pros­
perity, Supernatural Powers, Strength, Sattva (quality of goodness)—all
of them followed Sri.
4. Vehicles, elephants and others, ornaments of gold etc., pre­

I. Gautama did not spare Indra for his affair with his wife Ahalya. He did
curse Indra whereby he became goat-testicled (VR I. 49.2-10).
252 SkarulaPurana

cious stones etc. and metal implements decreased.


5. Within a short time foods, plants, herbs, oils, greasy sub­
stances became scanty. No milk was generated in the udders of milk-giving
beasts of which cows, she-buffaloes were prominent.
6. From the mansion of Kubera, even the nine treasures1disap­
peared. Indra along with multitudes of Devas became like ascetics.
7. All materials of enjoyment came to an end in all the three
worlds. Devas, Daityas and human beings were afflicted with poverty.
8. The moon became devoid of its lovely brightness, and became
like water in the ocean. There was a terrific drought which ruined
completely seeds and grains of corn.
9. Repeatedly crying out ‘Where is food,?’ men emaciated with
hunger and bereft of strength, left villages and towns and resorted to
forests and mountains.
10. Being overwhelmed with hunger, some of them killed ani­
mals, both wild and domesticated, and ate their flesh, either cooked
or uncooked.
11. Learned men and sages who followed the true Dharma did not
eat flesh, even though they were being starved to death.
12. Seeing them taking to fasting and starvation, old sages along
with Manu taught them Dharma to be followed in adversity as pro­
claimed by the Vedas.
Most of the sages whose sense-organs had become confused due to
hunger gave perverse interpretation of the Vedas.
13-15. They took a word like Aja to means as a goat and exhorted,
“O Brahmanas, perform (animal) sacrifices. The violence (Himsa) pres­
cribed by the Vedas is not a fault or violence resulting in sin12. Therefore,
kill auspicious (sacrificial) beasts in the name of Devas and Pitrs.
Enjoy the flesh (of any animal) desired by you after it is consecrated
with sprinkling of water and dedicated to deities and manes as Naivedya.
But do not kill animals for your own sake.”
16. Then Devas, sages, kings and men who were thus taught by
them performed according to their capacities sacrifices, except those
who were solely devoted to Hari.

1. The following are the nine treasures of Kubera: Padma, Mahapadma, Sartkha,
Makara, Kacchapa, Mukunda, Nanda, Nila, and Kharva. They are also personified
as the attendants of Kubera or Lak$mi.
2. This has been the stance of MTmaihsakas, Pancaratrikas i e. Vaisnavas like
Ramanuja.
n.ix.9.17-29 253

17-18. They performed sacrifices like Go-medha (bull-sacrifice), Asva-


medha (horse-sacrifice) and sacrifices of which human-sacrifice1was
prominent and enjoyed the flesh that was left over after the sacrifice.
19. Some performed sacrifices for wealth that is lost. Some per­
formed for obtaining women (wives), sons and house and some for (the
prosperity of) their profession.
20. Those who were unable to perform great sacrifices, killed on
various occasions animals intending them for their Pitrs (manes) in
Sraddhas and ate them and made others do so.
21. Some people living on the shores of seas or banks of rivers,
caught fishes with nets and became eaters of them (fish).
22. О sage, by killing animals of which cows (bulls) and goats
were prominent for the sake of distinguished guests, they served it to
them.
23. At that time, in the absence of wealth, houses etc., and due
to promiscuous mixture of Dharmas, no rule of marriage between in­
dividuals belonging to the same caste was observed.
24. In accordance with the damands of times (and new trends), for
the sake of enlargement and continuity of one’s race, Brahmanas married
daughters of Ksatriyas (and other castes) and Ksatriyas and others married
daughters of Brahmanas.
25. Thus in that great calamity, sacrifices involving Hiriisa were
commenced. Dharma itself followed Goddess Sri (to the bottom of the
sea), while a semblance of Dharma remained.
26. Adharma along with its consequents pervaded all the three
worlds and thrived within a short time. It was extremely difficult to
be checked by the wise and learned people.
27. There were numerous children produced by those poverty-stricken
people and the extensions of their families increased greatly in the
world.
28. Those who became learned among them regarded it (i.e. Adharma,
the then prevalent practices) as the real Dharma, and wrote treatises
accordingly.
29. Those treatises became authoritative in due course by the power
of tradition. In the first Treta Yuga Dharma took such an evil turn.

1 The PurSna-author seems to be ignorant of the fact that human-beings were


never killed in the so-called Nara-medha. Western scholar like A.B. Keith and
others have specially pointed out that this Nr-Yajha or Manu$ya- Yajha is honouring
Guests’. For details vide Kane, HD, II.ii, Ch.XXI, pp. 749-56.
254 Skanda Purana

30. Then onwards, killing of animals in Yajna (sacrifices) and on


other (religious) occasions gained currency. It was only in Satya (Krta)
Yuga that there prevailed the eternal Dharma.
31. After a long time, Indra, the Lord of Devas, along with Devas,
propitiated Lord Vasudeva and regained his prosperity, О sage.
32. Then through the grace of Hari, the Lord of Sri and the seat
(refuge) of Dharma, the real Dharma spread about in the three worlds.
33. Still there are some Devas, sages, and men whose good minds
are adversely affected by sex, anger, greed and relish for (non-vegetar­
ian) taste, who regard the Apad-dharma (i.e. practices allowable in
time of distress) as the main Dharma.
34. Devotees of the Lord, who have conquered their passions, and
who are solely devoted to the Lord, do not take to them (those prac­
tices) even while under duress. What to say of other occasions!
35. Thus, О brahmana, I have narrated to you how in the first
Kalpa, sacrifices involving Himsa (violence) became prevalent.

CHAPTER TEN

The Grace of Sri Vasudeva

Savarnisaid:
1. О Skanda, how was Goddess SrT, who was submerged in the
sea, regained by Indra? Tell me the whole episode associated with
Narayana.

Skanda said:
2 Devendra who was devoid of SrT was defeated by Danavas
who themselves were bereft of Sri. He was deprived of his position and
all the retinue.
3. Along with the Lords of (different) quarters like Varuna and
others he wandered in different mountains, valleys, places overgrown
with creepers and forests.
4. They wore garments made of barks and skins. They consumed
the flesh of animals and birds. The behaviour and garments of Devas,
Daityas, men and reptiles (Nagas) were all alike.
5. In all their homes the utensils were made of earth only. Women
Шх. 10.6-19 255

(wives) of all of them were wretched and miserable like female Pi€acas
(ogresses).
6. At first there was total absence of rainfall for twelve years
on the earth. Then during the course of a year there were few showers
at some places, while there was none elsewhere.
7. In this way they passed one hundred years in poverty and suffering.
But due to their powerful destiny they did not die even in extreme misery.
8. They lived like hellish beings in hells but were almost dead.
Even though they tried to gain Sri by performing sacrifice etc., they
did not succeed.
9. Then at the end of one thousand years Devas who were beg­
garly-attired due to the curse of Durvasas, sought refuge in God Brahma.
10. Devas including Indra and others, paid obeisance to him and
narrated the tale of their misery. But due to his omniscience he already
knew the plight of the Suras.
11. God Brahma, along with Sankara who was capable of warding
off his misery, censured Indra and expressed the desire (to Indra) to
propitiate Visnu.
12. By his penance he (Indra) propitiated him, to whom penance
was dear. Then he, accompanied with all categories of Devas, went to
the Milk-Ocean.
13. On the beautiful northern shore of that ocean, they who had
taken the vow of fasting, performed penance, standing on one leg with
arms raised up.
14. With their minds concentrated, they meditated in their heart
on Ke£ava, Vasudeva, the consort of LaksmI, the destroyer of all troubles
and miseries.
15. At the end of a hundred years Lord Visnu, Sri Krsna himself,
showed favour unto the poor Devas who were extermely miserable.
16. He whose form was invisible even to self-knowing performers
of great penance, manifested himself out of grace with the brilliance
of a million suns.
17. At first, a very brilliant disc of refulgence suddenly flashed
forth. All the Devas saw that unparalleled white cloud.
18. God Brahma and Siva espied within it the Four-armed Lord
of Rama, of bluish-dark complexion like a cloud, holding in his hands
a mace, a conch, a lotus and a discus.
19. He was adorned with a crown, a girdle, bracelets of gold, ear­
rings etc. He was wearing yellow silken garment and his person was
divinely beautiful.
256 Skanda Ригала

20. With their minds overwhelmed with ecstasy, both of them pros­
trated themselves like a staff. Devas seeing him through his desire (to
be seen by them), bowed down to him with joy.
21. Like a penniless person getting a treasure-trove, they became
overjoyed. With their palms folded in reverence, all the Devas
devoutly praised him.

Devas prayed:
22. Om, obeisance to you, О venerable Lord Vasudeva. We medi­
tate upon you. Bow to you, Pradyumna, Aniruddha, Sankarsana (i.e. all
the Vyuhas of Vasudeva).
23. (Obeisance to you) of the form of Omkara, Brahman who have
manifested your threefold form, the cause of the creation, maintenance
and destruction of the Cosmic Egg, one devoid of (three) Gunas.
24. (Bow to you) whose form gives delight to the eyes, the des­
troyer of the troubles of those who,bow down to you; obeisance to you
Kesava, the form of the supreme being.
25. Bow to (you) Krsna who give delight to all his devotees, the
fascinator (deluder) of Kala, Maya and others, who are forever delight­
ful, who abide by the proper Dharma.
26. Obeisance to you who are famous as being capable of saving
persons who are submerged in the ocean of worldly existence, to one
of beautiful form, dark like a cloud.
27. Repeated obeisance to the wielder of the mace, lotus, conchshell
and discus with your long arms, the protector of Devas, cows, Brahmanas
and of Dharma.
28. Bow to the most excellent one, the bestower of desired boons
to those who seek refuge, one worthy of being known through Vedas and
Agamas, and who are the essence of all Vedas.
29. We pay obeisance to you, О Visnu, whose resplendent, beau­
tiful form exists within a halo of light, who are greater than the greatest.
30. Repeated obeisance to you, the great one, whose greatness is
far beyond the ken of speech and mind, who are of imperishable form,
who abide within the hearts of all.
31. You alone are the one who give happiness to those who resort
to you. Hence we who are deeply troubled by great adversity, have
sought refuge in you.
32. Due to our offensive behaviour towards Durvasas, a devotee
of the God of Gods, we became bereft of Sri and have been reduced
to this wretched plight.
Шх.10.33—-Плх.11.1 257

33. О Lord, abandoning us who are devoid of clothes, food, drink,


residence etc., even Dharma went away along with Sri. You are the
Supreme Lord to protect us.
34. Inasmuch as it is well-known that we as well as Dharma are
yours, it behoves you to restore us to happiness as before.

Skanda said:
35. The Lord, the store of mercy, who was thus implored by Devas,
addressed the Suras, delighting them with a voice deep like the rum­
bling of a cloud.

The Lord said:


36. All the misery suffered by you on account of your offensive
behaviour towards the good (sage Durvasas) is known to me. I shall
advise you a remedy for removing it, upon which you act this very day.
37. After throwing all medicinal plants in the sea, you, along with
Asuras, churn it with Mount Mandara (as the churning rod) and
(Vasuki), the king of cobras, as the strap (to churn it).
38. First enter into an agreement with Danavas, and then begin
the churning of the ocean. I shall help you. You need not get depressed.
39. After getting the Nectar and the (favourable) glance of Sri,
you will be much more brilliant than before. Daityas who are averse
to me, will be the sufferers.

Skanda said:
40. After saying this, Visnu, destroyer of the distress of his devo­
tees, vanished. Devas bowed down to him and began to act according
to what he had said.

CHAPTER ELEVEN

Churning for the N ectarB irth of the Poison Kalakuta

Skanda said:
1. Having ordered Mahendra and others ot have consultation with
Asuras, Gods Brahma and Rudra went to their respective residence.I.
I. The belief in the existence of an immortality-giving liquid medicine and how
it was churned out of the sea by Devas and Asuras and how the Asuras were
cheated by Vi$nu in a female form is found in most Puranas and Mbh.
258 Skarula Puratui

And Devas went to the earth.


2. Indra who was expert in making speech suitable for bringing
about an understanding, tempted them (i.e. Asuras) with the«offer of a
share in the fruit (of the joint effort) with (arguments of) skilful strata*
gems of policy and entered into an agreement with the Asuras.
3. Then multitudes of Devas and Asuras gathered on the shore
of the sea. Bringing huge quantities of medicinal plants of great
potency they quickly deposited them in the sea.
4. Then they approached Mount Mandara1which looked splendid
with various kinds of medicinal plants. All of them got eagerly en­
gaged in uprooting it from its bottom.
5. As they could not uproot it, since it had roots eleven thousand
Yojanas deep in the earth, they praised Hari.
6. Knowing it, the Lord ordered Saiikarsana, the Lord of the earth,
to extract the mountain which was firmly rooted.
7. Immediately with one hissing only, the Lord hurled it from
that place to a distance of two Yojanas.
8. Seeing the extremely wonderous feat, all Suras and Asuras
were highly delighted. Shouting loudly, they went а-running and reached
near it.
9. Powerful and endowed with arms like iron bars for locking
doors, they could not lift it up to carry, though they tried their best.
Due to the fruitlessness of their labour, they became sad.
10. The Lord who sees everything, knew that all the multitudes
of Devas were dejected. He ordered Garuda to take it immediately to
the sea.
11. He (Garuda) who was powerful enough to hold (lift) the Cos­
mic Egg along with its sheaths, and whose speed was like that of
mind, came there and with his beak he lifted the mountain, deposited
it near the sea and returned to Hari.
12. Then all the sons of КаЗуара (i.e. Suras and Asuras) with
delighted minds visited Vasuki with a solemn promise to give share
in the Nectar.
13. Then all of them went to the sea. They became ready to churn1

1. A hill in the Banka sub-division of Bhagalpur District, two or three miles


from Bamsi and thirty miles south of Bhagalpur. It is an isloated hill about seven
hundred feet high with a groove all around in the middle to indicate the impression
of the coil of Vasuki around it while churning the ocean. But the marks of chiselling
show the artificiality (De 124) Mbh, Vana 139.5-6, Drona 87.33 locates it near
Kailasa.
Шх. 11.14-27 259

it, when the sea presented himself in person and spoke as follows:
14. “O Suras and Asuras! If you will give me some share of the
Nectar 1 shall bear the torments of the churning with Mandara.”
15. Promising him to do so, they first threw in it medicinal plants
and creepers, and wound the king of Nagas (Cobras) round that golden
mountain.
16. Then Devas remembered Hari in their hearts for (getting) success
in the undertaking. Acyuta who sees everything came there the mo­
ment they remembered him.
17. The multitude of Devas became glad at his sight. They stood
there holding the front part (i.e. mouth) of the Lord of snakes, with the
Lord’s approval.
18-19. Showing his partiality to Devas, the Lord stood where the
Devas were standing. But then the Daityas became enraged. “We are
senior in penance, learning and age (to Devas). How should we hold
the inauspicious (dirty) lower part of this (i.e. serpent)? We are not
such fools.”
20. (As if) showing respect to them, Visnu, along with Devas
laughed loudly and giving the front part (mouth, to Asuras), made Suras
hold the tail (of Vasuki).
21. The Daityas did not know that his act of the Lord of Sri was
(for) the protection of the immortal ones (Devas) from the heat of the
poisonous hissing of the great snake.
22. Then, the sons of Kasyapa (Devas and Asuras) with their ends
of lower garments tucked into the waistband and fastened with leather
straps, raised up the golden-peaked Mandara resplendently dark like a
big black bee.
23. Shouting loudly and extremely eager, they placed that moun­
tain of twenty-two thousand Yojanas in height, into the sea.
24. The mountain, though held up by them, had no support below.
Due to its extremely heavy weight, it went down to the bottom (of the
sea). And they were greatly agitated.
25. Then the Lord himself who always carries out the tasks of his
devotees, was praised by Devas. The Lord in the form of a tortoise
lifted it (the mountain) from below.
26. As soon as they saw it lifted up, the hearts and faces of them
all bloomed with joy. The mountain became stable on the very exten­
sive back of the tortoise.
27. Then the Devas and others with all their power, churned the
ocean very fast with incessant hissing sound of exhaustion coming out
260 Skan daP uram

of their mouth.
28. While the mountain was being whirled (round and round), many
trees fell down and the fire generated from their friction burnt down
lions and others.
29. Many aquatic animals were pounded down by the great moun­
tain and met death by hundreds in the Milk-Ocean.
30. The roaring sound of the churning was loud like deep thunder­
ing sound of a multitude of Samvartaka clouds (appearing at the destruction
of the world). And it (i.e. roaring sound) was intensified with its echo.
31. By hissing and puffing out of the mouth of Vasuki, whose body
was distressed and exhausted by powerful pulling, the Daityas became
bereft of power and extremely exhausted and shone like burning coals.
32. They constantly suffered (from) the unbearable poisonous fire.
The thousand mouths of the king of serpents dropped down through
fatigue.
33. Lord Sankarsana (6esa) of great lustre bore the poisonous fire
and at once held them (i.e. the mouths of Vasuki) up as directed by
the Lord (Visnu).
34. From the ocean that was being churned for one thousand years,
there came out the poison Halahala1spreading to all the quarters and
sub-quarters.
35. They (Suras and Asuras) whose bodies were constantly scorched
by the poison called KalakQta which burns down the three worlds, ran.
away.
36. Then God Brahma, Devas, Protectors of Prajas, all of them
praised Siva, the consort of Uma, praying to him for drinking up the
poison.
37. The Lord told him, “you were bom first and are the seniormost
of the Devas. This poison is bom first out of the ocean. Hence you take
it.”
38. The merciful Siva, seeing the fright of Devas and due to the
order of Hari, sucked up, by his yogic power, the whole of the poison
on his palm.
39. He drank it up and absorbed it in his throat. Hence he became
known as blue-throated and a beneficent god.
40. The drops that fell from his hand while drinking the poison,
were taken up by serpents, scorpions and some medicinal plants.

1. Also known as Kalakuta, the creation of this deadly poison while churning
the ocean and its subsequent swallowing by Siva is described in many Puranas and
Mbh.
Шх.12.1-12 261

CHAPTER TWELVE

Churning of the Ocean: Birth o f Fourteen Precious Jewels

Skanda said:
1. Then the sons of КаЗуара became delighted (as the poison
was drunk up). They gathered at the place of churning. They again went
on churning the Ocean for a thousand years.
2. While the Ocean was being churned by all of them, there
emerged nothing. The participants in churning gasping for breath with
their mouths, became slack (through fatigue).
3. The great serpent Vasuki experienced feebleness and frailty
of life. At the time of churning Mandara also could not keep up a
stable condition.
4. Seeing them all bereft of strength, Pradyumna,1authorized by
Visnu, entered the Devas, Asuras and the king of seipents (Vasuki) and
infused strength in them.
5. Even Aniruddha approached the king of mountains and with
his thousand arms, stood like another big mountain.
6. Being wonder-struck at the restoration of extreme energy, the
multitude of Suras and Asuras joyously and energetically churned the
great Ocean.
7. At the gesture of Narayana, Devas and others did not experi­
ence any fatigue. With the rhythmic pulling the churning (operation)
looked splendid.
8. While the big Ocean was thus stirred and shaken up, the exudation
and extracts of medicinal plants flowed into it all round.
9. From the reservoir of water which was in that stage (of being
churned), there emerged the Moon who is called the presiding deity of
loveliness and medicinal herbs.
10. Then the Cow HavirdhanT, the presiding deity of all cows, the
yielder of the wishes of all, with a lustre like the moon, emerged.
11. Then a white horse, the presiding deity of all horses, mani­
fested. Airavata, the king of elephants, endowed with four tusks and of
moon-like lustre came out.
12. Then came out the heavenly tree Parijata, the king of all trees.
1. This being a Paftcaratra work, inclusion of help from the different VyQhas,
Pradyumna and Aniruddha, is brought in. Mbh and other Puranas do not mention
them, as for them the persons named as Vyuhas were Yadava heroes at the end
of Dvapara.
262 SkandaPurcuia

Then the excellent gem, the lotus-hued ruby called Kaustubha, emerged.
13. Then were born (i.e. came out) Apsaras (i.e. celestial dam­
sels) who were the receptacles of beauty. Then was bom GoddGss Wine,
the goddess that inebriates all.
14. Then came out the Sarnga bow, the presiding deity of all weapons.
Then emerged Pancajanya,1the conch, the supreme deity of all musi­
cal instruments.
15. Then the Moon-god, Parijata as well as the bevy of celestial
damsels resorting to the solar path, stood there instantaneously.
16. The leaders of Daityas immediately took hold of the king of
horses and Varunl, while Indra, the king of Devas took Airavata with
the consent of Hari.
17. The (gem) Kaustubha, the (Sarnga) bow and the conch (Pancajanya)
went over to Visnu only. All of them gave Havirdhanl (cow) to sages.
18. While the Ocean was being churned again, Sri herself directly
manifested herself delighting with her glance the three worlds, sur­
passing the splendour of all.
19. All Suras, Asuras, men desired to get hold of her but nobody
could approach her brilliance and power.
20. Knowing her to be Sri, by her holding a lotus in her hand,
Vasava and God Brahma and others, who knew her, were highly de­
lighted.
21. The Ocean himself in person immediately came there and
saying "This is my daughter', took her in his lap, and occupied a golden
seat.
22. While the Ocean was being churned by those powerful and
firm (determined) seekers of the Nectar, the Nectar did not come out.
23. Then being disappointed regarding the emergence of the Nectar,
they became slack in their efforts. О sage, the sons of Ka£yapa (i.e.
Devas and Daityas) of faded faces became dejected.
24. Seeing them in that state, the Lord, the storehouse of compas­
sion, the all-pervading Lord laughed and himself became ready to chum.
25. He was resplendent with the yellow garment, the end knot of
which was tightly fastened with a jewelled girdle. He caught hold of
the serpent in the middle by his (two pairs) of hands.
26. Daityas who caught hold of the mouth of the serpent stood on

1. BhP X differs. Krsna killed the aquatic damon Pancaja or Pancajana who
abducted the son of SandTpani (Krona’s preceptor). After killing Pahcajana, Krsna
took away the conch in which Pancajana lived. (PE 548)
Шх. 12.27—ПЛх. 13.7 263

one side and all the Devas who held the tail of the serpent stood on
the other side.
27. The Lord who stood between them sportively churned the
Ocean, giving delight to the eyes (of all) with ornaments of his hands
becoming (brightly) visible.
28. God Brahma staying in the firmament along with prominent
sages, showered him with flowers, uttering the sound (words) “Be
victorious; be victorious.”
29. Then, from the Ocean that was churned was born a man
Dhanvantari with a part of Visnu. He was fair in complexion, was
holding in his hand a pitcher containing Sudha (Nectar).
30. Taking with him Amrta (Nectar) which was the best essence
of all ghee and other juices of plants and medicines, he went near Sri.

CHAPTER THIRTEEN

Gods Drink the Nectar

Skanda said:
1. All the participants in churning who were seeing the emer­
gence of Dhanvantari (with the pitcher of Amrta), saw from a distance
Dhanvantari coming near £ri.
2. Seeing the gold pitcher containing Nectar being held in his
hand, the Asuras suddenly pounced on it, and snatched it away, О Brahmana.
3. Out of them, those who were powerful (enough) seized it, and
ran off with it. The weaker ones, running after them, protested in the
name of decorum and manner of proper behaviours (as follows) :
4. “Oh! Such unrighteous and wicked deed should not be com­
mitted by righteous-mided persons. It (the Nectar) should be drunk
after giving it to Devas, the equal partners in the labour (of churning
out Nectar) and not otherwise.”
5. Disregarding that speech (appeal), they quickly ran far away.
Even there, they were forcibly pulling each other’s hands (for securing
the Nectar).
6. While they were proclaiming and crying about “I am the first
and not you”, “I am the first, not you”, “I shall drink it (first)”, they
did not get the opportunity to drink.
7. Then, on seeing the Nectar snatched away by the Daityas,
264 SkandaPurarui

Devas became pale-faced. Being incapable of preventing them, they


sought refuge in Acyuta.
8-9. “Protect us, О Lord of the world; do protect us. AJ1 our pos­
sessions are destroyed. All the Nectar has been taken away by Daityas.
What shall be our fate? Even without imbibing Nectar, they are suf­
ficiently capable of killing us. If the Nectar is drunk by them today,
what shall we do?”

Skanda said:
10. Having heard the pitiable condition of the Devas, the Lord
who performs the tasks of his devotees, told the Suras, “Don’t be afraid”
and was intent to take back the Nectar from Asuras.
11. After assuming a marvellously beautiful feminine form that
enchanted all the world, he approached the Daityas and played with
a ball.1
12. Seeing that beautiful form, they were fascinated and were
overwhelmed with the passion of love. Giving up their mutual struggle,
they approached and spoke:
13. “O blessed lady! Take this pitcher of Nectar and distribute it
amongst us. We are the sons of KaSyapa; О lady with beautiful but­
tocks, make us all drink it (Nectar).”
14-15. Requesting her thus, they handed it over to the lady who was
reluctant. She spoke, “No faith should be entertained in me, as 1 am
a self-willed (i.e. wanton) woman. You have done an improper act. I
shall, however, distribute it as per my will.” Though she told them so,
those stupid ones said, “Do as you please”.
16. Then in compliance of her order, Devas, Daityas, Vasuki sat
there in rows, each keeping with his particular group.
17. While they were arranging themselves into groups, MohinT sat
on a golden seat at a distance, facing the rows of gods.
18. Keeping the pitcher of Nectar near her, she, casting her glances
here and there in a woman’s sportive way, sat for a moment like an
indifferent, impartial person.
19. The leaders of Danava group, of whom Vipracitti was promi­
nent, were suspicious in their minds about MohinT and hence they seated
themselves near the Devas.
20. Approaching quietly and evading deceitfully her glance, the

I This is MohinT, the 13th incarnation of Visnu, who deluded the Asuras,
refusing them their share in Amrta and distributing it among Devas.
DLix.13.21-33 265

wicked-souled ones carried away the pitcher of Nectar again and were
desirous of drinking it in a secret place.
21. Nara and Narayana came there accompanied by sages. Both
of them saw the Danavas stealing away the Nectar.
22. Instructed by Narayana, Nara at once stopped them.1Snatch­
ing away per force that pitcher, he quickly handed it over to Mohinl.
23. Then with a desire to kill Nara, Danavas took up their arms
and attacked him. There was thus a great disorder in the ranks of Asuras.
24. Thereupon, the powerful Lord Nara, the fearless one, uncon­
querable by Devas, Daityas and human beings, single-handedly fought
with them.
25. In the meanwhile Visnu who had assumed the form of Mohinl
went about quickly and made all the Devas who were sitting in rows,
drink the Nectar.
26. Even then Rahu, a Danava, entered (the unoccupied place) in
between the Sun and the Moon and sat in the row of the Devas, without
being noticed by anyone.
27. When Mohinl came sprinkling the Nectar in his (Rahu’s) mouth,
both the Sun and the Moon indicated it to her by the glance of their
eyes.
28. Therefore, the Lord who had assumed the highly illusory form
of a woman, cut down his head containing Nectar (within his mouth)
by his discus, which came there as soon as remembered.
29. Hari established it (Rahu’s head) in the planetary position, for
the peace of the people, as that mountain-like head was swallowing
people while shouting loudly.
30. After having made Suras drink the Nectar, he assumed his
male body. The Lord and the Devas fought with Danavas.
31. On the shore of the Ocean there took place the battle of Devas
who grew extremely powerful by imbibing Nectar, and were helped by
Visnu, with Asuras.
32. In that tumultuous battle, the Asuras who were being killed
by Nara, Indra and others, fled away and entered the earth (nether
world).
33. When the Sun set, all the multitudes of Devas came near £ri
and had a great joy at her sight.

1. According to Mbh, Adi 19.19-31, Nara helped Devas in fighting against


Asuras after Devas drank Amrta. Post-Amrta-drinking fight by Nara is also mentioned-
in v 32 below.
266 Skanda Purana

CHAPTER FOURTEEN

The Marriage Festival of Laksml and Narayana

Skanda said:
1-8. There came (for the marriage-ceremony of Laksml and Narayana)
the following:
God Brahma; the Lords of created being; Sambhu; Manus; great
sages; (twelve) Adityas; (eight) Vasus; (eleven) Rudras; Siddhas;
Gandharvas; Caranas; Sadhyas; (forty-nine) Maruts; (the group of ten
gods called) ViSvedevas; presiding deities of quarters; the two Alvins;
the Fire-god; the Moon; Dharma; the Prajapati himself; Garuda; Kinnaras
and other groups of gods; serpent-devotees of Visnu; of whom Sesa was
the first, wives of all the Devas (such as) SavitrT, ParvatT, PrthivI,
SarasvatT, 6acl, Gauri, §iva, Samjna, Rddhi, Svaha, RohinT, DhQmorna
(wife of Yama), Aditi and the lawful wives like Murti, Daya and others;
Arundhatl, Sandill, Lopamudra, Anasuya and other pious wives of sages;
(Rivers like) Ganga, SarasvatT, Reva, Yamuna, Tapatl (Tapti in north
Maharashtra), Candrabhaga (Chinab), Vipasa (Bias), Satadru (Sutlej),
Devika (Deva? or Gogra), Godavari, Kaverl, Kau^ikT (KosT), Krsna,
VenT, BhTmarathT, the great river TamraparnT, Krtamala (Vaiga near
Madura, Tamil Nadu), Vitasta (Jhclum), Nirvindhya (КаП-Sindh in Malva),
Surasa, CarmanvatT (Chambal), Payosnl (Pain Ganga), Visva and oth­
ers.
9. All celestial damsels, of whom Rambha, GhrtacI, VisvacT,
Menaka, Tilottama, and UrvaST were prominent ones came there.
10. All the residents of Vaikuntha as well as all the inhabitants
of Goloka and important attendants of Visnu came there with great
delight.
11. All the eight supernatural powers beginning with Anima (Levi­
tation), and nine treasures beginning with £ankha, Padma in their corporal
forms came near Sri.
12. At that time, for the pleasure of Sri, full autumnal moon re­
moved all the darkness of the night and the quarters became resplendent.
13. In compliance of the order of God Brahma, Indra began (the
preparations for) her ablution. Tvasta immediately constructed a very
beautiful hall (created for the ceremonial occasion).
14-15. It was furnished with long rows of thousands of pillars decked
with jewels. It was beautified with innumerable wonderful canopies
and with plantain trees. It was adorned with rows of heavenly wish-
Шх. 14.16-29 267

yielding trees bent down with sweet fragrant flowers. It was beautiful
and fascinating in its various parts.
16. It was shining brilliantly with crores of rows of bejewelled
lamps of resplendent light. It appeared bright with arches (beautified)
with suspended pearl-laces.
17. Seating Sri on a bejewelled throne there, great sages per­
formed her ablution, preceded by vocal and instrumental music.
18-19. Airavata, Pundarika, Vamana, Kumuda, Anjana, Puspadanta,
Sarvabhauma, Supratlka—these elephants presiding over eight cardinal
points, making a roaring sound, raised up auspicious gold pitchers and
showered her with waters1brought from seas in four quarters.
20. Great rivers in their embodied forms brought waters. Vedas,
assuming personal forms, recited Mantras along with sages.
21. Sweet-voiced Gandharvas sang. Bevies of the celestial dam­
sels danced. Other groups of Devas played on musical instruments.
22. There was a great joy all over the three worlds to all em­
bodied beings. Brahmanas recited Vedic Suktas of which Srisukta (i.e.
RV 1.165) was the first. Ladies sang songs.
23. Clouds played upon musical instruments such as instruments
of bell metal for beating time. Tabors (Mrdanga drums), instruments
called Gomukha, Panava, large military drums called Anaka, Dundubhi
drums resounded in heaven.
24. There was a shower of saffron accompanied with shouts of
victory. For her personal service were the lawful wives (of sages) and
supernatural powers (in person).
25. The Ocean gave two yellow-coloured silken garments and
abundant invaluable bejewelled ornaments to her who had taken that
auspicious bath.
26. Indra brought to her a seat worthy of being occupied by her.
ViSvakarma gave her bangles and rings set with excellent jewels.
27. The Moon, her brother, offered her an excellent ornament for
the nose (nose ring), and also gave her ornaments set with excellent
jewels for her hair.
28. The Lotus-born (God Brahma) gave her a lotus and SarasvatT
presented her a pearl necklace. Nagas of whom Sesa was prominent
bestowed on her two ear-rings set with the best of jewels.
29. Durga gave her colly rium and saffron symbolic of good fortune
1. Icons showing LaksmT being bathed by elephants are found since the Sufiga
period (N.P. Joshi, Bharatiya Murii Sastra, p.2I9). Here the Purana employs eight
elephants instead of two usually found in these old icons.
268 SkatulaP uram

(securing the favour, firm devotion and long life of the husband). Savitri
gave her an ornament to be worn on the forehead, SacI gave her a betel-
box.
30. The season Spring presented her a flower-garland. Sankara
gave her a necklace. God Varuna gave her the garland VaijayantT.
Kubera bestowed upon her a bejewelled mirror.
31. The Fire-god gave her an invaluable bodice, while Yama bestowed
an auspicious umbrella. Others presented her ornaments suitable for
the occasion.
32. Then the Ocean asked God Brahma, “To whom should I offer
this daughter endowed with excellent ornaments?” The omniscient
Lord then replied:
33-37. “O storehouse of waters! This your daughter is the mother
of mine as well as that of Siva. It is definite that she is the mother
of all Devas and the worlds. She has no other husband than Narayana,
Vasudeva, the Supreme Brahman, the Lord of all, the excellent Purusa.
Therefore, О Ocean, for the felicity of the three worlds give her in
marriage with proper (religious) procedure to the Lord who has arrived
here in person and taken his seat. By giving her (in marriage) to the
Supreme Soul, make your life successful by making your family pure
and lift it up from the ocean of Samsara. (Though) you are one, you
are known in the world by your seven forms due to the division by
seven Dvlpas (continents). By doing this (i.e. offering in marriage), you
will obtain great fame.”
38. Addressed thus by God Brahma, the Ocean who was delighted
and had the hair standing on end, regarded himself as blessed and gave
his daughter to Visnu.
39. Then after requesting the Lord as per procedure, he performed
betrothal (Vagdana) and other details. He thus completed the sacred
precepts pertaining to marriage-ceremony.
40. In the marriage celebrations. Dhanvantari, the Moon-god, Indra
and other deities were on the side of the Ocean-god there.
41. They were the chief ones in bestowing (things like) clothes,
ornaments, vehicles, serving of meals and rendering honours to the
relatives of the bridegroom.
42-43. In the auspicious rite of the marriage-ceremony of LaksmI,
the following were the prominent ladies: river-goddesses of which Ganga
was the first; spouses of Devas beginning with £acl; wives of Moun-
tain(-gods) like Mena (the wife of Himalaya); Supernatural powers
beginning with Anima; Kanti, the lovely wife the Moon-god; and all
Шх. 14.44-57 269

celestial nymphs, О sage.


44. Then God Brahma performed the sportive marriage-ceremony
of Narayana suitable to and in consideration of his parents Dharma and
Murti.
45-46. “This Dharma is the support of the world. He is adorable to
all embodied beings. He is worthy of being his father. He is exces­
sively in love with him.
This Murti who is well-known as the source of origin of all virtues,
this daughter of Daksa, the lawful wife (of Dharma) deserves to be
(Narayana’s) mother.”
47-48. Then, even on the side of Dharma, participating in the marriage
duties these were the prominent ones, О sage: (they were) God Sahkara
accompanied by NandTSvara and Gane£a, great sages including Marici,
the lords of subjects (Prajapatis), the sage Narada, Vainateya (Garuda)
and attendants including Nanda and Sridama.
49. Durga, the deity of speech (Van!) who is the mother of Vedas,
wives of sages including Anasuya and all Dharmapatnls (lawful wives)
were the prominent ones among the ladies.
50. God Brahma along with Vedas and others, and Brahmanas who
were expert in the Vedas and the procedures of the marriage-ceremony,
were on both the sides.
51. Then, the Ocean, with the favour of Sri, immediately procured
all the requisites, causing wonderment to Dcvas.
52. He saw that whatever he intended (to have) in his mind, it was
instantaneously brought near him. He was, therefore, highly delighted.
53. In the middle of that (marriage) hall, he caused (the construc­
tion of) the altar for establishing the (holy) fire (in it) by Brahmanas
learned in the Vedas.
54. He decorated the altar with sandalpaste, flowers, (unbroken)
grains of rice etc., and with auspicious colours and waterpots contain­
ing sprouts.
55. Then Visnu who was bathed by prominent sages chanting Mantras
accompanied by the loud tumultuous sound of auspicious musical in­
struments, wore invaluable clothes, bejewelled ornaments and a splendid
celestial crown.
56. With all the quarters reverberating with the sound of the musical
instruments and the sweet songs of dancing celestial ladies he came
along with eulogizing Suras to the ceremonial hall and sat on a seat
of gold.
57. The Ocean along with his dearest wife Gartga washed his (i.e.
270 Skatida Purana

Visnu’s) lotus-feet with the stream of excellent water flowing from the
spout of a golden pitcher (of a particular shape), and carried that water
over his head along with (the heads of) those of the members of his
family (by sprinkling it over them).
58. Then reciting loudly the auspicious verses (relevant to the
occasion), God Brahma made the Ocean-god give (in marriage) §ri to
Acyuta. Enkindling the sacred fire as per injunctions, he offered ob­
lations (to the marital fire) along with sages.
59. After giving him his beautiful daughter who had fixed her
sight only on his lotus-feet, he presented the great being numerous rich
garments and bejewelled ornaments along with the daughter.
60. Then Hari circumambulated the duly oblated sacrificial fire
along with Sri, attracting awhile the minds of men and women onlook­
ers.
61. The multitudes of gods, along with their wives, worshipped
with reverence, the beautiful parents of the universe occupying the
same beat, presenting to them invaluable garments and ornaments.
62. Goddesses including Durga and others and wives of Devas
including SacT, whose beautiful faces were beaming with smiles, sang
auspicious songs describing the excellences of Visnu.
63-64. The multitudes of the wives of Devas seated in two groups
facing each other, sang with great love and devotion, festive nuptial
songs at the sight of the couple in such a way as on hearing them all
Suras, great sages, all womenfolk saw the Lord along with Sri shining
within themselves, and they sat (still and motionless) as if drawn in
a picture.
65. Paying obeisance with devotion and offering ceremonial aksata
(unbroken grains of rice) etc., the Devas joyously eulogized them in­
dividually, with excellent words, humbly folding their palms with
reverence.

CHAPTER FIFTEEN

Eulogy of LaksmhNarayana

Brahma said:
1. After having constantly meditated upon the Vedas, I have
arrived at the decision that, if living beings entertain firmer devotion
H.ix.15.2-8 271

unto you, the delight of Rama, they will enjoy an unending and never
decreasing multitude of pleasures, and that they attain to worlds, the
ultimate destination of which is the Supreme Person.
2. Not knowing this, they propitiate us, Devas, through various
kinds of penances, worships, even though we are (ourselves) possessed
of the qualities of Rajas and Tamas. Hence they are called stupid, О
Kesava. I, therefore, cherish you in my heart.

Sankara said:
3. О Lord! The Three Vedas, Sankhya, Vedanta, Yoga, Purana,
Pancaratra as well as Dharmagastra—all these devoutly sing in various
ways the supreme majestic glory of yours alone.
4. In the first Kalpa (Adi-Kalpa), it is from you, the great one,
alone that these Sastras were born and they have you as their only
resort, О Sovereign Lord. I betake myself to you and worship you, the
Primordial One whose lotus-feet are served by Rama, who are the .source
of the origin of Sastras.

Dharma said:
5. A talk about you is a releaser from the bonds of Samsara. It
is like nectar to embodied beings who are tormented by the three kinds
of miseries (namely, Adhibhautika, Adhidaivika, Adhyatmika). It is a
destroyer of sins accumulated during innumerable births. Devotion unto
you instantly enhances knowledge.
6. О Lord of innumerable names! May it (i.e. a talk about you)
issued from the mouths of saintly persons, forever enter into the valley
(in the form) of my heart, through (my) ear. It should remove every
(other) wish except the one for you. Salute unto you. the ocean of
mercy, the mighty one.

Prajapati said:
7. Blessed are these wish-yielding trees, the shade of which has
been resorted to by you along with Sri. Blissful is the creator (builder)
of this hall (of your marriage-ceremony). Beatified'is this earth where
your seat stands, О Lord.
8. Verily this Ocean is blessed in this world, (inasmuch as) his
own daughter was given unto you directly by him. Blessed are these—
we—who behold you. We have paid our obeisance to you, the blessed
Lord, the consort of Sri.
272 SkandaPurana

Manus said:
9. О Lord of LaksmT! That Dharma certainly is superior to all
(others), the Dharma wherefrom pure devotion unto you, the sifpport of
Dharma, is engendered.
10. We praise you, the soul of Dharma, the leader and protector
of Dharma, the source of Dharma, to whom Dharma is dearest, О Lord.

Sages said:
11. He who is devoid of devotion is averse to you; (being) desir­
ous of knowledge he exerts, yet does not achieve success. He is, therefore,
attached to Karmas for a desired object. How can he attain imperish­
able joy, О ocean of bliss?
12. Hence, we, filled with faith and devotion, (practising) Dharma,
penance and Vedas (Vedic studies), meditate upon you who are beyond
Maya, the controller of Kala (Death or Time), the noble one, the Lord
of Sn, senior to the senior ones.

lndra said:
13. Really, due to our insulting behaviour towards Durvasas we
became extremely miserable. With your exception, none of these gods
like Brahma, Rudra and others were able to protect us, О Lord.
14. Devoid of all wealth and wanting in food we were reduced to
a condition on par with destitutes on the earth. By you only we had
our miseries removed instantly. Obeisance to you, О Sri Hari.

Fire-god said:
15. The food that is the means of subsistence to Devas, Danavas
and human beings, is created by you only. Therewith learned men offer
oblations in sacrifices to you, and the remnant is carried (offered) to
other inhabitants of heaven.
16. Those performers of sacrifices, though interestedly engaged in
acts for realization of desires, get quickly freed from the bondage of
Karmas and attain to the BrahmT state. The others (i.e. non-sacrificers)
are thieves. I bow down to you, Sri-Yajna-Purusa (Visnu).

Maruts said:
17. By rendering service to you, the imperishable, supreme sta­
H.ix.15.18-23 273

tion, devotees exclusively attached to you, do not crave for houses,


prosperity etc. (regarding them) as low, nor do they desire for the final
emancipation full of excessive happiness. It is proper that they regard
their birth in a family of Candalas as the excellent one. We have
approached you, the great person, the refuge of devotees, who are ex­
clusively attached to you.

Siddhas said:
18. We pay obeisance to you who alone, though causeless, are the
cause of creation (sustenance and destruction) of innumerable Cosmic
Eggs (Brahmandas), to you who are immanent in them yet transcendent
and their controller.

Rudras said:
19. Obeisance to you, the Supreme Person, who, though yourself
free from delusion, are the enchanter of Maya, the deluder of all and
who are Kala (i.e. destroyer) even of Mahakala (the great destroyer of
the universe).

Sun said:
20. О Lord of Rama! Illuminated by you, we lighten the worlds.
We have bowed down to you who are self-luminous, of great reful­
gence, the very light incarnate.

Sddhyas said:
21. You are the ruler (and controller) of kings, great serpents,
kings of Daityas, of Devas, of Manus, Prajapatis. We repeatedly salute
you, the Supreme King of Kings.

Vasus said:
22. Whenever there is a destruction of the proclaimed eternal Dharma
and its followers by persons (born) with Asura portions, then, every
time, you incarnate of your own accord. We bow down to the protector
of Dharma.

Caranas said:
23. Devotees sing (the praise) of the auspicious deeds of you who
have assumed innumerable forms in various poetical compositions. It
274 Skanda Purana

(the poetic composition) instantly purifies the hearer as well as the


speaker. We have bowed down to you of auspicious fame.

Gandharvas and celestial damsels said:

24. О Lord! Those who, leaving aside your episodes, describe or


listen to the laudatory verses about others, become miserable and get
sewn (bound) with the bonds of Sarhsara. We salute you, a worthy
resort.

The Ocean said:


25. О unconquerable Lord! If anyone serves with delight your people
(devotees) even once with a little of wealth, water, food, garments,
bows, he attains a high position, even if he be of a low status. I salute
that merciful one.

Parsadas (Visnu \v attendants) said:


26. You are our parents; you are (our) relative; you are our be­
loved teacher, friend and protector; you alone are our ruler; you are the
highest (to us); you are our entire wealth.

Murti (Nardyana’s mother) said:


27. I always adore in my heart you, the ruler of Goloka, you, through
association with whom, women, Sudras, Asuras, birds and beasts of
low categories and even wicked-souled beings attain to a high status
praised even by the great ones and abandoned by whom even the lords
of Devas immediately become bereft of worship (unfit to be worshipped).

Savitri said:
28. At the time of the creation of the universe, you have created
by your glance Prakrti and Purusa, creating through them, these Tattvas,
(primary) substances or principles beginning with Mahat; you created
many Virajs.
29. Assuming the creatorship of the world in the form of Vairaja
(Brahma), you created Devas, Asuras, human beings, serpents, mov­
ables and immovable beings, О Lord. I seek refuge in you, the first
creator.
Шх. 15.30-37 275

Durga said:
30. О omnipresent Lord! In this world those who perform your
meditation in their hearts with excessive love and devotion do not
desire for the happiness of Brahma (or of Brahma’s post), or the plea­
sure in heaven or the position of being the sole sovereign lord of the
earth.
31. Having obtained this incomparable .bliss conferred per force
by you (upon them), they, the powerful ones, do not give it up even for
a moment. I bow down to such a Lord of Satvatas.

Rivers said:
32. О grantor of boons! Today we have approached you, Narayana
who protect from the fear of birth, death and Yama, people who, know­
ingly or unknowingly, perform a mere bow unto you or the glorification
(or recitation) of your name, О friend of Nara.

Wives of Devas said:


33. The birth of you who have assumed a body on this earth, is
auspicious. Your deeds are wonderful and sanctifying to the world. As
you are the attributeless Brahman, everything pertaining to you be­
comes devoid of all attributes.
34. By resorting to you, people who are characterised even by
Tamas, Rajas and Sattva attributes, become attributeless. Hence we
worship (you) who are devoid of attributes.

Wives of sages said:


35. The lotus-feet of Visnu, that is of yours, are the only pacifiers
of all difficulties of people afflicted with extremely calamitous tor­
ments of three types. Hence, we have approached you as refugees, О
infinite God of gods.

Prthivi said:
36. I seek refuge only in Vasudeva whose face is like the full
autumnal moon, whose eyes are long like lotus-petals in autumn, who
relieves immense sufferings due to separation from 6ri (wealth).

Sarasvati said:
37. My eyes have been (as if) transformed into Cakora birds with
276 Skaruki Purana

reference to your extremely beautiful moon-like face. They do not go


elsewhere. May this form of yours abide in m j heart and no other!

Skanda said:
38. Thus praised by all gods, he welcomed them by his glance
only. He spoke to Sri, “O auspicious lady, give a (favourable) look to
these gods.”
39. With a pleasing look all the residents of the three worlds were
glanced with favour by her. They became prosperous as before.
40. Householders as well as renouncers, all got back their own
(previous) prosperity. Dharma and others began to move with delight
as before.
41. The Lord offered his chest as the place to 6ri. Stationing her­
self there, she pervaded the three worlds with her affluence.
42. Then the Ocean (lit. ‘the mine of jewels’) as a consequence
of being the progenitor of Sri, became true to the meaning of his name
by becoming the abode (Ksaya) of all jewels.
43. There he respectfully satisfied all the guests with nectar-like
excellent food of four varieties of very good flavour.
44. With great pleasure, he presented to all (guests) including
Devas individually valuable garments, bejewelled ornaments and other
paraphernalia.
45. At that time, for the satisfaction of his son-in-law, there was
nothing that could not be given to his relatives, in the case of the
Ocean who was showering wealth like a cloud.
46. The Lord also distributed among Brahmanas all the abundant
wealth given to him as dowry, and vanished along with Sri.
47. Suras were excessively delighted by LaksmT and Narayana.
Gods including Indra, went to heaven and others went to their respec­
tive homes.
48. Getting back their respective powers as before, all of them
became happy through the grace of the Lord of Kamala (LaksmT).
49. By the order of the Lord Garuda again took back Mount Mandara
to his place and fixed him there sportively.
50. О Brahmana-sage! In this way the prosperity which was lost
through the curse of a Brahmana, was got back by Indra through the
grace of Narayana.
51. О sage! He who hears this holy story of the Lord and who
extols it observing religious restraints, both of them will get riches.
Шх.15.52—H.ix.16.6 277

52. By (listening) to this there will be attainment of wealth to


householders. To the recluses there will be attainment of devotion,
spiritual knowledge, disaffection from worldly pleasures and others, as
desired by them.
53. In this way I have narrated to you, О Brahmana, how Indra got
back his prosperity. I shall tell you everything as to how Sage Narada
went to Sveta DvTpa. Listen with concentrated mind.

CHAPTER SIXTEEN

Description of Goloka1

Skanda said:
1. Ascending the peak of Meru, Narada with his divine vision
saw Sveta DvTpa and thousands of liberated souls thereof.
2. Concentrating his sight on Lord Vasudeva, the great Yogi soared
up that very moment and immediately arrived at that place.
3. Reaching the great DvTpa (continent) Sveta, Narada was de­
lighted in his mind. He saw those very auspicious devotees who were
white-complcxioned and had the lustre of the moon.
4. He worshipped them with his head (bowed down), and was
mentally adored by them. Being desirous of seeing the Supreme Brah­
man, he stood there embarrassed (lit. in a difficult situation).
5. Knowing that he (Narada) was a devotee exclusively of Visnu,
those Bhagavatas (‘followers of the Lord') were delighted (i.e. satis­
fied) in their minds. While muttering the twelve-syllabled (Mantra of
the Lord), they spoke to him:

The Sveta-muktas ( ‘Liberated Svetas') said:


6. О prominent sage! You are a devotee of Krsna. Hence you (arc
able to) see us who are difficult to be seen even by Devas. What desire
torments you?
1 This is the uppemiosi of the divine worlds. It is regarded as the upper lip
of Visnu, the lower lip being Brahma-loka (Mbh, Santi 347.52) The description
of Goloka in Mbh, Anusdsana 83.37-44 is somewhat different from what is given
here. This Goloka is the replica of the Vrndavana region where Krsna spent his
boyhood in the cowherd community. The same persons—cowherdess Radha, her companions,
Krsna’s playmates, his Rasa dance, cows etc , are super-divine in the Goloka of this
Purana.
278 Skanda Parana

Narada said:
7. I am very eager to see Lord Krsna, the Supreme Brahman
himself, the ruler (of the universe). О great devotees who are dear to
him, show him (to me).

Skanda said:
8. Then one white liberated soul, being directed by Krsna in his
heart, said, “Come, I shall show you Krsna”. Saying this, he proceeded
ahead.
9. Then the highly delighted Sage Narada went up with him by
the path in the firmament, seeing the dwelling places of Devas.
10. Seeing the Seven Sages (Ursa Major) and the Polar Star, he
was not attached anywhere there. He crossed the regions known as
Maharloka, Janaloka, Tapoloka, О excellent Brahmana.
11. Then, after seeing the region of god Brahma, the sage who
followed the Sveta-mukta. found his way even through the eight sheaths
(of the universe) due to the wish of Krsna.
12. Having successively crossed (the sheaths of) the elements,
viz. earth, water, fire, wind, and ether, Ego (Aharii), Mahat and Prakrti,
each of which is ten times (larger) than the previous one,1he arrived
at the wonderful Goloka.
13. It was the glorious abode, accessible only to those exclusively
devoted to Hari. While going he saw the extensively wide and fath­
omless river Viraja.12
14. It has the fragrance of sandal due to the bath taken by mul­
titudes of cowherds and cowherdesses. It appeared beautiful with lotuses
white, red and blue in colour.
15. He arrived at its bank which was extensive, attractive to the
mind, full of crystal-stones. It was beautified with excellent precious
stones of white, green, red and yellow colour.
16. It was full of rows of wish-yielding trees. It was beautified
with coral-sprouts. It was adorned with mines of precious stones, like
syamantaka, sapphire and others.

1. It is a Puranic concept that our universe is enveloped by (sheathed in) the


five elements, Ahaitikara, Mahat and Prakrti. A Yogi has to pierce his way through
them before attaining Brahman (symbolised here as Goloka).
2. According to Brahma Vaivarra Purana, Viraja was a cowherdess (a mistress
of Krsna) who was converted into a river by Radha’s curse. In Yaisnava Vedanta
it is the river after crossing which one visulizes the Lord.
Il.ix. 16.17-31 279

17. It was extremely beautiful with steps (of the ghats) studded
with excellent gems of various kinds. It was occupied by swans, Karandava
ducks (and other aquatic birds) warbling sweetly.
18-19. Its splendid, translucent water was being drunk up by mul­
titudes of wish-yielding cows, excellent elephants and horses. He crossed
it. Having crossed in a moment the heavenly river which formed a
moat round the Lord’s residence, through the will of the Lord, he arrived
at Mount &atasrnga ('having a hundred peaks’).
20. It was of gold and beautiful. It was ten million Yojanas in
height. Its extent was hundred million Yojanas and was attractive to
the mind.
21-22. It was adorned with (the growth of) thousands of wish-yield­
ing trees and trees like Parijata and others, and creepers like Mallika,
Yuthika (varieties of jasmine), cloves and cardamoms. It was beauti­
fied with trees such as golden plantain trees, and also multitudes of
heavenly deer, elephants and sweet-warbling birds.
23. In his castle-like abode on the beautiful peaks, he saw mind-
attracting Rasa-mandapas (i.c. halls for dance called Rasa) of the Lord
spread oqt.
24. They were surrounded by series of gardens, fragrant with flow­
ers in full bloom. They looked beautiful with gem-set panelled doors
in four directions.
25. They were furnished with wonderful arched doorways, and with
thousands of pillars studded with jewels. They were provided with pillars
of plantain trees and windows with wreaths of pearls suspended thereon.
26. They were provided with auspicious Durva grass, fried grains,
unbroken rice grains and fruits. The quadrangular places therein were
sprinkled with sandal, agallochum, musk and saffron.
27. They were appealing to the heart, with various kinds of sweet
sounds of musical instruments pleasing to the ears (and hence worth
listening). He saw there crores of multitudes of cowherdesses.
28-30. They were adorned with invaluable garments and ornaments,
with bangles studded with excellent jewels, girdles, anklets, armlets
and rings. They were endowed with youth and loveliness of form and
features, and with incomparably sweet voice. Their complexion was
like that of Radha and LaksmI and (had) amorous hands. In the hall
provided with various articles of enjoyment, they were amusing them­
selves and singing pleasing songs about Krsna.
31, Sage Narada saw a great forest called Vrndavana at the foot
of that mountain, О Savarni.
280 Skanda Purcina

32. It was the playground favourite with Krsna and Radha. It was
beautiful on account of the rows of wish-yielding tre^s and lakes with
blooming lotuses.
33-37. It was beautified (lit. illuminated) with trees like mango,
hog-plum, Kadamba, jujube trees, pomegranates, date-palms, betelnut
trees, orange trees, coconut palms, sandal trees, rose-apples, citron
trees, bread-fruit trees, walnut trees, plantain trees, Campaka trees,
grape-vines, golden Ketakas. All these trees were bending down with
the weight of fruits and flowers.
It was served by a gentle wind, wafting the cool and sweet fragrance
of (flowers of) Mallika, MadhavT, Kunda, cloves, and jasmine. All
around, it was wet with spring-water issuing from Sata^rnga. It was
richly endowed with the beauty of the spring season. It was endowed
with innumerable bowers, beautified with rows of lamps studded with
gems and provided with materials suitable for amorous sports.
38. О sage, it was resonant with the sound of glorifications (or
repetitions of the name) of Krsna by cowherds and cowherdesses, with
the lowing of cows and calves, the warbling of birds and jingling sound
of various orrtaments and the sound of the churning of curds.
39. It had thirty-two othfcr forests, extremely beautiful with vari­
ous kinds of trees, bending down with (the weight of) fully blossomed
flowers and fruits, attracting the minds of spectators.
40-43. He was greatly delighted to sec it. He arrived at the resplen­
dent city (capital) of Goloka. It was a circular citadel (full) of jewels.
It was beautified with royal roads. It appeared splendid with crores of
mansions of devotees of Krsna, with chariots studded with excellent
jewels and decorated with a number of small tinkling bells. It was
beautiful on account of crores of wonderful mansions, full of treasures
of excellent precious stones, adorned with pillars of precious stones—
all arranged in rows.
It appeared splendid with beautiful halls of sports. It was built with
excellent precious stones* and was furnished with gem-set altars or
quadrangles (lighted with) rows of lamps studded with excellent gems.
44. Its courtyard was sprinkled with liquid (mixed) with filaments
of flowers, agallochum, musk and saffron and with heaps of (vessels
containing) curds, Diirva grass, fried grains and plantain trees.
45. Auspicjpusness was caused by gold pitchers full of water and
arches constructed. In it a considerable number of elephants and horses

* ratna-sara-vuurmitah is probably a misprint fo r.. . vinirnirtam.


Il.ix. 16.46—Шх.17.4 281

were treading the royal roads paved with precious stones.


46. It was crowded with a number of lords of cosmoses who had
come to have a sight of Srikrsna and with great gods such as Brahma
and Safikara having articles of worship in their hands.
47. It was full of multitudes of cowherds and cowherdesscs who
were going to have a look of Krsna. The sage was delighted to see that
great road so crowded (with these).
48. Then, he reached the mansion of Krsna which was beautiful
and appeared marvellous to all. It was surrounded by rows of mansions
of cowherds including Nanda and of Vrsabhanu and others.
49. It was provided with four gates and consisted of sixteen cita­
dels with moats around them. Each gate of it was guarded by a crore
of cowherds as gatekeepers surrounding it.
50. At the doors with jewelled pillars and panels in front of him,
he saw successively the doorkeepers who were sitting there (on duty).
51-53. (They were) VTrabhanu, Candrabhanu, Suryabhanu the third
(doorkeeper), Vasubhanu, Devabhanu and then Sakrabhanu after him;
Ratnabhanu, Suparsva, Visala, and then Vrsabha, Arhsu, Bala, Subala,
Dcvaprastha, Varuthapa, and Sridaman. He bowed to him (Andaman)
and entered with his permission. In the great wide quadrangle (before
him) he saw a great mass of splendour.

CHAPTER SEVENTEEN

Manifestation of Vasudeva

Skanda said:
1. О sage, he saw a more brilliant, heavenly splendour, similar
to crores of crorcs of suns arisen (and shining) simultaneously.
2. It completely pervaded all the quarters, intermediate cardinal
points, above and below. It is said to be imperishable Brahman, characte­
rised by existence, knowledge and bliss.
3. It permeated both Prakrti and Pumsa and their evolutes. It was
that brilliance which persons accomplished in Yoga, crossing (in ascendance)
all the six Cakras (plexuses) within (their body), see in their heads (in
the Sahasrara-Kamala) with the grace of Vasudeva.
4. It is by his brilliance that the sun, the moon, fire and stars are
282 SkandaPuram

illuminated. They irradiate the whole world by their imperishable light.


5. Satvatas called it Brahma-pura, the residence of thf Lord,
near which and around which crores of worshippers are standing.
6-7. Multitudes of Brahmas ana Sankaras with (materials of) wor­
ship in their hands, fall over it due to confusion. Cowherds and cowherdesses
on whom there is the grace of Krsna, see (the Lord) in that brilliance.
Others see only the bright splendour but not him, О sage.
8. He (Narada) saw therein a wonderful, lustrous, celestial, beautiful
palace, consisting of excellent precious stones of various kinds, with
thousands of pillars shining with jewels, beautiful with a big assembly
hall.
9. It was illuminated all round with numerous rows of brilliant
mansions of his devotees, both men and women, who were adorned
with ornaments studded with jewels and with very fine garments of
various kinds.
10. The sage, with ecstatic delight, saw there a brilliant throne,
created out of the quintessence of excellent precious stones, which
caused wonder in the minds of spectators.
11-12. There he saw seated (on the throne) Lord Krsna, Narayana,
the attributeless (Brahman), the omniscient ruler (of the universe), the
excellent (supreme) Purusa whom Satvatas (i.e. devotees of Krsna)
call Vasudeva. Him some devotees call the ‘Supreme Soul*, some call
‘Supreme Brahman*, others, ‘Brahman greater than the greatest*, some,
‘Lord Visnu’ while others call the ‘Supreme Lord*.
13. (He saw) him, whose body was beautiful like a thousand gods
of love (combined), who was always youthful (lit. a boy below 15 years
of age), who, a receptacle of mercy, was graceful due to his extremely
quiescent form, was superior to all the perishables and imperishables
and (forever) independent.
14. (He saw him) whose side-glance causes the sport (as it were)
of creation, sustenance and destruction of a number of Brahmandas
(Cosmoses), who is the supreme ruler of innumerable crores of Brahmandas,
who is the sole (deity) worthy of being saluted by all, who has assumed
the garb of a great actor.
15. (He saw him) who was wearing excellent, yellow, priceless,
resplendent garment, who appeared rich with ornaments of innumer­
able excellent jewels, whose complexion was (dark) like a newly formed
cloud, and in whose ears excellent ear-rings of the shape of crocodile
were shining.
16. (He) is called white in complexion as he was enveloped in a
Шх. 17.17-26 283

highly brilliant mass of refulgence that was radiated from his person.
His excellent crown was radiant with the wealth of excellent jewels.
His eyes were charming like the petals of an autumnal lotus.
17. His person was besmeared with excellent fragrant sandal
(paste). One (panel-like) side of his chest was marked with Srlvatsa.
He was sweetly playing on a flute put to his mouth with his lotus-like
beautiful arms.
18. He was being worshipped by Radha, with multitudes of her
friends, of whom Jaya, SuSIla, Lalita were prominent, and by Rama and
his consorts including Satyabhama, Kalindl (Yamuna) and JambavatT.
19. He was being served by Dharma, Vedas, all the Suns and by
Knowledge and others with their pairs of hands restrained (i.e. folded
with reverence), and by his many weapons like Sudar£ana who had
assumed a personal form.
20. He was waited upon by his prominent attendants who were
like emerald, ruby and gold in complexion, and some of whom were
white (in colour), and whose arms were shining with the discus, mace,
lotus and conch held (by them), and of whom Nanda and Sunanda were
prominent.
21. He was being worshipped by many two-handed persons in the
garb of cowherds, of whom SrTdama was the chief. They bent down (to
bow) with devotion. He was adored by Garuda, and by eight supernatu­
ral powers who bowed down to him.
22. Assuming personal forms, he was served by Quiescence, Mercy,
Magnificence (Nourishment?), Contentment, Intelligence, Faith, Ac­
tion, Prosperity, and by Friendliness, Forbearance, Memory and Intellect
as well.
23. On seeing that marvellous, refulgent form, all his sense-
organs were captivated by the pleasing fragrance of his form. His sight
was obstructed due to the tears of joy; his hair stood on end out of love
for him and he was filled with pleasure.
24. Overwhelmed with love, Narada prostrated himself like a staff
before him; with his hands folded in reverence, he stood before him,
looking at his face.
25. Hari honoured him who was devoted to him exclusively, and
whom he desired to see, by respectfully welcoming him (lit. by enquir­
ing about his happy arrival).
26. The sage who came to himself by the taste of the nectar (in
the form) of the Lord’s speech, and who was extremely delighted by
his sight, praised him devoutly.
284 SkandaPurana

Narada said:
27. Be victorious, О SrTkrsna, Lord Narayana, the master of the
world, Vasudeva, who abide in all,1and are always dear to your exclu­
sive devotees.
28. Your very wonderful feet are worthy of being worshipped by
Radhika and Kamala. You are the highest beatitude, and the supreme
resort to those who aspire to it.
29. You are the eternal (element) of eternal souls; the soul, the
sentience of sentient beings; beyond the perishables and imperishables.
You are the Supreme Brahman, О Hari.
30. The extreme purity and supernatural power as is obtained by
highest devotion to you, is not achieved by men with other means
including penance.
31. Only the divine moonlight of your feet is capable of imme­
diately destroying the thick darkness that abides in the hearts of people
desirous of final liberation, О noble master.
32. О venerable Lord, the cause of all causes, you are proclaimed
as the only one who should be worshipped, propitiated and realized by
the Vedas.
33. The auspicious, blissful, bright refulgence that abides in each
and every pore (of your skin), is more brilliant than the light of a crore
of moons.
34. (You) the supreme attributcless person, always dwell in this
imperishable, attributcless, residence called Amrta, which is a mass
of lustre.
35. By the power of your propitiation your devotees become free
from Kala who strikes terror into the universe, and from the great fear
of Maya.
36. For a resort I have approached you who are the master of the
universe, and the soul abiding in all, the all-pervading Brahman, the
great imperishable Purusa.
37. О Lord of Devas, it behoves you to confer that favour whereby
my devotion unto your lotus-feet will always be firm.

Skanda said:
38. The Supreme God who was thus devoutly praised by the
celestial sage (Narada), spoke in nectarine words, delighting the sage.

1. This derivation from 'Jvas ‘to dwell’ is accepted by Puranas like Visnu and
Brahma-vcuvarta
Ш х. 18.1-11 285

CHAPTER EIGHTEEN

Incarnations of Vasudeva

The Lord said:


1. My audience (vision) that you got, О great sage, is due to your
being an ever-exclusive devotee of mine, absence of hypocrisy (in you),
and my will (to grant you the audience).
2. In you there is always (observance of) both non-violence and
celibacy, abidance by personal (religious) duties, quiescence, disaffec­
tion to worldly (objects of) enjoyment, and perception and knowledge
of the soul.
3. (You always have) association with saintly persons, (practice
of) Yoga with all its eight paits, absolute sense-control, subsistence on
food (prescribed) for sages, penance and freedom from all vices.
4. Absolute devotion exclusively to me, preceded by the knowl­
edge of my greatness, is in you. Hence you (can) see me here, О firm
observer of religious vows.
5. If there be ever other men who are endowed with these char­
acteristics, they also (can) see me in such a form—me who am dear to
devotees exclusively attached to me, О Brahmana.
6. О Brahmana, I, who am such (as described above) accompa­
nied by Radha and LaksmT always stay in this imperishable residence
along with my dependents.
7. I, who am of the form of Vasudeva, am the giver of the fruits
of all actions. By my immanence in all embodied beings, I always act
as an independent one.
8. In the great abode called Vaikuntha, l, a four-armed one, live
with (my consort) LaksmT and along with my attendants of whom Nanda
and Garuda are the chief ones.
9. On the earth, in the divine refulgent residence, Sveta-DvTpa,
I grant my audience five times a day, to the Sveta-muktas (i.e. liber­
ated souls of that Dvlpa).
10. With my personal forms called Aniruddha, Pradyumna and
Sahkarsana I carry out the creation, sustenance and destruction of in­
numerable crores of Brahmandas (Cosmoses).'
11. At the beginning of creation Brahma was created by me from1

1. These are the functions of the three Vyuhas.


286 SkcmdaPurmia

the lotus in my navel. He propitiated me with penance and sacrifices,


0 Narada.
12-20. Then being pleased with him, I granted the boons desired by
him: (saying) “O Brahman, you will get the necessary (competence)
for creation of subjects. By virtue of my boon all of them will abide
by your command. The eternal Vedas will manifest themselves in your
intelligence. You will have a correct knowledge of my own form. None
shall cross the bounds of morality and propriety laid down by you. You
alone will be the bcstower of boons to multitudes of Suras and Asuras
and noble-souled sages, who are desirous of obtaining boons, О Brah­
man. О Vidhi (Brahman), when, in a task which cannot be accomplished,
you get embarrassed or deluded, I shall manifest myself as soon as I
am remembered by you, and accomplish that task for you. While the
universe is being created by you, I shall assume the form of a boar*
and bring the earth which is submerged and lost in the great ocean, and
establish it in its own place after killing the Daitya Hiranyaksa proud
of hi& strength. When your day ends, I shall become a fish and shall
support (floating) like a boat, the earth along with its medicinal plants,
Manus and others, during the period of your night. When the sons of
Kasyapa (i.e. Devas and Asuras) will churn the ocean for (obtaining)
nectar, I, assuming the form of a tortoise, will bear on my back Mount
Mandara used as the churning rod. Assuming the form of a Man-Lion,
1 shall kill Hiranyakasipu, the son of Diti, the destroyer of sacrifices,
for accomplishing the task of Suras, О Vidhi.
21-23. There will be (born) Bali, the son of Virocana, a powerful
great Asura. He will dislodge Sakra from his kingdom. When the three
worlds are taken away (i.e. conquered) by him, and the husband of SacI
(Indra) is disappointed and downcast, I shall be the twelfth son of Aditi
from Kasyapa. Then, I shall give again the kingdom of heaven to Devcndra.
I shall re-establish the deities in their respective places, О Brahma.
And I shall make Bali an inhabitant of the nethermost subterranean
world.
24. Becoming (a son) named Kapila from Kardama and DevahutT,
I, endowed with indifference to the world, shall proclaim the Sankhya
philosophy that was lost (forgotten) during the course of time.1

1. The order of incarnations as given in the text is as follows: (I) Divine Boar,
(2) Fish, (3) Tortoise, (4) Man-Lion, (5) Vamana, (6) Kapila, (7) Datta, (6)
Vrsabha, (7) Bhargava Rama, (8) Dalarathi Rama, (9) Krsna, (10) Krsna Dvaipayana
(Vyasa), (11) Buddha, (12) Kalki.
n.ix. 18.25-38 287

25. Becoming (incarnating as) Datta, the son of AnasGya and Atri,
1 shall teach the science called AnvTksikT (i.e. Nyaya) to Prahlada and
to Yadu (Sahasrarjuna?), О Vidhi.
26. Incarnating (with the name) Vrsabha, the son of MerudevT and
Nabhi, I shall propagate the ancient Dharma called Paramahamsya1
(i.e. pertaining to Paramahamsas—the highest sect of recluses).
27. In Treta, I shall become Rama, a scion of Bhrgu family. I
shall annihilate Ksatriyas who have transgressed the limits (of moral­
ity etc.) and have taken to bad ways.
28-31. When the period of junction between Treta and Dvapara (i.e.
Treta coming to an end and Dvapara about to start) arrives, I shall
become Rama, son of Dasaratha and KauSalya. LaksmT, with the name
STta, will be the daughter of Janaka. I shall marry her after breaking
the big bow of Siva. I shall then kill in battle along with his brothers
the terrible king of Raksasas (Ravana), enemy of Devas and sages and
abductor of STta. Then great sages including ValmTki will sing vari­
ously of his (that is my) exploits, on hearing which there will be
destruction of sins.
32-33. When the junction of Dvapara and Kali comes to a close, for
the sake of annihilation of Asuras who become burden to the earth, and
for protecting righteous people, I, Krsna, called Vasudeva, will be born
of Vasudeva and DevakT in the city of Mathura. Similarly Saiikarsana
alias Balarama, Pradyumna and Aniruddha (i.e. all the Vyuhas of the
Paficaratras) will be born in the family of Yadu.
34. Radha will be the daughter of the cowherd Vrsabhanu and I
shall sport with her in Vrndavana, О Lotus-bom One (Brahma).
35. LaksmT will be born as the daughter of BhTsmaka by name
RukminT. After defeating kings in a battle, I shall marry her.
36. After killing Asuras, the enemies of Dharma and of kings who
were haunted by them, and by establishing Dharma, I shall make the
earth free from burden.
37. If the mind of a person is in any way devoted to me, I shall
take him to the supreme position of Brahman.
38. After establishing righteousness on the earth, and bringing
about the annihilation of Yadu’s race, I shall then vanish from the1

1. This Purana has a soft comer for Jainism. He equates Jaina ascetics with
the Brahmanical Paramahariisas, the highest order of Sannyasa.
288 SkandaPurcim

earth1, while Devas look on.


39. Krsna-Dvaipayana and others will extol variously the heroic
exploits of me as Krsna. They will be instant destroyers of sins.
40. After incarnating as Krsna-Dvaipayana, the son of ParaSara,
1 shall divide the Veda into different branches like a tree.
41. By becoming Buddha, I shall delude by the use of fallacious
reasoning and deceit the Asuras2 who adopting Vedic practices will
harass the three worlds.
42-43. When the Asuras killed by me (as) Krsna and by Arjuna in
the battles, will promote and establish Adharma (unrighteous prac­
tices) on the earth, I, sage Narayana, shall be born on the earth from
my devotee Dharmadeva in the land of Kosala, as a Brahmana-singer
of Saman hymns.
44. О Aja (Brahma), establishing the holy Dharma I shall be the
protector of sages who will be bom as men by the curse of Munis (other
sages) as well as Uddhava, О child.
45. At the end of Kali I shall incarnate as Kalki. Riding a divine
horse, 1 shall kill highly sinful people of Mleccha origin.
46. Whenever the Dharma promulgated in the Vedas is being
destroyed by Asuras, at that time my manifestation shall take place
for its protection.3
47. Therefore, completely giving up anxiety, create subjects as
before.”
After conferring these boons upon him 1 became invisible.
48. I did, do, shall do easily by means of my powers what all the
boons given to him imply.
49-50. О Brahmana, the vision of mine, who am the controller of
all embodied beings in this way, has become very difficult to obtain.
(It was possible for you) due to your single-minded devotion unto me.
О excellent sage, seek any boon desired by you from me. I am
highly pleased with you. My audience shall not be fruitless.

Skanda said:
51. On hearing the speech of the Lord, the excellent sage Narada,
1. Mbh, BhP testify to Krsna’s death and the cremation of his physical body.
By the time of this Purana, Krsna is too great to die as a human being. He
‘vanishes’ from this world.
2. The author’s prejudice against Buddhism is probably due to its challenging
position to Brahmanism at the time of this Purana.
3. Cf. BG IV.7
0.ix. 18.52-62 289

regarded himself as blessed, and addressed the Lord, О sage.

(Narada said:)
52. О Master, by your very vision all my desire is fulfilled. I
regard this (i.e. your audience) as extremely difficult to get for all
embodied beings.
53. Hence nothing except directly seeing you, your devotee and
this your residence (called) Amrta, is desired by me as worth obtain­
ing.
54. Compared with this, there is nothing else anywhere in this
Brahmanda that is difficult to be obtained, and this I can request of
you who are pleased with me here.
55. The happiness in the other world, which is obtained by per­
formance of Vedic rituals pertaining to Devas and ancestors, is also
perishable.
56. I do not wish that insignificant happiness to be greater than
you, О Lord. I beg only one boon desired by me from you who are the
most prominent among bestowers of boons.
57. May my intellect be always eager for singing the excellences
of you, as well as that of your devotees, and may it have ever-increas­
ing love and devotion unto you.

Skanda said:
58. Promising him ‘so be it' to what was requested by him, Krsna
gave him a great lute useful in singing and spoke to him again.

The Lord said:


59. О divine sage, go from this place to Vigala Badari (i.e.
Badarika$rama). There propitiate devoutly me, Narayana, the son of
Dharma.
60. You are a devotee exclusively attached to me. Your heart is
free from deceit. Hence I esteem you better that God Brahma, your
father.
61. О sage, devotees exclusively attached to me, know everything
about me, of my nature and form, and the extent of my greatness.
62. In their hearts I am the only object of thought and contempla­
tion, and they are so in mine. Their desired object is no other than 1,
and I too have none other but they.
290 Skanda Ригшха

63. Just as devoted, chaste wives bring good husbands under their
power by their virtuous qualities, in the same way my devotees bring
me under their power.
64. I follow them along with Sri, as if I am subservient to them.
Wherever they are, I am present there.
65. О divine sage, know the truth that to those who desire libera­
tion, I can be attained in this world only through association with
saintly persons, and by no other means.
66. Whenever men resort to me, they are immediately liberated
from bondage to Maya and the state of being a JTva (i.e. a soul subject
to Samsara).
67. With whatever feeling or inclination of mind a man seeks
refuge in me, he gets the happiness as desired by him, but he does not
revert to Samsara, as in the case of others.

Skanda said:
68. Thus addressed by the Lord, Narada who had obtained the
desired favour, bowed down to him and returned with his eyes full of
tears.
69. While singing with the lute, he saw the Sveta-Mukta (the
liberated soul from §veta-Dv!pa, his guide) going in front of him as
before, and he (Narada) followed him, О eminent Brahmana.
70. Immediately after arriving at Sveta-dvTpa, he bowed down to
them (all) and returned. Then Narada arrived quickly at Meru.
71. From Meru he proceeded to Mount Gandhamadana. From the
sky he quickly alighted at ViSala Badari (BadarikaSrama).

CHAPTER NINETEEN

Narada Meets Nara and Narayana

Skanda said:
1-4. Then he saw the two divine, ancient, excellent sages perform­
ing a great penance. They were established in their Atmans and were
great performers of religious observances. By their refulgence they
superseded the Sun who illuminates all the world. They were characterised
by Srivatsa and were worthy of worship. They had circular mass of
Шх. 19.5-14 291

matted hair. Their arms (palms?) were characterised by lotus. They


had discus-sign on (the soles of) their feet. Their chests were broad
(and well developed). They had long arms and wore white, fine, com­
pact silken garment. They had excellent faces with high foreheads,
excellent eyelashes and beautiful nose. They were endowed with aus­
picious characteristics, divine form with excessively brilliant lustre.
5. Approaching them with humility, he circumambulated them.
He devoutly prostrated himself before them (touching the ground). He
stood before them with palms folded in reverence.
6-7. Then, both of the sages, the abodes of penance, glory and lustre,
broke their silence at the end of the rituals perfomed in the first part
of the day. They worshipped (received) Narada by offering Padya and
Arghya in a quiet manner. They sat on their seats and Narada on one
of Ku£a grass.
8. When they were seated there, the place shone like an enclo­
sure of sacrifice illuminated by fires having huge flames after receiving
oblation of ghee.
9. Then Narayana addressed Narada who had taken rest, was rece­
ived with hospitality and respect and was seated comfortably there.

Sri Narayana said:


10. О Brahmana, was eternal Lord, the Supreme Soul, the great
cause (source) of both of us seen by you in the Brahmadhama (resi­
dence of Brahman) ?

Narada said:
11. Venerable Sir! It is through your favour that 1 saw the Su­
preme Lord Vasudeva staying in his imperishable residence.
12. Being sent by him to serve you both, I have come here only.
I shall always stay with you remaining exclusively devoted to him.

§rl Narayana said:


13. You are blessed; you are favoured (by God) that the Lord Himself
was seen by you. Neither a Deva not a sage has ever seen him, О
Brahmana.
14. Those devotees only who by exclusive devotion unto him have
attained imperishable equality with him, (can) see him who is the
cause of everything.
292 SkandaPurana

15. That the Supreme Person, the Lord of divine form* is very
difficult to be seen, is the purport of a true statement of mine, О
Narada.
16. None other than his devotee is more dear to him in this world.
Hence he manifested himself to you, О excellent Brahmana.
17. His person is enveloped by a mass of lustre. His mysterious
form transcends Gunas. Complete bliss constitutes his form. He is forever
pure and imperishable.
18. He does not have a form, complexion, age of the ordinary type
(or derived from Prakrti). Whatever he has is divine including his weapons.
He alone is the highest resort of devotees exclusively attached to him.
19. Devotion to Vasudeva is performed by persons who have re­
alized the one-ness of Atman and Brahman and who have desisted from
Gunas. He is endowed with such qualities.
20. Who is capable of describing the greatness of this Supreme
Soul, who is the master of incomprehensible, infinite powers, О great
sage?
21-22. He is the Soul of souls, imperishable Soul, unsoiled and pure
like the firmament, visible only to persons endowed with divine vision,
who is pure existence, the Purusa born of Vasudeva. He is endowed
with all auspicious qualities, attributeless, the master of all rulers. He,
the knower of Brahman, the master is knowable through superior know­
ledge. He should be propitiated.
23. He who pleases that Lord of divine form with penance solely
devoted to him, and pious devotion, is the most blessed.
24. Therefore, О divine sage, you also propitiate him with exclu­
sive pious devotion, and perform penance here for some time, О dear
one.
25. With your soul extremely purified with penance, you will (be
in a position to) know truly all the glory of the Lord, the great soul,
as will be described by me.
26. Know that penance is the means of attaining all objectives
(and) his heart, О sage. The Lord is not won over by a person who has
not performed extreme penance.

Skanda said:
27. Addressed thus by revered Nara-Narayana, he (Narada) was
pleased. Being desirous of performing penance, the highly intelligent
one spoke.
n.ix.20.1-10 293

CHAPTER TWENTY

The Duties of the Four Varnas

Narada said:
1. О Lord! Expound to me the Ekanta Dharma as approved by
you, whereby the Universal Soul, Vasudeva, gets always pleased.

Sri Ndrayana replied:


Z О Brahmana, you have asked very well. Certainly your intel­
lect is pure. I shall tell even a secret to you, a devotee who are attached
to me.
3. At the beginning of the Kalpa this Dharma was proclaimed by
me to Vivasvan. I shall communicate that very ancient Dharma to you,
О sage.
4. That is verily the Ekantika Dharma which is undivided devo­
tion exclusively to the Lord as it is to LaksmT and is accompanied by
the knowledge of one’s own Dharma and disaffection to objects of
worldly enjoyment.
5. Thereby the ruler of Goloka himself becomes extremely pleased,
and even the devotee has all his wishes fully accomplished.

Narada asked:
6. I have a desire to know separately the characteristics of Svadharma
(personal duties) from you who are the source of Sastras. It behoves you
to relate them to me.
7. You alone are the root (source of origin) of all Vedas, Agamas
and Sastras including the eternal Dharma, О good Lord.
8. You alone are the Lord Vasudeva incarnate, who is beyond the
perishable (objects). You, a store of mercy, stay here for the welfare
of all beings.
9. God Brahma and others who are other than you, are controlled
by their respective natural Gunas. They do not know Dharma and other
(related things) as they truly are. Hence narrate it (to me).

Skanda said:

10. Lord Narayana, the omniscient son of Dharma, who was thus
294 Skanda Purana

asked by the Divine sages (Narada), narrated to him in due order, the
personal Dharma etc.
Sri Narayana said:
11. The moral conduct is different for (different) Varnas (castes)
and stages of life. That is called Svadharma and is general as well as
special.
12. At first listen to the Dharma (duty) common to all men.1Non*
injury (Ahimsa) is proclaimed to be the first supreme duty.
13. (Obscure) Among one’s main moral inclinations what is called
absence of ill will even of the mental type, in a provocative situation,
towards any living being, is known as Ahimsa or non-injury.
14. Truth is that speech whereby no injury is caused to living
beings. Penance is characterised by the diminution (reduction in) of
the enjoyment (of objects) permitted by the scriptures.
15. Purification is of two types, external and internal. Non-taking
of what belongs to others either in his absence or by deceit (is non­
stealth).
16-21. Proper celibacy; restraint of the passions or desires, greed
and anger; gladly donating wealth to a suitable person; satisfaction
with what one gets through luck; total renunciation of injury at holy
places or in sacrifices and other religious acts or for obtaining the four
ends of human life either for one’s self or for others; avoidance of acts
which cause fall from one’s caste; restraint of (movement of) hands
and feet, stomach (i.e. eating), the organ of generation (sex) and speech;
avoidance of wine and meat and all vices; abstaining from adultery;
observance of the traditional good practices of one’s family; obser­
vance of fast along with the (prescribed ten restraints) on the eleventh
day of the dark and bright half of the month; proper observance of the
specific Vrata of the birthday of Hari; straightforwardness; service of
saints; taking food after its distribution (as per prescribed rules); acts
of devotion unto the Lord—These are duties common to all men.2
1. Cf. ahimsa sat\am asteyam saucam
indriyamgrahah /
evam samdsikam dharmam
cdturvarnye bravln manuh //
(Manu X.63)
2. There is a close similarity in the items included in Sadharana Dharmas
(duties common to all men) in ancient texts like Vi$nu Dharma Sutra, II. 16-17;
Apastamba Dh.S. 1.8.23-6; Mbh, Santi 60.7-8,297.24-25; Brahma P. 114.16-18. The
speciality of our Pancaratra text is the inclusion of the Ekada$f Vrata and ob­
servance of the birthday of Нал (e.g Gokula Astami).
Шх.20.22-33 295

22. Brahamanas, Ksatriyas, Vaigyas and ^udras—These are spoken


as the four Varnas (Castes). I shall now narrate the specific duties of
each to you, О sage.
23. The natural duties of a Brahmana are quiescence,1selfcontrol,
forgiveness, purity, faith in Vedas, devotion to the Lord, penance,
knowledge of Brahman and worldly knowledge.
24. The following are declared as the duties of Ksatriyas: Bravery
(i.e. performance of acts of bravery); courage; generosity; strength;
dignity; fitness to be a refuge; protection of cows, Brahmanas and
saints; performance of sacrifices.
25. The duties of a king are as follows: Protecting the subjects;
establishing Dharma on the earth; and administering punishment to
those who deserve it.
26. The duties of a Vaisya are: faith in the Vedas; doing acts of
charity; rendering service to saintly persons and Brahmanas; non-sat­
isfaction in acquisition of wealth; and assiduous efforts.
27. О excellent sages, the specific duty of a 3 udra as proclaimed
is: faithful (without any fraud or deceit) service of twice-born castes,
Devas and cows.
28. The means of livelihood prescribed for a Brahmana are: teaching,
performance of sacrifices, acceptance of a gift from a pure person. Out
of these, the last is laid down in case of adversity.
29-30. Four types of other means of livelihood are prescribed for
an excellent Brahmana who finds fault with performance of sacrifice
and teaching (as means of livchood). (They are) gleaning ears of corn,
constant mendicancy, settled householdership and proper agriculture. It
should be noted by excellent Brahmanas that herein the preceding one
(i.e. mode of livelihood) is more conducive to welfare than the suc­
ceeding one.
31. In case of an emergency12 a Bramana should maintain himself
by adopting the mode of livelihood of a VaiSya or that of a Ksatriya
but never the mode of a dog (Candala?).
32. A Ksatriya should earn his living by weapons (military pro­
fession) while protecting Dharma. In emergency he should follow the
means of livelihood of a Vaisya or should move about in the guise of
a Brahmana.
33. The means of living for a king is declared to be collection of

1. v v 23-27; cf. BG XVIII. 42-44.


2. For Apod Dharmas (i.e. duties in emergency) cf HD II.i, pp. 118-30.
296 SkandaPurana

taxes, except from Brahmanas, and from other sources, after keeping
contented all the subjects according to the exigencies of*time and
place.
34. Even in emergency, the service of a low person is totally
prohibited to Ksatriyas and Brahmanas, as that reduces one’s lustre.
35. In the case of a VaiSya the mode of livelihood is spoken (as
consisting of) agriculture, trade and commerce and tending of cows and
lending money on interest as the fourth, but in emergency he may
follow the $udra mode of livelihood.
36. A $udra should maintain himself on the money earned by service
rendered to twice-born castes. In emergency he should follow the mode
of livelihood of artisans etc.
37. When all of them become free after averting the emergency,
they should perform the expiation proper for them and again take up
their respective main vocations as means of livelihood.
38. (Persons belonging to) the four castes should associate them­
selves with saintly people and never with bad people. Association with
the good leads to liberation, while company with evil persons leads to
hell.
39. Those who, having subdued erotic passion, anger, taste for
flavours, pride, jealousy, hypocrisy, are the devotees of Visnu, are regarded
as saintly persons.
40. Those who are addicted to sexual pleasure in the company of
women, greedy after wealth, murderous, self-conceited through hyprocrisy
and who pose to be devotees, are bad people.
41. Having ascertained that by nature Asura type of prosperity is
(found) among bad people and the Deva type of affluence is (seen)
among the good, good and saintly persons should be resorted to and
served by those desirous of happiness.
42. The intellect (of a person) assumes a shape in accordance
with the kind of £astras (scriptures) and people he associates with.
Hence no association should be had with bad people (and heretic scriptures).
43. To persons who like to render service to saintly persons, any
type of superior affluence or excellent power or divine faculties are not
unobtainable through dint of their power.
44. Men who, though established in their Dharma, bear malice to
saintly persons, shall never attain a happy state or beatitude anywhere
by performing any act.
45. If devotees of Visnu who are devoted to the great worship (of
the god) bear hatred towards saintly persons, he (Visnii) will never be
Шх.20.46-57 297

propitious unto them.


46. In whatever species the haters of saintly people are bom after
death, they will be harassed with hunger and disease throughout their
life (up to death).
47. Merely by doing disrespect to good (saintly) people, there is
an instantaneous annihilation even of a mass of merit, (span of) life
and wealth of all people.
48. Therefore, service should be rendered to saintly persons by all
those who desire happiness. Sacred places should be resorted to. Brahmanas
and cows should be worshipped.
49. Those evil-minded people who denigrate holy places and idols
of gods, are bastards and will certainly have exinction of their family
line.
50. If one Brahmana is satisfied by receiving excellent meal, Daksina
and other things, the whole world is satisfied. Hari himself is pleased
with him.
51. If one Brahmana is harmed (it is as good as) the whole world
is hurt. Therefore, Brahmanas who are (this-worldly) forms of Visnu
shall be worshipped and honoured according to one’s capacity.1
52. Even all multitudes of Devas abide in the limbs (body) of
cows. All holy places exist in them.
53. When one cow is worshipped, all Devas get worshipped and
all sacred places get visited, О Narada.
54. If out of mistake or negligence, hurt or injury is caused to one
cow anywhere, all the deities are hurt and holy places are damaged.
55. Therefore, people born in the four Varnas should behave as per
injunctions and should abstain from what is prohibited.
56. Those who are beyond the pale of four Varnas, their conduct
conforming to their family requirements will be conducive to their
welfare if it is devoid of unrighteousness like stealing, violence etc.
57. Thus the duties of Varnas have been briefly proclaimed by
me, О sage. Now, I shall tell you the duties of the four stages of life
(Asramas).

1. This deification of Brahmanas is found in Vedic times also, e.g. ete vai
devah pratyakjam yad brahmanah (Taittinya Samhita 1.7.3.1). Also cf. Satapatha
XII.4.46; Tait. Aranyaka 11.15.
298 Skanda Puratia

CHAPTER TWENTYONE

Duties of Celibates (Students)

Sri Narayana said:


1. Brahmacari (celibate student), Grhastha (householder), Vanaprastha
(forest-hermit) and Yati (ascetic)—these four belong to the four periods
of religious life.
2 He who is born of a pure family, is consecrated by sacred
rites, and thus has attained the status of a twice-born is called a Brahmacari
(a celibate student). I shall narrate his duties from the beginning.
3. Residing in the house of a preceptor, a religious student should
study the Vedas.1 He should be pure, have subdued his senses, have
control over his anger, be disciplined and be a speaker of truth.
4. He should perform fire-worship in the morning and in the even­
ing. Remaining self-controlled, he should go out to beg alms. He should
perform the Sandhya prayer thrice a day and worship God Visnu ev­
eryday.
5. Remaining calm and collected, he should partake of a limited
quantity of food with the permission of the preceptor. He should always
be solely devoted to the service of the preceptor and be free from evil
habits.
6. He should observe silence at the time of bath, taking meals,
performing fire-worship and muttering prayers. He should not pare the
nails or cut his hair and should not over-cleanse his teeth.
7. He should not over-cleanse his garments and should be sincere
to his preceptor. When called, he should study (learn) and should bow
down at the beginning of and after the completion of the lesson.
8. He should not touch the untouchable, nor speak with persons
undeserved for verbal exchange. He should not eat prohibited articles
of food, and never drink forbidden drinks.
9. He should wear and possess a waistband, a deer-skin, a staff,
a Kamandalu (pot of gourd as a water-bottle), two white cloths, the
sacred thread and a rosary of beads (for muttering mantras).12
10. He should have Darbha grass in his hands and should have

1. The practice of residence with the teacher away from home was current
even in the Brahmana period (vide the story of NabhanedTstha in Aitareya Brahmana
22 9; also cf Satapatha Brahmana XI.5.4.1-17).
2. For principal duties of a celibate see HD II.i, pp. 30S ff.
Шх.21.11—Шх.22.1 299

matted hair without combing and other embellishments. He should


abstain from application of perfumed unguents to the body, garland of
flowers and ornaments.
11. He should not smear his body with oil, and should not use a
cosmetic ointment like collyrium. He should assiduously avoid contact
with, (abstain) from, liquor and meat.
12. A celibate should totally abstain from eying, touchinig, speaking,
playing with women and combing (the hair) of a woman.
13. With the exception of idols of gods, an intelligent student
should never touch even a woman-figure of wood or a woman’s picture
etc. Nor should he look at them intently.
14. He should never see the sexual intercourse of animals. He
should not listen to, nor should speak of, the good or bad qualities of
women.
15. Without touching (the person of) one’s own preceptor’s wife,
he should pay obeisance. Even with one’s mother, he should not sit in
a secret or solitary place.
16. Behaving thus, he should stay there (in preceptor’s house) till
the completion of education. Then, if free from worldly attachment,
the celibate student should be either a recluse (Sannyasin) or Naisthika
i.e. a perpetual religious student who continues with his preceptor,
vowing life-long abstinence and chastity. But it is proclaimed that in
the Kali Age, eligibility for adopting the vow of a Naisthika is pro­
hibited.
17. By the term Kali one should understand ‘not in the junction
of Kali-age’. He should be either a forest-hermit or, if he is not averse
to worldly life, he should be a householder.
18. Celibacy (Brahmacarya) is of four types: Prajapatya, Savitra,
Brahma and Naisthika. One should adopt any of these according to
one’s capacity.

CHAPTER TWENTYTWO

Duties of Householders
Sri Narayana said:
1. One who desires to become a householder should (first) pay
his tuition-fees according to his capacity. After paying the fees, and
with his (preceptor’s) permission, he should perform the Samavartana
300 Skanda Ригана

ceremony (for pupil’s homecoming after finishing the course of holy


study).
2. He should then marry with due formalities, a girl suitable to
his family, junior to him in age, healthy, devoid of masculine charac­
teristics (e.g. hair on the upper lip) and sinless.1
3. Then for the favour and delight of Lord Krsna, he should, accor­
ding to his eligibility and authority, perform daily worship (by performing
the Tarpana of Devas, Sages, Manes and living beings) as per injunc­
tions.
4. Everyday he should perform (holy) bath, twilight prayers, mutte­
ring of Mantras, Fire-worship (Нота), recitation of Vedas, worship of
Visnu, Tarpana (offering of libations of water to deceased parents etc.),
Vaisvadeva (offering to all deities by offering oblations to fire before
meals), reception of guests.
5. With wealth earned by righteous means one should perform
meritorious acts, according to one’s capacity. He should be unattached.
He should feed his dependents, and should not harass them.
6. With reference to a body or bodily limbs, one should not entertain
enmity like a brute against others (i.e. one should not inflict injury on
the body or limbs of others). One should give up the sense of T and
‘mine’ with reference to one’s body etc.
7. He should carefully form association with devotees of the Lord
and saintly persons. He should not keep company of lewd, vicious people
and greedy persons.
8. He should never look at the wives of others with sexual de­
sire. He should not approach his wife (carnally) during Sraddha, Parvan
days and observance of religious vows.
9. Even though a man has attained maturity in Sankhya (philoso­
phy) and Yogic (practice), he gets infatuated even with his daughter
in a lonely place.
10. Hence an intelligent person should not sit with his mother,
sister or daughter in privacy. No need to say about sitting in such
places with other young women (unrelated to him).
11. Of all inauspicious things, a widow is the most inauspicious
one. Her sight or touch destroys the merits of men.
12. If at the time of starting on a journey one sees a widow in
front, one should not go at that time. Otherwise death is certain.

I. Cf Rules for selecting a bride summarised in HD Il.i, pp 41-433.


n.ix.22.13-27 301

13. The blessings of widowed women are similar to the hissing


of black seipents. A householder should be afraid of them as of ogresses.
14. One should avoid from a distance liquor, meat, intoxicants
(narcotics), gambling etc. One should not entertain malice against
living beings, even by speech anywhere.
15. Everyday one should listen to the stories and exploits of the
incarnations of Hari. A believer should perform all acts for the sake
of Vasudeva.
16. One should undertake some self-imposed religious observances
in the month of Karttika, Magha, Vai$akha, the period of four months
from Asadha to Karttika and intercalated thirteenth month (called
‘adhika\ extra, additional month).
17. A householder should make religious gifts according to his
capacity, to a virtuous recipient in a sacred place, at an auspicious
time, as per injunctions. He should be merciful to all beings.
18. О sinless one, I shall now mention to you sacred lands and
places, auspicious times, meritorious worthy recipients which specially
enhance the merit (of the act).
19. On this earth that land which is presided over by me is the
best of all—the land where multitudes of great sages, great observers
of religious vows, perform penance.
20-25. The sanctity of places is due to the greatness of Lord Hari
and his devotees. They are as follows: Gangadvara, Mathura, Naimisaranya,
Kuruksetra, Ayodhya, Prayaga, Gayagiras, (Jagannatha) purl, Varanasi,
the sacred hermitage of Pulaha (Salagrama), the hermitage of Kapila
(Siddhapur in Gujarat), £riranga, Prabhasa, KuSasthal! (Dvaraka), the
holy Siddhapada, and the great lake Puskara, the Raivata mountain
(Mount Girnar), the place of sports of the Lord along with $ri, so also
the Govardhana mountain and the sacred forest Vrndavana, seven
Kulaparvatas (principal mountain ranges) including Mahendra, Malaya
and others, sacred great rivers famous in Puranas like BhagTrathT, highly
holy river Yamuna and SarasvatT, Godavari, Sarayu, Kaveri, Gomatl
and others and Nadas (great rivers like the Indus).
26. Wherever the worship of the idol of the Lord is performed
with great celebrations, and wherever devotees exclusively attached to
the Lord live (that place is sacred).
27. Where excellent Brahmanas commit no violence (in sacri­
fices and £raddha) and are established in their (routine of) duties, where
animals including deer move about without any fear (they are the holy
places).
302 Skcm daPurana

28. Wherever incarnations and stay of Hari have taken place, they
are specially the most sacred places on the earth.
29a. Even if an insignificant religious act is performed at these
places, it gives a thousand times more merit.
29b-32. 1 shall now narrate to you the times which enhance the
merit (of the act done), Listen to it, О Narada;
Two Ayanas (the period of Sun’s transition from one solstice to
another), Visuva ( the first point of Aries or Libra into which the Sun
enters at the vernal or autumnal equinox), the eclipse of the Sun and
the Moon, the days without a tithi, Vyafipata and all constellations
from Sravana, all the twelfth and eleventh days (Tithis), the first days
of Manvantaras and Yugas—All these are auspicious days. Also the
new-moon day, Vaidhrti, the full-moon days accompanied by the con­
stellation of the month and four Astaka days,1the day with the constellation
under which one is bom and days of celebration of the birth of Hari
(the eighth day in the dark half of Sravana).
33. Those times are auspicious when there take place the sacred
ceremonies and consecration of wife and children or times of getting
prosperity and of finding a person worthy of receiving gifts.
34. Worship of Devas, manes, Brahmanas and saintly persons
according to one’s capacity, sacred bath, religious gifts, muttering of
Mantras, yield infinite fruits.
35. Just as water supplied to roots reaches all branches, so the
Lord himself is the worthy recipient, giving satisfaction to all, О Narada.
36. Those Brahmanas are worthy of receiving (religious gifts) who
are satisfied by non-violence and Vedic learning, who hold in their
heart Visnu with proper religious devotion.
37. Know that the devotees of the Lord who are exclusively at­
tached to him and release those who are bound (in Samsara), are worthy
recipients and the Lord himself abides in them.
38. A rich person should get constructed massive temples of Visnu.
He should also provide means of subsistence for the unbroken conti­
nuity of the worship (of God).
39. He should prepare reservoirs of water and gardens for the sake
of Visnu. He should satisfy saints and Brahmanas with rich food of
good flavour.
40. He should according to his capacity perform Vaisnava type of

I . The 8th day in the dark half of M3rga€Trsa (acc. to Mvalayana Grhya Sutra
11.4.1) or of three months, viz. Pau$a, Magha and Phalguna is knovto as Адока.
II.ix.22.41-51 303

sacrifices involving no violence as per injunctions. He should celebrate


the birth-anniversary festivals of Visnu with greatly affluent prepara­
tions.
41. In the dark half of Bhadrapada, on Jfsaytf-days, in holy places
and on the parvan days, one should perform the Sraddha of one’s par­
ents and of their relatives as per one’s capacity.
42. In ritualistic acts pertaining to Devas and to the manes, one
should worship the devotees of the Lord and Brahmanas who are well-
established in their specific religious duties and should feed them as
if one was feeding the Lord.
43. In rituals pertaining to Devas two Bramanas and in ritualistic
acts about Pitrs (e.g. Sraddha) three Brahmanas should be fed as per
prescribed procedure, or one should feed only one (per Daiva and Pitr
rituals), but one should not enlarge (the number of Brahmanas) during
Sraddha.
44. It is definite that Gastric injunctions do not demand enlarge­
ment of place, time, provisions, worthy recipients, utensils of worship
etc.
45. A man should never serve non-vegetarian diet anywhere in a
Sraddha nor he should eat it.1 The ancestors are highly pleased (by
partaking) food suitable to sages and with milk and ghee.
46. All the ancestors who are extremely merciful are satisfied by
non-injury to all beings through thoughts, words and physical acts.
47. Therefore, a man who is devoted to Vasudeva should not serve
meat in Sraddha anywhere, either out of evil company or out of igno­
rance of the meaning of the scripture.
48. He should observe vows and perform rites pertaining to Visnu,
along with restraints including celibacy. He should be devoted to him
(Visnu) and should do no other work on that day.
49. One should shun auspicious rites during the defilement caused
by child-birth or death of one’s relatives as well as at the time of the
solar and lunar eclipses, as prescribed in the scriptures.
50. In disputes and even in taking decision, in transaction of business,
non-householders, including renouncers and widows are not to be em­
ployed.
51. Where such persons are present no work can be successful. It

1. Other old Purines and Smrtis prescribe the periods of time for which Pitfs
are gratified by flesh of certain animals (vide Yajnavalkya 1.258-261). For other
references vide HD IV, p 423. SkP being a late Purina strongly disapproves of
non-vegetarian food in Sraddha.
30* SkandaPurdna

will lead to destruction. This is the decision, О excellent Brahmana.


52. These are the duties of householders narrated in brief by me.
After performing these, people will enjoy imperishable happiness as
desired by them.
53. Householders of twice-born castes are declared as fourfold
according to the means of livelihood and known by those various names
(of their ways of livelihood), such as maintaining themselves by pick­
ing up grains when corn is taken to the thrashing floor.
54. I shall now proclaim to you the duties of women abiding by
which women will get their desired happiness, О excellent one among
the virtuous ones.
55. By women whose husbands are alive, their own husband should
always be served as a god, and is to be obeyed even if he be old,
diseased or indigent.
56. His relatives also should be obeyed by serving them as is due
to them Utensils in the house should be kept clean and bright.
57. Everyday the house should be kept clean by sweeping, sprin­
kling of water etc. What is true yet agreeable, should be spoken and
they should always remain in a pure state.
58. Fickleness, overgreediness, anger, stealing, violence and as­
sociation with the irreligious—all these should be avoided both by women
as well as by men.
59. In religious rituals they should always be exclusively devoted
to them. Giving up arrogance and subduing sense-organs, they should
live with modesty.
60. Worship to the Lord of Rama should be performed by those
women who are established in the virtuous duty of exclusive devotion
to the husband. They should never (try to) be independent and self-
willed.
61. A widow should always serve Visnu, regarding him to be her
husband. She should never listen to, nor speak about, sexual matters.1
62. If there is no emergency, she should never touch a man unless
he is a very close relative. She should never look at a man with carnal
intention.
63. A widow does not get spoilt by the touch of her male child
or of an old man, or by speaking with them in unavoidable situations.

1. For duties of widows cf HD II.i, pp.583-87. The extracts from Smftis and
other works show that the position of Hindu widows was unenviable till recent
times.
H.ix.22.64-74 306

64. She should not enter into inordinate controversy in matters


pertaining to practical life. In essential matters she may speak with
them (in open places).
65. She should never intently see the sexual union even of ani­
mals. She should give up all objects of pleasure and should be moderate
in taking meal once a day.
66. She should not put on fine cloth woven with metal (threads
like those of gold or silver) and should not wear ornaments. She should
never sleep at day time or on bedsteads, except in emergency.
67. She should never eat betel-leaves, smear the body with oil or
unguents and use collyrium. She should always be afraid of associa­
tion with men like that with a black serpent.
68. With the exception of Goddess LaksmI only there is no woman
who is not subject to infatuation after seeing a man.
69. Hence a woman, established in religious duties and desirous
of one’s beatitude, should not look at a male form or touch him in­
tently.
70. She should perform religious observance, like Krcchra, Candrayana
and others regularly. She should be always engaged in observing re­
straints.
71. A young woi..an should not stay in a solitary place even with
father, sons etc. or with a young man. She should absolutely dissociate
herself from bad company.
72. A woman whether a widow or one with fier husband alive,
should never conceal her period of menstruation. For three nights (dur­
ing this period) she should not touch a human being and other (objects
etc.).
73. On the first day ot menstruation, she is called (i.e. is equated
with) a Candala woman, on the second day, a Brahmana-killer, on the
third day, a washer-women. On the fourth day, she becomes purified.
74. Thus the duties of women have been briefly narrated to you.
Those women who abide by them will attain great happiness here and
hereafter.
306 Shanda Purana

CHAPTER TWENTYTHREE

Duties of Forest-Hermits and Recluses

Sri Narayana said:


1. О sage, I shall now narrate to you the religious restraints to
be observed by forest-hermits. The third part of life is known as the
third A$rama.
2. One should enter a forest (forest-hermit’s life) with one’s wife,
if she is agreeable in serving one’s self, is averse to objects of enjoy­
ment, and likes to perform penance.
3. Otherwise, after ordering his sons and others for her mainte­
nance and protection,1he, being free from worldly attachment, should
enter the forest alone.
4. Interested in performing penance and remaining vigilant, he
should stay there fearlessly. He should construct a cottage for (sacri­
ficial) fire, but should stay outside.
5. Having subdued his anger and sense-organs, he should perform
the Pahcagni-Sadhana (with four fires on four sides around him and the
fifth fire, the sun, above) in Summer, stay in water during winter, and
remain in showers in rainy season.12
6. He should wear garments made of grass or leaves or bark-
garment or hide of a deer. He should eat corn prescribed for sages (i.e.
which grows up naturally without tilling the soil) or bulbous roots or
fruits grown in the forest.
7. He should eat food which is boiled on fire or heated in the sun,
or not boiled at all. If that is not available, (he should eat it) powered
in mortar of his teeth.3
8. One should personally bring food everyday at the proper time.
At (emergent) times, he may accept food brought by others, but never
at any other time.
9. When there is no emergency (i.e. normally), he should not
accept corn from tilled soil. He should perform the religious worship
of (sacrificial) fire with wild corn (grown naturally in a forest).
10. He should retain his waterpot of gourd, the (religious) staff
and the articles required for maintenance of sacrificial fire. He should

1. See Manu VI.3; Yajhavalkya III.45.


2. Cf. Manu VI.23-34, Yajhavalkya Ш.52.
3. Manu VI 16-17
ll.ix.23.11-21 307

bear (grow) without cutting or trimming hair on the head and the body,
mustaches, beard and nails and unscrubbed teeth.1
11. He should bathe without massaging his limbs (for cleansing),
and should sleep on bare ground. He should perform penance according
to the exigencies of place, time, his power and state of health.
12. Forest-hermits are spoken of as belonging to four classes, viz.
Phenapa, Audumbara, Valakhilya and Vaikhanasa.12
13. One should according to one’s (physical) capacity stay in the
forest (i.e. continue to be a forest-hermit) for twelve, eight, four, two
or one year, and then take to the stage of Samnyasa (recluse).
14. If one has intense Vairagya (aversion against objects of worldly
pleasures), the (adoption of) Samnyasa is beneficial. Otherwise a Brahmana
should stay in the forest (i.e. continue the stage of forest-hermit) throughout
(the rest of) his life.
15. After renunciation as per injunctions, one who has (entered
and) established oneself in the fourth ASrama (stage of life), he should
wear a small piece (strip) of cloth to cover the privities, and a patched
garment.
16. He should possess a (religious) staff, a waterpot of gourd and
a piece of cloth for straining water.3
17. A recluse should not beg alms in the house of the same person
everyday. He should never be longing for flavourous food. He should
take food once (per day) and that too limited (in quantity).
18. A mendicant should generally accept alms from a person who
is a forest-hermit. His (mendicant’s) mind gets purified by the ex­
tremely pure food of the forest-hermit.
19. Even if he has smelt meat and wine, he should perform the
expiatory observance called paraka. He should get purified by observ­
ing purificatory rites. He should not even touch Sudras and other (defiled)
persons.
20. He should always perform the worship of Visnu and eat what
has been offered to Visnu (i.e. offer that food first to Visnu before
eating it). He should mutter the twelve-syllabled (от namo bhagavate
vasudevaya) or eight-syllabled (от narayanaya namah) Mantra of Visnu.
21. He should not utter falsehood. He should not be a story-teller

1. Manu VI.6.
2. See Vaikhanasa VIII.7 and Brhatpara&ara Ch XI, p. 290. The Puranic author
seems to have borrowed from both.
3. Cf Manu VI.43-44; also Mitak$ara on Yajhavalkya III.58.
308 Skanda Ригала

for his livelihood. He should not be addicted to false (heretic) Sastras


or scriptures, nor should he follow a vocation for maintaining himself.
22. He should study true (non-heretic) scriptures which expound
bondage and liberation. He should build a hut or a convent. He should
give up the sense of T and 4my* (personal pride and craving for pos­
session).
23. Except for the period of four months of rainy season (Caturmasya),
he should not stay at one place except under duress or in emergency.
He should realize by knowledge, the real form of his soul and that of
Hari.
24. A recluse (Yati) should never entertain desire, anger, fear,
enmity and avoid storage of wealth, grains of corn etc. He should prac­
tise moral restraints and observances.
25. A recluse though endowed with deep knowledge and intense
aversion to objects of worldly enjoyment becomes fallen by contacts
with a woman, wealth, ornaments, garments.
26. A renunciator (Sariinyasin) should give up (enjoyment of) flowers,
sandal, oil and other fragrant materials; otherwise he will entertain the
(mis-)conception of the identity of the body with the soul.
27. The extent to which one takes food to that extent lust for
women will take possession of him. Hence limited, tasteless meal is
beneficial to a renunciator.
28. Vulgar speech should not be heard by one who is desirous of
attaining liberation. By hearing it liking for listening to the stories of
Visnu instantaneously disappears.
29. A renunciator should not see or touch the painting of a woman.
Many ascetics have fallen by merely the sight of a woman’s form.
30. According to difference in detachment Sannyasins are classi­
fied as Kutlcaka, Bahuda, Hamsa and Paramahamsa.1*V I.
31. Those who wear ochre-coloured garments and those who are
future sages should perform work for me, including cooking etc., though

1. Kuficakas live in their own house or in a hut built by their sons, and beg
alms at the house of their sons or relatives.
Bahiidas have three staffs, a water-jar, ochre-coloured garments and beg alms
at seven houses
Hamsas stay not more than one night in a village, five nights in a town for alms
or subsist on cow's urine or dung or perform Candrayana penance.
Paramahamsas slay under a tree or in a burning-ground. They either wear a
garment or are naked. They bear (with equanimity) pairs like pleasure-pain. They
treat all alike. Theirs is the highest stage of Sannyasa. (Vide Vaikhanasa Sutra
VIII. 9)
Шх.23.32-43 309

they may be in the fourth stage (i.e. Sannyasa).


32. The religious duty of the devotees of Sri Vasudeva endowed
with intense aversion to objects of worldly pleasure is proclaimed as
his (i.e. Vasudeva’s) service, day and night.
33. Not a single moment of those endowed with profound knowl­
edge, both spiritual and secular, is vain (wasted) without being engaged
in some form of devotion consisiting of nine types.
34. The devotees of Visnu should straightaway abandon a person
who, though endowed with all good qualities, is averse to the Lord,
even if that person happens to be a relative.
35. People who are the followers of Krsna should eat everyday the
food which is offered to Hari, is sprinkled with the water with which
his feet are washed, and mixed with leaves of TulasI plant.
36. Contact with women or those who are addicted to women,
should be totally avoided by persons meditating on Visnu. Otherwise
they will be meditating on them (i.e. women).
37. There is definitely no other man, except the venerable Lord
Vasudeva, who is not infatuated in looking at a woman.
38. A renunciator (i.e. a recluse) should never stay at a place by
occupying which one frequently hears the speech and gets the sight of
women. If he stays there, he falls from his religious duty.
39. Desire, greed, taste for flavours, affection, pride, anger—these
six defects should be avoided with special efforts, as they lead to
Samsara.
40. If there be failure in observing any of the religious duties
proclaimed here, it should be expiated to the best of one’s capacity
as per religious injunctions.
41. Thus the religious duties of four Varmis and Asramas as well
as those of Vaisnavas have been briefly proclaimed by me, О Narada.
42. A religious student (Brahmacarin) and a Sannyasin who are
established in their (particular) religious duties go to Brahmaloka. Forest-
hermits go to the world of Sages and householders to Svarga (heaven).
43. All those persons who with devotion follow the duties pertain­
ing to Visnu, attain to the region of Visnu after death.
310 SkandaP urdm

CHAPTER TWENTYFOUR

The Nature of Knowledge'

Sri Nardyana said:


1. Now I shall relate to you the nature of knowledge as deter­
mined by Samkhya, whereby Ksetra and others are known. That knowledge
is being explained.
2. Vasudeva is the Supreme Brahman in the great imperishable
abode. At the beginning he was only one without a second and attributeless,
with a divine (or refulgent) body.
3. Just as night disappears in the light of the sun, so the Pri­
mordial Nature along with its evolutes and Time became invisible in
his imperishable light.
4. When the desire to create cosmoses or universes occurred to
him, then that great Maya along with Time manifested herself at the
beginning.
5. Taking that power of Time, Vasudeva with a desire to create,
saw her with his Aksara (imperishable) Self. Then she got agitated.
6. From her (Mahamaya) crorcs of Pradhanas (or Prakrtis) and
Purusas were born. Due to the will of the Lord those Purusas are united
with Pradhanas (or Prakrtis).
7. In them Purusas deposited foetuses. From them were born in­
numerable Brahmandas (Cosmic Eggs). Out of them, one is described.
8. From the golden semen of the Purusa, at first (the principle
called) Mahat was born (evolved). From it (i.e. Mahat) was evolved
Ahamkdra (i.e. Cosmic Ego). From it (i.e. Cosmic Ego)were evolved
the three Gunas—Sattva etc.
9. From (Guna) Tamas five Tamdtras (i.e. subtle elements) and
gross elements were evolved. From (Guna) Rajas were evolved ten
organs (of sense and action), the great (principle of) Life along with
Buddhi (intelligence).
10. From (Guna) Sattva are born the deities presiding over the
organs (of sense and action ) and also Manas (mind). Ordinarily what
are designated as Tattva (principles) are called (here) Devas.1

1. This chapter gives a combination of the theistic Sankhya theory of evolution


of the universe as well as the Puranic concept of Visnu creating Brahma for the
same.
H.ix.24.11-23 311

11. Impelled by Vasudeva, they gave birth to (i.e. created) a divine


body called Virat, by contributing their individual parts. That (Virat)
was the resort of the movable and immovable.
12. That Vairaja-Purusa slept on the waters created by him. Hence
he is proclaimed as Narayana by Vedas and such other (scriptural texts).
13. From the lotus (grown out) of his navel was born Brahma,
characterised by Rajoguna. Visnu of Sattva character was born from
the lotus of his heart. And Нага characterised by Tamas was born from
his forehead.
14. From these very places three §aktis were born. Out of them
Durga was characterised by Tamas, Savitrl by Rajas, 6rl is characterised
by Sattva Guna. All of them are adorned with garments and ornaments.
15. By the order of Vairaja, they betook themselves to Brahma
and others. Durga resorted to Rudra, Savitrl to Brahma and the last
(SrT) to Visnu.
16. Thousands of Saktis including Candika were (bom) from a part
of Durga; Saktis of whom Trayl was prominent were born of part of
Savitrl. Saktis of which Dussaha was the chief one were born from a
part of Sri, О sage.
17. He who was Brahma born of the navel-lotus of Vairaja and
was staying in the lotus in that Ekarnava did (could) not see (know)
anything.
18. Not having acquired the knowledge of creation, he did not
know himself. Meditating ‘who am Г, ‘whence have I come?’, he hap­
pened to see the Lotus which was his resort.
19. A period of hundred years elapsed while he entered the stalk
of the Lotus, and went downwards to discover the root (of the lotus),
but he could not get at the end of it.
20. Coming up again and feeling exhausted, he sat down. The
Lord in his invisible form spoke to him, “Perform penance; perform
penance.”
21. Having heard it and not being able to see the speaker any­
where, he performed penance for a period of one thousand divine years,
as advised by the preceptor.
22. To him who was performing penance in the Lotus and was of
purified soul, Acyuta showed his place of residence (called) Vaikuntha
while he was in profound meditation.
23. (Obscure) Where there are the three Gunas, Rajas etc. evolved
out of Pradhana, there exists not the smallest, which has no fear from
Kala (Time, Death) and Maya.
312 Skanda Ригсиш

24. In that refulgent light brilliant like the simultaneous rising of ten
thousand suns, there he saw Vasudeva of beautiful, lustrous, dark form.
25. That Supreme Ruler had four arms holding (in each) an iron
mace, a lotus, a conch and a discus. He wore a yellow garment and
was adorned with a big crown set with jewels (and other ornaments).
26. He was resorted to by four-armed attendants like Nanda, Tarksya
(Garuda) and others, by eight super-natural powers (like Anima etc.)
and by six types of good luck with their palms folded in reverence.
27. Bowing down to the great Lord who sat along with Sri on the
throne, God Brahma, delighted in mind, stood before him with folded
palms.
28. The Lord spoke to him: “O Brahman, I am pleased with you
due to your penance. As you are dear to me, ask for any boon desired
by you, from me.”
29. Addressed by him thus, Brahma knowing him to be his direc­
tor to perform penance, entreated him (to grant) the boon desired by
him regarding the creation of the universe.
30. “Obeisance to you, О Lord! Give me the power to create. Do
also to me such favour as will not bind me in that (act of creation).”
31. Then the Lord said: “Your desire will be fulfilled. Create
subjects by conceiving through meditation your identity with me, Vairaja.
If any task is not possible for you to accomplish, I should be remem­
bered. I am the donor of desired objects.”
32. After saying Visnu vanished. Brahma, by meditating on his
identity with Vairaja, saw personally all the regions (or subjects) which
were merged formerly.
33. Having secured the creative power, Brahma set his mind on
creation. In the meanwhile, Aditya (Sun-god) full of the lustre of Brahman,
manifested himself.
34. Having established him at the centre of Brahmanda (universe),
he created by his mind which was extremely pure due to penance and
devotion, the four primeval sages, the four Sanas (viz. Sanaka, Sanandana,
Sanatkumara, Sanatana).
35. He ordered them, “Create subjects”. Those who were promi­
nent perpetual celibate (sages), did not accept his order. The creator
of the universe got angry with them.
36. From the forehead of angry Brahma was born Rudra full of the
Guna called Tamas. Controlling his anger, he mentally created Prajapatis
(presiders over the subjects).
37. (They were as follow:) Marlci, Atri, Pulaha, Pulastya, Bhrgu,
Il.ix.24.38-52 313

Kratu, Vasitstha, Kardama, Daksa and Angiras.


38. He created Dharma from his heart, Adharma from (his) back,
sexual desire (Kama) from (his) mind, Speech from mouth and Anger
from his eyebrow.
39. Then from his four faces (mouths) he created the feet of Dharma,
viz. Purity, Penance, Compassion and Truth.
40. He created Rgveda from his eastern face, Yajurveda from the
southern face, Samaveda from the western and Atharvan from the northern
face.
41. From his mouth he created Itihasa, Puranas, sacrifices, a hundred
Brahmanas, (gods such as) Vasus, Adityas, Maruts, ViSvedevas, and
Sadhyas.
42. He created a hundred Ksatriyas from his arms, a hundred Valyas
from his thighs and a hundred Sudras from his feet—all along with their
professions and modes of livelihood.
43. He created the (stage of life called) Brahmacarya (celibate-
studentship) from his heart, householdership from his loins (genital
organ?), forest-hermitship from his chest and Sannyasa from his head.
44. He created a clan called Pitrs (manes) from his chest, Asuras
from his buttocks, the god of death, Nirrti and hells from his anus.
45-46. God Brahma who thus identified his soul with Narayana
created from the limbs of the body the following: Gandharvas, Caranas,
Siddhas, serpents, Yaksas, Raksasas, mountains, clouds, lightnings,
seas, rivers, trees, beasts (animals), birds and all movables and im­
movables.
47. When he was not much pleased with this creation, he medi­
tated on Hari and created with penance, learning and concentration,
sages, Svayambhuva and other Manus, and human beings.
48. Then being satisfied, he created for their residence Svarloka
(heaven), Bhuvarloka (the world above the earth) and Bhurloka (earth).
49. God Brahma established them in places that they deserved by
their Karmas in the previous Kalpa, and assigned to them their particu­
lar vocations.
50. He assigned nectar (Amrta) to Devas, food and (medicinal)
herbs to men and sages, wine and meat to Yaksas, Raksasas, Asuras,
tigers, serpents and others. For cows, bulls and deer he provided (grains
of corn such as) barley etc.
51. He fixed Havya (oblations in the fire) as the livehood for all
Devas, and assigned Kavya to all embodied and non-embodied manes.
52. To the Saktis born of Goddess Durga, (he allotted) wine, meat
314 SkandaPuratia

etc. offered by Daityas, Raksasas, Pisacas and others who eagerly engaged
in propitiating them.
53. Similarly to the Saktis created from Savitri, (he allotted) eatables
fit for sages, such as food and herbs offered in sacrifices by sages, the
propitiators of those Saktis.
54. To Saktis born of Sri, (he fixed) Payasa (rice boiled in milk),
ghee, radish etc. offered by Devas, Asuras and human beings who are
engaged in propitiating them.
55-56. Then the Lord of Prajapatis addressed all his subjects:
“Devas and Pitrs are to be worshipped by sacrifices consisting (of the
offerings) of Havya and Kavya. These (deities) will fufill all your
desired objectives. Those who will not worship them will surely go to
hell.”
57. In this way, the moral law was fixed by Brahma, entered into
by Narayana. Hence ritualistic acts pertaining to Devas and Pitrs should
always be performed as per injunctions.
58. Then Brahma appointed the heads of those particular castes
and categories as well as Manus for the protection of the bounds of
moral law of all.
59. О sage! It is in this way that this diverse creation takes place
in every Kalpa by Vairaja in the form of Brahma, by the will of Vasudeva.
60. Just as the knowledge, Vedas, Sastras and ritualistic rites were
in the previous Kalpa, in the next Kalpa similar were all Dharmas and
the persons authorized and functionaries.1
61. He who is called Visnu is also of the nature of (possessed by)
Vairaja-Purusa. He observes all the boundaries and sustains (by) nour­
ishing all the worlds.
62. When the limits (of moral behaviour etc.) which are being
observed by Manu and others are broken (violated) by Asuras, who can
assume any form they like, then Vasudeva, being prayed to by God
Brahma and others, manifests himself on the earth.
63. It is not possible to count the number of the Lord’s incarna­
tions past and future even by experts in calculation.
64. The manifestation of the noble Lord is for the protection of
Saddharma (righteousness, moral order), Devas and saintly persons, for
killing those who trouble them and for the welfare of all beings.2

I Cf dhata vathapurvam akalpayat/


2. Cf BG IV.8
II.ix.24.65-74 315

65. That Vasudeva» the sovereign ruler of all, who is connected


with Prakrti, Purusa and all their products (evolutes) stays aloof from
them in his own domain.
66* Just as Fire-god, Varuna and others permeate this world with
their parts and stay happily in their respective regions, so does this
Lord, О sage.
67. Just as he was Existence, Consciousness and Bliss (incar­
nate), pure, one and attributeless before the creation of the universe,
so he is of equal, unsullied, pure, nature though he is connected (with
the universe).
68. Just as sky, though permeating the products or effects of the
(elements) wind, fire, water, earth, remains unsmeared by them, simi­
larly he remains so (untouched and pure).
69. He deserves to be propitiated and to be worshipped by all. He
is the controller. He is glorified as pervader (of the universe). Even in
the final dissolution (of the world) he becomes as before (without any
change).
70. He who is called here Vairaja Purusa, is designated as Su­
preme Ruler. He should be known as independent, omniscient and the
controller of Maya, О Narada.
71. Brahma, Visnu and Siva, the three who are endowed with Gunas
like Rajas etc. and whose activities are in consonance with their Gunas
are nothing but forms of that (Lord).
72. Devas, Asuras, human beings who are born of Brahma are
designated as Jlvas. They possess little knowledge and are dependent
on others.
73. The bodies of living beings and Isvarsfs are named Ksetra.
They are constituted of the principles like Mahat and others. The knower
of these (bodies) is called Ksetrajha.
74. The knowledge of Ksetras (physical bodies), Ksetrajnas (knowers
of the Ksetra), Pradhana (Prakrti), Purusa, Maya, Kala (the power of
destruction) and the imperishable Supreme Soul with all their differ­
entiated characteristics is called the (real) knowledge.1

I. Cf BG XIII.2, 3.
316 SkandaPurana

CHAPTER TWENTYFIVE

Vairagya and Bhakti

Sri Narayana said:


1. О excellent sage, I shall now describe to you the character­
istics of Vairagya. It is complete disinterest in all perishable objects.
2. Whatever forms there are, right from Maya-Purusa, all of them
are destroyed by the destructive power (Kala Sakti) of the Lord, as they
are subject to his control.
3. The unreality of created objects and the reality of souls have
been determined by knowledgeable persons through direct perception,
inference and scriptural authority.
4. Kala (Death, god of destruction) moves in the form of Nitya
(daily), Naimittika (periodical), Prakrtika (of Prakrti, Primordial Na­
ture) and Atyantika (final or absolute) Pralayas1 (destruction).
5. These bodies of souls which are subject to change and in which
the stages of childhood, youth and old age are seen in that order, al­
ways go on decaying.12
6. The process of decay is not noticed as that of the flame of a
lamp, or the growth and development of a fruit at every step on the
tree, is not seen.
7. In its final stage, great grief is observed. In the stages of
wakefulness and others (such as dream, sleep), there is frequent recur­
rence of grief.
8. Embodied beings suffer terrible misery and pain proceeding
from bodily and mental causes and from elements (and other beings)
and caused by divine, planetary and supernatural factors.
9. As a result of it, people lament like: “Alas! My son died; my
wife is dying; a tiger ate up my father; my daughter-in-law was bitten
by a snake.
10-14. Alas! all my belongings are burnt down in the great fire of
my mansion. How can I maintain my family as God Indra did not
shower rains?

1. Though these are the tour Pralayas (destructions of the world) as described
in other Puranas, the concepts of Nitya and Atyantika Pralayas are a bit different
here.
2. VV 5- 18a describe the Nitya-pralaya. V 13 mentions abduction of wife and
sister by Mlecchas.
ILix.25.15-24 317

My farm was rich with crops, but Alas, it is blighted by the inten­
sity of winter! My cows are taken away by robbers! Everything in my
possession (property) is plundered!
I am severely punished by the king! I am severely beaten by my
enemy! What should I do? Whom can I tell that my mother was adul­
terous?
Alas, the enemy abducted my wife today! I shall drink poison. Alas,
my sister is carried away (forcibly) by Mlecchas! Alas, my enemy, the
penetrator of my weak points and secrets, has arrived!
1 am dying of the excruciating pain of fever. Alas, these are the
messengers of Yama, the god of Death!”
Everywhere people are seen lamenting like this.
15. Every moment undergoing birth and death of their bodily states,
in the course of time men suffer from pain originating from themselves
(i.e. as a result of their own Karmas).
16. The pain of death at the end of the pre-destined period (of
sufferings and life) is unparalleled. Even after death, extreme suffer­
ing—torture inflicted by the god of Death—is undergone.
17. Getting birth again and again in the species of beings such as
viviparous, germinating ones (plants etc.), sweat-bom, egg-born, ac­
cording to one's Karmas one dies with pain.
18a. Thus far the Nitya Pralaya (daily destruction) has been de­
scribed to you with minute observation. You should understand it.
18b. Now, О sage, I shall describe to you the Pralaya called Naimittika
(periodic).1
19. The Destruction that is occasioned by the Night of the Creator
of the universe (Brahma) is called the Naimittika (periodic) Dissolu­
tion or Destruction. It occurs on everyday (of God Brahma).
20. О sage, the day of the Creator of the universe consits of one
thousand Caturyugas (groups of four Yugas). His night is also of that
duration. Both together (the day and night of Brahma) are called Kalpa.
21. In each day of God Brahma, there are fourteen Manus, the
protectors of bounds of Dharma, О Brahmana.
22-24. The first Manu is Svayambhuva, then (the next Manu is )
Svarocisa. Next to him (consecutively) are Uttama, Tamasa, then Raivata
and Caksusa, Sraddhadeva (i.e. Vaivasvata), Savarni, Bhautya, Raucya,
then (Manu) called Brahma-Savarni, Rudra-Savarni, then (Manu) named
Meru-Savarni and the last is Daksa-Savarni2.
1. VV l8b-45 describe Naimittika Pralaya (caused by the night of God Brahma).
2 The list slightly differs from that in VaP and PE (p. 403).
318 Skanda Purnrui

25. The period of each Manu is seventy-one Yugas. Twelve thou­


sand years of Devas make one Yuga (= Mahayuga).
26. At the end of the fourteen Manvantaras, the evening of the
Creator of the universe sets in, О excellent sage.
27. At the end of the Day (of Brahma), Vairaja withdraws the
powers that sustain the world. Rudra whose soul is Vairaja, then de­
sires to destroy the world.
28. At first there is a terrific drought lasting for a hundred years.
Then all living beings of meagre strength on the earth perish entirely.
29-30. Intensely powerful rays of the Samvartaka Sun drink up
all liquid from the nether world. Having dried up quickly all water of
the lakes, rivers and seas on the earth, the Sun leads all peoples (or
regions) to destruction.
31. Then the earth, bereft of all moisture and with all movables
and immovables destroyed, becomes bald like the back of a tortoise,
extremely dry and shrivelled.
32. Then Rudra in the form of destructive fire emanates from the
mouth of Sesa, and it burns down the seven nether worlds, the earth,
Bhuvarloka and Svarloka (the heaven).
33. The Kalagni (‘the fire of world destruction’) which has burnt
down the worlds and is terrible with its spiral flames, returns after
devastating Maharloka.
34. Devas dwelling in the Bhuvar- and Svar-loka (the heaven),
who are deprived of their posts and powers, become extremely tor­
mented by the flames of that fire and proceed from Maharloka to Janaloka.
35. Sages, the followers of the path of Nivrtti (‘abstaining’ from
ritualistic acts—Karma) who attained state of Siddhas, go for the same
reason from the earth to the world of Sages (Rsiloka).
36. Then terrific clouds for destroying the world (called Samvartaka
clouds) rise up in the sky. They look like a crowd of elephants. They
are possessed of lightning, and thunder violently.
37. Some are smoke-coloured; some yellow-coloured. Some are
white like night-lotus. Some are red like liquid lac; some like the wing
of a blue jay.
38. Extinguishing the great fire they shower with heavy torrents
for a hundred years incessantly, day and night. Those thundering thick
clouds fill up the interior of the Brahmanda up to the Polar Star.
39. In that vast sheet of water of that general inundation, on a bed
of the (body of the) great Serpent, Lord Vairaja Purusa called Aniruddha
lies (sleeps).
U.ix.25.40-53 319

40-42. Those who have realized the identity of Brahman and Self,
and have brought under control the three Gunas and propitiate Vasudeva
by Nivrtti Dharma, make their residence in the four worlds of Mahar
etc. and stay there as they please, praising Vairaja.
43. Lord Narayana, meditating on the form of the Supreme Soul
called Vasudeva. lies absorbed in Yogic sleep.
44. At the end of (Brahma’s) night, all those beings residing in
his belly (during the Pralaya period) along with Brahma are produced
again as before, authorized for the same Karma as before.
45. In this way, the Pralaya called Naimittika (‘periodic’)
characterised by the destruction of the three worlds has been narrated
to you. Now I shall describe the Prakrta Pralaya (Destruction of
Prakrti or Primordial Nature)1.
46. What has been described (up till now) is a Kalpa. Three hundred
and sixty periods of that duration constitute the year of God Brahma.
47. Fifty of them (Brahma’s year) constitute a Parardha; two
such Parardhas constitute the life-span of Brahma. When the period
of time called Para (Brahma’s complete span of life) is completed,
there takes place a great annihilation.
48. After withdrawing his form called Viraj by the Rudra form
of destruction, Vairaja desires to go (i.e. revert) to his supreme attributeless
form.
49. At that time, there is a drought (a rain-less period) of a hun­
dred years as before (at the time of Nitya Pralaya). The fire of destruction
born of Sarikarsana (Sesa) completely burns down Brahmanda (the uni­
verse).
50. Then the extremely terrible clouds called Samvartaka pour
down torrents of water, (each) as big as a pestle, for a hundred years,
О sage.
51. Then by the will of Vasudeva, there is a complete destruction
of all the evolutes of Prakrti beginning with Mahat and ending with
Visesas (i.e. peculiar attributes distinguishing Dravyas).
52. The (elemental) Water at first ‘swallows’ up smell (Gandha)
which is a special quality of the (element) Earth. The Earth devoid of
(its special quality) smell, becomes dissolved.
53. The (elemental) Fire swallows Rasa (liquid form), a special
quality of Water, which thereby merges therein. The (elemental) Wind
1. VV 45-58 describe the Prakrta Pralaya i.e. destruction of Prakrti (the original
cause of the universe) itself. It takes place after the life-span of God BrahmS
terminates.
320 SkandaPurana

‘devours’ Rupa (colour), the special quality of Fire (Tejas) and it (the
elemental Fire) merges therein.
54. The (elemental) Akasa (Ether) then swallows up touch which
is a special quality of Wind. Wind then calms down (and ceases to
exist). Ether stands uncovered.
55. Bhutadi (the origin of Bhutas) swallows sound, the distinguishing
quality of Ether and Ether merges therein.
The Indriyas (i.e. organs of sense and action) become merged in
the Taijasa Ahamkara.
56. In the Sattvika type of Ahamkara, the deities and manas get
merged. That which is produced or evolved from a thing gets merged
in that, i.e. its source of origin.
57. The three types of Ahamkara (produced from the three Gunas
i.e. Sattva, Rajas and Tamas) are dissolved in the principle called
Mahat. That becomes merged in Pradhana which in turn is dissolved
in Purusa. It is then dissolved in the Mula Prakrti (Primordial Prakrti).
58. This Pralaya called Prakrtika is (thus) described. In this, by
the will of Hari, the masters of living beings become concealed in
Avyakta (i.e. the unmanifest primordial principle from which all the
phenomena of the material world are developed).
59. When Maya, Purusa and Kala get merged in the imperishable
refulgence by the Lord’s will, then the Lord alone exists (without a
second). That Pralaya is called Atyantika (Final or Absolute), О Narada.1
60. All this is rendered like Asat (non-being) by the four kinds of
dissolutions by the power called Kala (Time) of the Lord. Non-attach­
ment or dislike of it is called Vairagya.
61. Knowing that all gods other than Vasudeva are subject to Kala
(Destruction) and Maya, and giving up liking (devotion) for them, conti­
nuous service with deep affection to him exclusively, is known as Bhakti
(devotion).
62-63. He who serves him respectfully with his mind exclusively
devoted to him, with the nine Bhdvas12 (‘types of devotions’), viz. lis­
tening (to the stories etc. of the Lord), glorifying (the Lord), remembering
(him), bowing to the Lord’s feet, worshipping (him), paying obeisance
(to him), servitude, (establishing) friendship with him and (complete)
self-surrender, is called a Bkakta (a devotee).
64. The Devotion that is accompanied with three chief duties

1. This is the concept of Atyantika Pralaya of this Purana.


2. These are the usual nine types of Bhakti.
Шх.25.65—ILix.26.2 321

(dharma) of oneself is called Ekantika Dharma. It is the Bhagavata


Dharma.1
65. This Ekantika Dharma is known by men by direct contact
with the Lord or with his devotees of this (above described) nature, but
never otherwise.
66. To men who are desirous of Moksa, there is no other means
like this, which brings the final beatitude to men, and is destructive
of all inauspicious and evil things.
67. For the accomplishment of Ekanta-dharma, he should devote
himself to Kriya Yoga. Thereby a man attains to the stage wherein one
is exempted from the consequences of the Karmas, О excellent sage.
68. This great doctrine (Tattva) kept as secret in Vedas and Puranas,
which destroys the flood of sins, has been described by me. It should
be attended to with concentration of mind, with pure intellect, and
with ardent faith, О great sage.
69. There is nothing more sanctifying than Vasudeva. Nothing is
more auspicious than Vasudeva. No deity is greater than Vasudeva.
There is nothing that is desired other than Vasudeva.
70. Take resort to Vasudeva whose name, if one unknowingly
utters at the time of death here, he, even if he be a Puskasa (an outcaste),
is relieved (saved) from the stream of Saihsara.

CHAPTER TWENTYSIX

Eligibility for Kriya-Yoga etc.

Skanda said:
1. Having heard the exposition of the Ekanta Dharma as done by
the Lord ( Narayana), Narada, who was greatly delighted in mind, asked
him again.

Narada said:
2. О Master, having heard the Ekantika Dharma as has been

1. VV 64ff. give the concept of Ekanta Dharma or Bhagavata Dharma. For the
accomplishment of this Dharma Krirya-yoga is essential.
322 SkandaPurana

excellently expounded by you, a great joy has been engendered in my


mind.
3. I wish to know the Kriya-Yoga (‘the employment of means’)
as approved by you, which is said to contribute to its accomplishment.

&ri Na rayana said:


4. Performance of worship as per injunctions is declared as the
Kriya-Yoga of Vasudeva. It is described in different ways in the Vedas
and the Tantras.
5. Due to differences in tastes or desires of devotees and to diversity
in the forms (i.e. icons) of Vasudeva, it (i.e. Kriya-Yoga) is vast and
varied.
6. Verily, there will be no end to it, if it were to be described
in its entirety. Hence, I shall narrate to you briefly (the Kriya-Yoga)
which enhances devotion.
7. Here (for this Kriya-Yoga) those who have received initiation
in Vaisnava faith, whether men or women of the four castes or of the
four stages of life (asramas)—all are eligible.1
8. Persons of the twice-born castes should worship with Man­
tras—Vedic, Tantrie and Puranic—and also with the Mula-Mantra. Women
who are initiated and pious £iidras (should do so) with Mula-Mantra.
The Mula-Mantra is six-syllabled and pertains to Srikrsna (i.e. it is
srikrsnaya namah).
9. Vasudeva should be devoutly worshipped with guileless hearts
by all these who observe their respective dharma (religious duties) as
per prescribed procedure.
10-11. At first a man should receive the Vaisnava type of initiation
from a spiritual preceptor of Brahmana caste, who is always engaged
in (i.e. established in) Ekantika Dharma, and is a store of mercy.
He should have spiritual knowledge and devotion. He who is devoid
of (i.e does not abide by) his personal religious duty and a person
whose heart is captivated by women should never be accepted as a
spiritual preceptor.
12. If one gets initiation from a preceptor who is a womanizer, his
knowledge and devotion will never bear fruit, like (the impossibility
of birth of) a child to a young woman associated with an impotent
person.

I . This is a Pancaratra work and the procedure of Kriya is. Agamic. Hence
initiation (DIksa) is essential to all irrespective of caste and sex.
II.ix.26.13-24 323

13. After getting initiation from a saintly preceptor, one should


wear a rosary of TulasT beads round his neck, and apply the Urdhvapundra
(vertical-lined) marks of white clay called Gopicandana on the fore­
head (and other parts of the body).
14. A devotee who is inclined to Visnu-worship, should thoroughly
understand from his preceptor the procedure of worship as prescribed
in the Agamas.
15. Getting up in the last watch of the night,1the devotee, either
at the Brahma Muhiirta (the last half watch of the night) or for half
a Muhiirta (i.e. 24 minutes) should metitate in his heart on Ke£ava,
the destroyer of all afflictions.
16. After glorifying the names of him and his (devotees) for one
Ghati (24 minutes), he should perform purificatory acts (like evacuat­
ing bowels) and should cleanse his teeth.
17. After performing bath for cleansing parts of one’s body, he
should take bath uttering the mantras. Taking pure earth etc., he should
perform Tarpana included as a part in the (procedure of) bath.
18. Wearing two washed (and dried) cloths, he should sit on a pure
seat. He should mark two vertical lines (of sandal or Gopicandana)
on his forehead, and perform Sandhya (Twilight-prayers), Нота (Fire-
worship) and Japa (muttering of Mantra) and such other religious duties.
19. He should bring (for worship) cloth, sandal, flowers etc. and
all offerings untouched by meat, wine and other impure objects.12
20. (Those articles of worship) should not have been (previously)
offered to Devas or Manes or to others. They should not have been
(even) smelt by men and should be devoid of (i.e. should not contain)
hair, insects etc.
21. Keeping those (above-mentioned articles) and implements of
worship (such as a bell) to the right side, one should then fill com­
pletely the lamp with ghee or oil.
22. Then one should seat near oneself the icon of Vasudeva on a
pure wooden seat (vikastha ?) spread over with silken or woollen cloth
etc.
23. The idol may be made of stone, metal, wood, precious stone
or may be a painted picture. It may be white, red, yellow or black, О
sage.
24. The idol of Krsna should be made two-handed or four-handed.
1. VV 15-18. The daily routine of the initiated is indicated here.
2. VV 19ff give general instructions about the articles of worship, the types
of idols of Visnu to be worshipped.
324 SkandaPurana

In the two-handed idol, a flute should be (shown to have been) held in


both his hands.
25. Or there should a discus in the right hand and a conch in the
other, or a lotus be (made to be held ) in the right hand, and the other
should show ‘grant of security’ (protection from fear).
26. In the case of the second (four-armed idol) in the lower right-
hand (upper right hand, lower left hand and upper left hand), he should
be made to bear an iron mace, a lotus, a conch, and a discus respec­
tively, О excellent sage.
27. In both the types of (Krsna) idols, Sri should be placed on (its)
left side. But in case of the idol holding a flute, Radha, the queen of
Rasa, should be placed on the left.
28. Even if this idol (be) of two types, the entire (unbroken) idol
of auspicious characteristics and endowed with all parts of the body,
becomes a conferer of accomplishment of the desires of the worship­
per.
29. In the vicinity of Vasudeva, (the idol of) LaksmT should be
prepared as two-handed, holding a lotus in one hand and beautified
with garments and ornaments.
30. Like LaksmT, (the idol of) Radhika also should be two-handed,
beaming with charming smile and holding a lotus or a garland in her
lotus-hand.
31. The idol of Hari is of two types—immovable or movable. In
the case of the first (i.e. immovable) one, no formal invocation or send-
off should be performed.
32. Invocation etc. of deities forming its parts should not be done.
The rule about (facing a particular) direction is not applicable in the
case of that (immovable) idol. One should sit facing it.
33. In the case of £alagrama (formalities such as) invocation and
others should not be performed. But in other cases of movable idols,
it should be performed by its worshippers.
34. Even there, in the case of wooden images and a painted one,
touch of water (in the formal bath) and application of sandal should
never be indulged in by the worshipper. Only wiping-off (of the paint­
ing etc.) should be done.
35. With one’s face to the North, or the East, or facing the mov­
able image, one should worship Hari with whatever offerings are available
according to one’s capacity.
36. The Universal Soul becomes pleased even if water is offered
with ardent faith and sincere devotion. All the more serin the case of
n.ix.26.37—DLix.27.5 325

complete worship (with all Upacdras).


37. He does not accept with delight the adornment with jewels
and gold ornaments and eatables such as foods of four kinds.
38. Hence, О sage, the worship of £rTkrsna who promptly confers
the desired objects, should always be performed by a person endowed
with devotion for his own final beatitude.

CHAPTER TWENTYSEVEN

Procedure of Plija Mandala Construction1

Sri Narayana said:


1. On a piece of ground consecrated by digging, sprinkling, smearing
(and such other means) and well-decorated with various colours, a
(raised) seat with four legs should be placed.
2. The worshipper with his face to the East should place the legs
of the seat in the comers. In those four he should establish Dharma and
others in the form of lions (thus making the seat a simhasana for the
deity).
3. In the South-East corner Dharma of white colour should be
placed. So should be placed Jhana (Knowledge) red in colour in the
South-West, Vairagya (Absence of worldly desires) yellow in colour
in the North-West and Aisvarya (Divine faculties of omnipotence etc.)
of dark blue colour in the North-East.
4. In the body-proper of the seat, Manas (mind), Dhi (intellect),
Citta (the reasoning faculty or the heart) and Aharitkara (the ego),
each greenish, red, white and black in colour respectively, should be
placed in the directions East etc. respectively.
5. On the strip of the seat all the three gunas, Rajas, Sattva and
Tamas, of red, white and black (colour) should be set, О excellent
sage.

1. This chapters and the following describe in detail the Agamic procedure of
Visnu worship. This describes the ‘city* of Radha and Kr$na in which dwell gods,
goddesses, demi-gods, planets etc. Their person, dress, vehicles etc. are graphically
described. Here Siva in the half-man-half-woman form (Ardha-nariSvara) is re­
garded as Krsna's attendant. All these form the paraphernalia of RadhS and Krsna
and a representation of their city.
326 Skanda Purana

6. Now in the four parts of Antahkarana (the internal organ consisting


of Manas, Buddhi, Ahankara and Citta1a pair of £aktis beginning with
Vimala, should be stationed in each part.12
7. The two £aktis, Vimala and UtkarsinI, fair-compexioned, wearing
green garments, excellently decked with ornaments and playing on beautiful
lutes, should be placed in the East.
8. The pair of £aktis, Jhana (Knowledge) and Kriya (Action),
red in lustre, clad in yellow garments, one playing on cymbal and the
other on a mrdahga (tabor or a kind of drum), should be stationed in
the South.
9. The two Saktis, Yoga and PradhT ( Pradhl—great intelligence),
dark (in complexion), wearing red garments, both together yet indepen­
dently playing on flutes, should be installed in the West.
10. The pair of Saktis, Satya and Hana, both of golden complex­
ion, wearing dark blue (green?) garments, both playing on a lute-like
musical instrument, should be placed in the North.
11. One called Anugraha with palms folded in reverence, should
be established on the strip (of the Fitha). All these ( Saktis) should
be made two-handed and well-adorned with ornaments.
12. On the seat, Sitadvlpa should be prepared with white cloth.
In the middle of it a lotus of eight-petals with a brilliant pericarp
should be made.
13. One-twelfth of the area should be left outside the lotus. Its
middle should be equally divided by three circles.
14. The first circle is the place of the pericarp, the middle, of
filaments, the third is of petals and pointed end-portion outside of it.
15. Around it, a city of four gates should be prepared with various
kinds of colour-materials like turmeric powder, saffron etc.
16. Lotus-like decorations with rice-grains should be made. The
pericarp of golden colour in the middle of the lotus should be well
decorated.
17. О sage, the worshipper should prepare around it red-coloured
eight petals in eight direction. They may also be of golden colour.
18. The eastern town-gate should be made red (in colour); the
southern, dark; the western, yellow in colour and the northern, crystal­
line in brilliance.

1. Jhalkikar, Nyaya-koia, p.38.


2. In Tantrika worship, Saktis are the special deities situated on the seat or
throne of the main deity iplfhadhi^fhatr-devatavisesah) (Ibid., p.781).
II.ix.27.19-31 327

19. In between the ‘town’ and the lotus, various kinds of flowers
(should be spread). In the middle of it Srikrsna with Radhika to his
left should be installed.
20. At the back of this (pair of) Radha-Krsna (the worshipper)
should then install four-handed Sankarsana, fair in complexion, wear­
ing blue garments, holding an umbrella (over him).
21. On the right side of the Lord one should install four-handed
Pradyumna, dark in complexion like a cloud, and wearing yellow gar­
ments, standing with a Chowrie in his hand.
22. On the left side of Hari red-garmented Aniruddha of dark-blue
complexion like a sapphire, be placed, with a Chowrie in his hand.
23. These three should be adorned with various kinds of orna­
ments, wearing crowns studded with invaluable jewels, (appearing)
beautiful due to youthfulness.
24. Then, in a serial order, the incarnations of Hari should be
placed in the eight filaments (petals of the lotus?). A pair of incarna­
tions should be placed in each, (thus placing) sixteen incarnations in
the eight Kesaras.
25-26. At the front of the eastern filament the worshipper should
install Vamana and Buddha, both of them dark as a cloud (in complex­
ion), compassionate, quiescent, celibate, wearing sacred thread and
white garments, holding a full-bloomed lotus in the right hand, the left
hand indicating Abhaya (protection from fear) by its position.
27-28. In the South-East comer, one should place Kalkin and Para£urama.
Kalkin has a sword in hand, while the other holds an axe. Both of them
should be represented as fair in complexion, red-eyed, having matted
hair, wearing the sacred thread and white garments, who have given
up anger against great enemies* (rather: great warriors who have given
up their anger*).
29-31. One should install Hayagriva and Varaha in the Southern
Kesara. Hayagriva should be horse-headed with a human body, with
four hands holding in each conch and others (Visnu’s weapons). He
should be of golden complexion and wearing divine white-coloured
garment.
Varaha hould be boar-faced with human body. He should have four
hands holding in each a conch, a discus, an iron pestle and a lotus. He

♦In Devanagari script 4ya* (*l) and ‘tha* (*t) are mistaken for each other due
to close resemblance. Hence the reading maharayau be better emended as maharathau
"great warriors’. The line 4tyakta krodha-maharathau' should be interpreted as
"great warriors who have given up their anger’.
328 SkandaPurana

should be reddish-brown like honey in complexion and should be yel­


low-garmented. Or he may be represented as two-handed.
32-33. He should then install the Fish and Tortoise (incarnations of
the Lord), in the South-Western Kesara. They should be of the same
form (i.e. that of a fish and of a tortoise) below the waist but the upper
form should be man-like. Both of them should hold the conch in the
left hand and the iron mace in the right hand. Their bodies should be
dark yet beautiful and decked with ornaments. They should be prepared
(as above description).
34-35. He should place Dhanvantari and Nrsimha in the Western
Kesara. Dhanvantari should be of fair complexion, wearing white gar­
ments and holding a pitcher containing nectar. Nrsimha should be Lion­
faced with a human body (but) full of mane. He should be like a blue
lotus in lustre (complexion) and be two-handed holding a mace and a
discus (in them).
36. In the North-Western (Kesara) he should install Hamsa and
Dattatreya, both with matted hair, in yogic attire, white in complex­
ion, holding a staff and water-gourd in their hands.
37-40. In the Northern Kesara he should then install Vyasa and
Ganapati. There Vyasa should be of wide eyes, black in complexion,
white-garmented with excellent tawny matted hair. He should be made
(represented) as having two hands, holding the Vedas, wearing a white
sacred thread and a ring of Darbha grass round his fingers.
The god Ganapati should be elcphant-faced(-headed) with one tusk.
He should be red (in complexion) and red-garmented, with a snake as
a sacred thread. He should be fat, four-handed, holding excellent noose
and goad and in one holding excellent pen (for writing) books.
41. The worshipper should place Kapila and Sage Sanatkumara,
a permanent celibate, in the North-Eastern Kesara.
42. Kapila should be made (shown) as having a while-complex-
ioned body, wearing a beautiful white garment, holding a lotus in one
hand and assuring freedom from fear with the other, and of a quiet
personality.
43. By the worshipper the sage Sanatkumara should be made to
appear like a five-year old child. He should be naked and with slight
matted hair.
44. After installing these deities in the filaments of the lotus in
this way, the worshipper should install the attendants in the middle of
eight petals.
45-47. One should at first place Visvaksena and Gartfda to the East.
ILix.27.48-58 329

Then in the right-handed (clockwise) arrangement he should install a


pair of these attendants per petal. Attendants Prabala and Bala (in the
South-East), Kumuda and Kumudaksa (in the South), Sunanda and
Nanda (in the South-West), Srutadeva and Jayanta (in the West). (He
should place) Vijaya and Jaya (in the North-West), then Pracanda and
Canda (in the North) and Puspadanta and Sattvata (in the North-East).
48. All these should be made four-handed, holding a conch, a
discus, a lotus and an iron-club (in each hand), wearing crowns and
yellow-garments. (They should be) dark in complexion and beautified
with excellent ornaments.
49-50. In the intervening space of the eight petals, Siddhi-deities,
all experts in playing on auspicious musical instruments, should be
installed in due order (as above), for example, Anima in the East,
Laghima in the South-East and so on. The Siddhis (to be so installed
are): Anima, Laghima, Prapti, Prakamya, Mahima, I£ita, VaSita and
the eighth Kamavasayita.
51. These Siddhis should be represented as golden in complex­
ion, decorated with all ornaments, holding (musical instruments like)
flute, lute and others and wearing various types of wonderful garments.
52. He should install at the front-end of the petals Vedas and
Sastras. He should place Vedas in the four quarters and &astras in the
intermediate quarters.
53. He should station the Rgveda in the East. The Veda is wear­
ing a rosary of beads, white (in complexion), short (in height), pot-bellied,
quiescent, with lotus-eyes and white garments.
54-55a. He should place Yajurveda in the South. The Veda is medium
in height, thin-waisted, brown-eyed, with a big neck. It is yellow (in
colour), wears red garments. It holds a rosary of beads in the left hand
and Vajra-grass (a Darbha-like grass) in the right hand.
55b-56. In the West he should install the Samaveda which is tall
in stature and has the brilliance of the sun. It holds a rosary of beads
in the right hand, a conch in the left. It is large-eyed, wears golden
(-coloured) garments, and is engaged in singing.
57. He should place the Atharvaveda to the North. It is white in
body, attired in blue, holding a rosary (of beads) in the left hand, and
a Khatvanga (a skull-topped club) in the right hand. It has the bril­
liance of fire, is red-eyed and old in age.
58. In the South-East corner he should station DharmaSastra,
seated on a lotus. It is white-complexioned and holds in its hands a
necklace and a balance.
330 Skanda Purana

59. In the South-West corner he should place Sankhya with long


hair and nails. It is fat-bodied, white in complexion and holds a rosary
of beads (to mutter Mantras) and a staff.
60. In the North-West corner he should then install Yoga, of golden
complexion, thin-waisted, who has placed both of his hands on his lap
and fixed his gaze on the tip of his nose.
61. In the North-East (he should) place Pancaratra, white in com­
plexion, wearing a wreath of sylvan flowers, holding in his hand a
rosary of beads and a ploughshare.
62. The garments of these four should be white, fine yet of strong
texture and the eyes should be (represented) as long like lotus-petals.
63. One should install in the intermediate space of the ends (of
petals) great sages along with their wives, reciting the Vedas, in a
serial order, like East, South-East (South, South-West etc.).
64. He should install MarTci associated with (his wife) Kala (in
the East), Atri also in company of Anasuya (in the South-East), Angiras
along with Sraddha (in the South), Pulastya with Havirbhu.
65. (He should place) Pulaha in association with Gati (in the South-
West), Kratu with Kriya (in the West), Bhrgu associated with Khyati
(in the North-West), Vasistha in company of ArundhatT (in the North).
66. All these are (to be shown as) two-handed, lean, having matted
hair and overgrown beards and mustaches, performers of penance, and
holding in their hands staffs and water-gourds.
Outside the lotus, in eight quarters and intermediate quarters, Guardians
of the Quarters of whom Indra is prominent (should be installed), along
with their vehicles, in the order of cardinal points (as above).
67-69. In the East, he should install four-armed Indra riding his
(elephant) Airavata. He is shown as holding a thunderbolt, a goad, a
lotus (in three hands) and as promising boons (by the position of fin­
gers in the fourth). He is gold-like in complexion. His garments are
beautiful and orange in colour. He is decked with various ornaments,
of wide eyes with reddish outer angles. He should be endowed with all
auspicious characteristics.
70-71. In the South-East corner he should install Fire-god, red in
complexion, four-handed, holding in each hand a pike (&iila), a spear
(£akti) and sacrificial ladles called Sruc and Sruva. (He is) seated in
a gold-chariot (drawn by) of four parrots, with Wind as his charioteer.
(He has) three eyes, smoke as his garment, tawny-coloured beard and
matted hair and reddish-brown eyes.
72. He should install in the South Yama, dark-complexioned with
H.ix.27.73-84 331

gold(-coloured) garment. He is fourhanded, holding in each (hand) a


staff, a sword, an axe and a noose. Decorated in different kinds of
ornaments, he is riding an intoxicated buffalo.
73-74. In the South-Western direction he should place Nairrta, of (a
head with) erect hairs, with uneven (number oD eyes, having two hands
holding a sword in one and a noose in the other, and using human
beings as vehicle. (He should be shown to be) of green beard, smoke­
like complexion, wearing black garment, richly adorned with a number
of gold ornaments, terrible to non-Vaisnavas.
75-76. Then, in the West (he should install) Varuna having the lustre
of the (precious stone called) sapphire, wearing white garments. He is
four-handed and adorned with pearl necklaces. He rides on a chariot
drawn by seven swans. He holds a noose with both of his hands. With
the other two (hands) he holds a vessel studded with gems and a conch.
77. In the North-West he should install the Wind-god of green
complexion. He has two hands and wears black garments. He rides on
drops of water. His hair is let loose and the mouth is open (agape) and
has his (own) banner.
78-79. In the North he should place Kubera of golden complexion.
He has four hands, holding in them an iron mace, a javelin, a trident
and a vessel of precious stones. He is attired in blue. He is bearded
and rides a palanquin. His left eye is reddish-brown. He wears a num­
ber of ornaments and puts on an armour.
80. In the North-East he should install the great Rudra in his half-
man-half-woman form. The left half should be made (represented) as
Parvatl and the right half as Sankara.
81. In the (male) half as I^vara there should be matted hair deco­
rated with the (crescent) moon. In the Uma-half (the female halD there
should be a decorative Tilaka-mark on (the forehead) and the hair parted
on this side of the head, leaving a partition line (from the forehead
upwards).
82. The forehead of (male) half is smeared with sacred ash (lines),
while the other half is beautified with a saffron-mark. The (male) half
has the sacred thread of a serpent, while the (female) half is adorned
with a necklace (on the breast).
83-84. On the (female) half a plump breast covered with a bodice,
on the waist a gold waistband and gold-anklet on the feet should be
shown. The garment should be orange-coloured. The two hands should
be decorated with bangles with jewelled rings (on the fingers), holding
in one hand a trident and a rosary of beads in the other.
332 SkandaPurana

85. On the right (male) side should be a waistband made of ser­


pents and an elephant’s hide as a garment. The two hands have coils
of serpents (as an ornament) and they hold a mirror and a lotus-flower.
86. God Mahadeva of this (half-man-half-woman) form riding a
bull should be installed.
In this manner the worshipper should install the Guardians of
the eight Quarters.
87. The worshipper should install eight Planets out of the town,
each Planet occupying his own cardinal point, and riding his own chariot.
88-89. The Sun should be stationed in the East. He should be yel­
low-garmented, and red in complexion (like red lead). He is two-handed
with a lotus in (one) hand. He rides in a chariot having one wheel of
twelve spokes. To this chariot of excessive refulgence are yoked green-
coloured seven horses to the left side.
90-9la. In the South-East corner the fair-complexioned, white-
garmented Bhrgu (Venus—but Bhrgu is a male sage in Indian mythology)
should then be posted. He is two-handed, holding a staff and a water-
gourd and is pleasant and gentle in appearance. He rides in a chariot
made of gold, yoked with ten horses of variegated colours.
9lb-92. In the South, Mars, red in complexion with red attire should
be placed. He is fourarmed, holding an iron mace, a javelin, a trident
(in three), the fourth promising boons. His gold chariot should be shown
(as) yoked with eight red-colour horses.
93-94a. Rahu should be installed in the South-West corner. He is
attired in blue. He is four-handed, holding in them a shield, a sword,
a javelin ($akti) and a spear (&ula). His mouth is terrible and he is dark
in form. He should be made as riding in an iron chariot yoked with
eight horses of black-bee colour.
94b-95. Saturn should be installed in the West. He is sapphire-blue
in complexion. He is two-handed with a bow and a trident in his hands.
He is of lazy (dim?) eyes and wears black garments. He is stationed
in a chariot made of black iron, yoked with eight horses of variegated
(spotted) colours.
96-97. He should install in the North-West corner the fair-complex-
ioned Moon-god attired in white. He has two hands, in one of which
he holds an iron mace. He rides in a chariot with three wheels, each
having a hundred spokes. It is watery. Ten horses white like Kunda
flowers are yoked on either side of it.
98. In the northern corner the son of Soma, i.e. Budha (Mercury),
having two hands should be posted. With one hand he affbrds freedom
n.ix.27.99—Шх.28.4 333

from fear and with the other he confers boons. He is red in complexion.
He is to be made as occupying a golden chariot yoked with eight horses
of greenish and yellowish colour.
99. In the North-East corner the Planet Guru (Jupiter) should be
installed. He is golden in complexion and white in dress. He is two-
handed, lotus-eyed, holding a staff and water-pot of gourd (in his hands).
He is seated in an excellent gold chariot yoked with eight white horses.
100-101. In this manner, the worshipper should install all the Ahga-
devatas of the Lord in due order in places within the interior of the city
(formed) in the pericarp (of the lotus). He should install the Vibhava-
type of forms of the Anga-deities of Vasudeva. He should install them
as betelnuts or flowers and unbroken rice-grains.

CHAPTER TWENTYEIGHT

Kriya-Yoga: Meditation on the Forms ofRadha and Krsna1

Sri Na rayana said:


1. After sipping water and practising breath-control (with От
bhur etc.) and then with a composed mind, one should pay obeisance
to one’s desired deities, and proclaim the time (tithi etc.) and place
(of worship).
2 After taking the solemn vow (the formal Sahkalpa), “I shall
perform the worship of Vasudeva for the accomplishment of Ekanta
Dharma” one should then perform the procedural Nyasa (i.e. assign­
ment of the various parts of the body to deities accompanied with
prayers or Mantras and corresponding gesticulations).
3. In Nyasa, the following are the Mantras: (1) The Twelve-syl­
labled Mantra (от namo bhagavate vasudevaya), (2) the Visnu Gayatri,12
(3) the eight-syllabled Narayana Mantra (от namo nardyanaya) and (4)
the six-syllabled Visnu Mantra (orh vi$nave namah).
4. These are prescribed for twice-born castes. For others three are
given here:

1. The actual procedure of the worship of Radha and К ода is described in


this chapter.
2. ndrayandya vidmahe, vasudevaya dhimahi /
(anno vifrtuh pracodaydt //
334 Skanda Purana

(i) The eight-syllabled Vasudeva Mantra (от vasudevaya namah).


(ii) The five-syllabled Hari Mantra (haraye namah).
(iii) The six-syllabled Kesava Mantra (kesavaya namah).
These are approved for Nyasa as well as for Нота (oblations to
fire).
5. Just as one performs Nyasa on various parts of his own body
(uttering specific mantras), the same way all the Nyasas should be
performed on the various parts of the idol of Sri Visnu while uttering
the specified Mantras. Then one should wipe off the idol with a clean
cloth.
6. Placing the pitcher (of water) to one’s left side and invoking
all the TTrthas (sacred places, rivers) there, one should worship it with
the articles of worship such as sandalpaste, flowers etc.
7. After sprinkling the articles of worship and one’s own person
with the water from the (worshipped) pitcher and after worshipping the
conch and the bell, one should perform the purification of the hhutas
(i.e. elements constituting the body).
8. After burning the (internal) sinful body with internal fire and
wind, one remaining stable (in one’s posture), should reflect upon the
identity of one’s pure self with Brahman.
9. Then performing breath-control, one should, with concentrated
mind, meditate upon Lord Radhakrsna of the form of imperishable
Brahman in one’s heart.
10. The lotus (i.e. the Yogic plexus) at the navel is in a drooping
position like the flower of KadalT (plantain tree). Reflecting upon the
vital wind called Apana, one should bring about its union with the vital
wind called Prana.
11. After bringing it in the hollow stalk of the lotus (the internal
path through which life breath proceeds upwards, the path of KundalinT?),
one should pull in the upward direction that ‘lotus’ along with that
(breath). Making a loud sound it goes to the ‘heart’ (known as hrt-
kamala). It fully blossoms there shiningly expanding in the cavity of
the heart.
12. In the mass of light (permeating that ‘sky’) one should medi­
tate upon quiescent $ri Krsna, the Lord of Radhika who is the most
beautiful and outstanding, by his surpassing superior refulgence.
13-27. One should meditate upon that divine personality constituted
of cit (the animating principle), as being in the sitting or standing
posture. (He should be contemplated as) a lad (below the age of fif­
teen), beautiful like ten million gods of love (their accumulated beauty);
II.ix.28.28-33a 335

characterised by divine limbs full of suitable beauty; his body, pure


and charming like the autumnal moon; his pair of arms long and lovely;
his lotusfeet with reddish, tender soles and beautiful toes; the promi­
nent, red, resplendent brilliance of his nails having put to shame the
moon (the crescent of the moon); with a beautiful pair of feet wearing
tinkling anklets and Hamsakas (swan-foot-shaped foot ornament) with
well-rounded pair of calves; beautiful with symmetrical knees and thighs;
with beautiful waist, the yellow garment over which is tied with a
girdle of excellent jewels; with the three folds (of skin on the upper
part of the belly) hidden between his bulging belly and the deep navel,
having a broad and high (well-developed) chest beautified by the cir­
cular line of hair of &rivatsa; adorned with ornaments like the lolling
bunch of flowers and pearl-necklaces of twenty-four strings (Gucchardha)
and of a hundred strings (Devacchanda) and others; wearing a gold
sacred thread and various kinds of garlands of fragrant flowers; adorned
with bracelets on the wrists having the beauty of bloomed red lotus;
having many (lit. more than one) rings set with excellent gems, illu­
minating the tiny joints of his fingers; playing upon a sweet-sounding
flute fascinating the minds of all; having broad shoulders with con­
cealed collar-bones; shining with armlets round his mighty arms; wearing
a garland of sylvan flowers with the humming sound of hovering black-
bees (madly) desirous of its fragrance; with the refulgent Kaustubha
gem in the ornament round his neck, which was like a conch; with a
shapely chin and shining with lips red like the BimbI fruit; with a full-
moon-like face beaming with a slight white smile; having an excellent
beautiful nose shapely like sesamum flower; having crocodile-shaped
ear-rings illuminating his symmetrical ears; adorned with ear-orna­
ments like a bunch of variegated flowers shining above his ears; the
beauty of whose cheeks is enhanced by the moon-light-like lustre of
even-shaped tiny teeth; whose eyes are beautiful with reddish comers
and longish like the petals of a lotus; his forehead broad and high and
eyebrows (curved) like the bow of the god of love; with hair on the
head curly, Fine, black, glossy and hence attractive (to the mind); who
is wearing on his head a crown richly set with excellent jewels of
various kinds; looking at his delighted people (devotees) with affec­
tionate glance and with love.
28-33a. One should meditate upon Krsna of the above description
and contemplate Radha on his left side—Radha with two hands, com­
plexion fair like gold, wearing a clean garment of reddish-yellow colour;
with refulgent ornaments, (ear-rings) set with excellent jewels adorn­
336 SkandaPurana

ing her symmetrical ears; having a nose like (the beak of) a parrot;
young in age (below fifteen years); with eyes like the young^pne of a
deer; with plump, protruding thick breasts; with a slender waist and big
buttocks; adorned with a girdle set with jewels; beautified with vari­
ous heavenly (or brilliant) ornaments; with her face like a full-blown
lotus, beaming with smile; whose excellent hands are shining by gem-
set rings, armlets and bangles etc. (all set with jewels); whose lotus-feet
are adorned with tingling anklets and Hamsukas (an ornament for the
ankles shaped like a goose’s foot); on whose broad forehead are shining
a Tilaka mark of saffron and an ornament of the forehead; with lips
(red) like a Bimba fruit; with excellent cheeks; with her braids of hair
decorated with jasmine flowers; gazing with love at the Lord; holding
a lotus in her hand.
33b. After having meditated upon Radhika of the above descrip­
tion, one should worship the Lord along with her.

CHAPTER TWENTYNINE

Kriya-Yoga: Procedure of the Worship ofVdsudeva

Sri Narayana said:


1. After worshipping him mentally with various articles (and
services) of worship, the devotee should invoke him and establish (in­
fuse) him in the idol of Visnu by Sthdpana Mudra (i.e. a certain position
of fingers practised in worship to indicate that the deity invoked is
established in the idol).
Z Then he should invoke the deities constituting him (i.e. his
subordinate deities) by their respective separate Mantras or by their
names (which itself is a) mantra, and then should establish them well.
3. He should ring (or play upon) some musical instrument like
the bell and others and should make a clapping sound. Presuming that
the deity has got up from sleep, he should brush (i.e. imagine to brush)
the teeth.
4-5. He should give water mixed with Syamaka (a rice-like corn),
Vi$nukranta (a plant like Clitoria terntea), Durva grass and a lotus as
Pddya (water for washing the feet) to the Lord. Then in the water
meant for sipping as Arghya, he should put sandalpaste, rice-grains
Шх.29.6-15 337

with unbroken ends, flowers, ends of Darbha grass, gingelly seeds,


mustard seeds, barley seeds. Diirva grass should be put after filling
the vessel for Arghya with water.
6. He should give water made fragrant with the outer skin of
nutmeg, cloves, cardamoms, Kankola and the fragrant root of the plant
Andropogon muricatus as Acamaniya and then should bathe Hari.
7. At first he should smear the person of the Lord with oil from
fragrant flowers. Then he should cleanse the body by rubbing and
cleansing it with Kalka (viscous sediments of ground and crushed oily
substance).
8. With steady, unruffled mind he should bathe (the idol of Visnu)
with (Pancamrta i.e.,) milk, curds, ghee, honey and sugar separately
along with their respective Mantras.1
9. He should then bathe it with pure, hot, fragrant water. Then
he should slightly worship it with sandalpaste etc. on the pedestal for
bath.
10. The Brahmana should cast aside the stale flowers etc. (of the
previous worship) to the northern side. He should perform the ablution
with address as Rajan etc., or with Saman hymns or the special occult
lore of Mahapurusa, reciting $risukta (RV 1.165) and Vi$nusiikta (RV
IX.I).
11. Initiated women, Sudras should perform the ablution-ceremony
with (i.e. reciting) Visnu-Sahasranama (‘A thousand names of Visnu’)
or with one hundred and eight names.
12. Then wiping him off with a piece of cloth, he should dress him
and Radha with very costly clothes with great love, according to his
own capacity.
13. He should give fine, white, auspicious sacred thread to the
Lord. He should put ornaments of gold and precious stones all over his
person.
14. According to the season, he should make the sandalpaste mark
or one of thick saffronpaste, at the proper place as is customary.
15. After adorning Radhika with ornaments as are proper for her,
he should draw with saffron and unbroken grains of rice the Tilaka
mark on the forehead and decorative figures on her person.

1. They are 'apyayasva* (RV 1.91.1b), ‘dadhikravano* (RV IV. 39.6), ‘ghrtam
mimikje' (RV И.З.П), *madhu vata\ (RV 1.90.6), ‘svaduh pavasva (RV IX.
85.6). The first word of these Mantras suggests the material used for bathing.
Beyond this tenuous relation, the meanings of the mantras show their irrelevance.
Purinika Mantras used for this are meaningful.
338 SkandaPurana

16. After showing the mirror, he should worship him with garlands
of flowers (round his neck) and chaplets or garlands of flowers adorning
the head and with one thousand sprouts of TulasI leaves.
17. One should worship the Lord with a TulasI leaf or a flower
uttering (with every leaf or flower) a name of Visnu in the dative case
followed by namah (‘obeisance to’) (e.g. kesavaya namah) (and thus
complete the thousand names).
18. With powders of fragrant and auspicious materials he should
make the incense-burning of the Da£ahga type and with Amrta etc.
19. He should prepare a lamp with a pair of wicks filled with
ghee. He should make the great offering of pure food according to his
capacity.
20. One should place (in a plate) on a four-footed stool Samyava
(i.e. a cake of wheat fried with ghee and made oblong in shape, spread
over with sugar), Payasa (i.e. rice boiled in milk), Apupa (a small
round cake of flour and meal), Saskuti-khanda (a piece of a kind of
baked cake), Laddukas (sweet balls), PUrika (a kind of cake filled in
ghee or oil, called Purl in Marathi), Polika (a cake with sweet material
inside and baked, called PojT in Marathi), boiled rice mixed with kidney
beans, condiments, curds, milk, ghee etc.
21. He should, with affection, make him take meals and offer
water at intervals (to drink). In half a Muhurta (24 minutes) he should
give water to wash hands therewith.
22. The remnants of the food of the Lord, having been assigned
to Visvaksena and other deities should be placed aside for one’s own
sake. The ground should be cleansed.
23. As ‘mouth-perfume’ to bring fragrance to the breath of the
deity, he should give a betel leaf with the powder of betel-nut, cloves,
cardamom, nutmeg and other such materials wrapped in it.
24. Giving a coconut and other fruits and Daksina as per one’s
capacity, he should perform the waving of light (before the Lord) ac­
companied with instrumental music.
25. After offering him a handful of flowers, he should then praise
him with eulogies meant for him. He should glorify his name while
singing and dancing in his presence. (This is the Klrtana form of Bhakti.)
26. After performing it (Klrtana) for a Muhurta (48 minutes) and
circumambulating the deity, he should prostrate himself like a staff,
slightly transversal to the South, on the ground.
27. A man should prostrate himself touching the ground with eight
parts of the body (viz. two hands, two feet, two knees, chest and head)
Плх.29.28-36 339

or five parts of his body (viz. two hands, two feet and head); but a
woman should pay obeisance with only the five parts of her body and
never otherwise.
28. The prostration is called A$tdhga (‘eight-limbed’)1when it is
performed with two feet, two hands, two knees, chest, head, sight,
speech and mind.
29. The prostration is called Pahcdhga (‘five-limbed’) when it is
performed with two hands, mind, (bending down of) head, speech and
sight.2 (There are six factors involved, though it is called Pahcdhga
unless we presume the pair of hands as one.) In the performance of
worship these two types of prostrations are superior.
30. “O Lord, I have submitted myself to you. Please protect me
who am afraid of Samsara." Praying to him thus, he should pursue his
regular Vedic studies (recitation) to the best of his abilities.
31. After meditating on the rest and after taking (permission) given
by him reverently by head, one should establish as before the invoked
Radha and Krsna in the lotus of his heart and should send away all the
Ariga-devas to their respective places.
32. After laying down the idol of Hari in a cane-box for rest or
shutting up the image in the temple by closing the door, he should
perform Vaisvadeva (‘offering of cooked food to all gods’).
33. Distributing the remnant of food offered to Hari among his
dependents and after enjoying (i.e. consuming) it himself, he should
pass the remaining part of the day in (listening to or narrating) his
stories etc.
34. He who daily performs the great worship as per procedure
stated above, and worships Visnu with devotion, becomes his (i.e. Visnu’s)
attendant.
35. Ascending in a refulgent heavenly car coveted by Devas, the
worshipper, endowed with a brilliant celestial body, goes to Hari’s
region called Goloka.
36. Or even if he performs everyday worship of Hari, he attains
his desired objects along with (the four objectives of human life, viz.)
Virtue (Dharma), Wealth, Pleasure and Final Emancipation.
1. PUja-РгаШ а (p.88) describes these two types of prostrations on the author­
ity of Vyasa but they are probably traditional verses of unknown authorship as
given above. Verse 28 defines As(£Aga but gives three more, making it ‘EkadalaAga’.
But the parts of the body actually touching the ground are eight. Smrti Candrikd
I, p.204 supports v 28 above.
2. In this the body does not touch the ground except in the case of feet. The
prescription of this type of prostration to women is obvious.
340 SkandaPurana

37. If one is incapable of performing worship of Hari along with


Radha as per above procedure, he should worship only Hari with what­
ever articles of service become available.
38. A Brahmana with a mantra of twelve syllables (am namo
bhagavate vasudevaya) and others with Hari’s name as Mantra should
perform the worship of Hari. It is the devotion only which confers
Siddhi (i.e. accomplishment of certain supernatural powers).
39. On Ekada€T (eleventh day in either half of a month) and es­
pecially on the birth-festival of Hari and such other days, Mahapuja (‘a
great worship') should be celebrated to the best of one’s abilities by
all Vaisnavas.
40. Even if one performs only the installation (of Hari’s idol) in
a temple built by another, he becomes absolved of all sins and be­
comes a sovereign emperor (of all the world).
41. A rich person should get built a beautiful, firm (durable) temple
of Hari. He who does so will get the kingdom of the three worlds,
without any thorn (troublesome person or enemy).
42. He who enhances the continuity of the worship by instituting
the service or job (of worshipping Hari), will really obtain excellent
happiness in the world of Visnu.
43. He who lays the foundation, starts the construction of Visnu’s
temple and (provides for) his worship, certainly attains lordship com­
parable to Vasudeva.
44. He who deprives one of his employment of Hari’s worship
given either by himself or by others, experiences tortures caused by the
god of Death in hell for a period of a Kalpa.
45. The doer (of an action), one who urges to do it, the person
helping and the consenter—all these four have share in an act merito­
rious or otherwise.
46. О Narada! In this way procedure of Kriya-Yoga has been de­
scribed to you by me. It is by this that the Ekantika Dharma will be
accomplished by those who are inclined to it.
47. A person who brooding over objects of pleasure in the mind,
outwardly performs the worship of Hari, will never obtain the declared
fruit even by using a great amount of material for worship.
48. Restraining one’s own mind wandering here and there in vul­
gar pleasure, a person, desirous of liberation, should be devoutly engaged
in the worship of Visnu.
49. Without worshipping Hari, persons following Mahavrata, though
performers of severe penance, intelligent ones who have studied the
Шх.ЗО.1-7 341

Vedas and who are practising Sankhya and Yoga, will never attain
Siddhi (i.e. Moksa).

CHAPTER THIRTY

Description o f Yoga with Eight Limbs1

Skanda said:
1. Having heard the procedure of the worship of Vasudeva in this
way, Narada became pleased. He addressed again the supreme precep­
tor of sages.

Narada said:
2. The Kriya-Yoga bestowing the great fruit (i.e. liberation from
Samsara) has been properly elucidated by Your Lordship. It should be
practised with concentrated mind by persons desirous of Siddhi (Mokja).
3. О excellent preceptor! But control of the mind is very diffi­
cult to be achieved even by persons endowed with knowledge. What
can one say about those men whose minds are involved in Karmas in
this world!
4. Except that (i.e. control of the mind) the worship of Hari is
not conducive to desired fruit. Hence it behoves you to expound to me
the means of controlling it.

Skanda said:
5. Thus enquired by the sage, Narayana, the Lord of sages, the
omniscient friend of Nara, spoke to Narada.

.Sri Narayana said:


6. О sage! What you state is true. The mind has immense power.
Even if it is subdued, thoughtful people place no faith in it as in an
enemy.
7. In the case of embodied beings, there is no enemy comparable
to mind. Through the yogic practice of meditation on Visnu it becomes
free from defects and gets quiescent.

1. This chapter is based on Patanjali's Yoga Sutras.


342 SkandaPurana

8. As it is very difficult to bring it under control like an untamed


horse, it is to be controlled with firm, virtuous means by men endowed
with disaffection for worldly pleasures.
9. There are many means (for this purpose), but out of them,
according to the view of saints, the practice of Astanga-Yoga
(‘Yoga of eight limbs’) is the most important and giver of immediate
fruit.
10. О Brahmana, Yama (moral restraints), Niyama (voluntary reli­
gious observances); Asana (bodily postures), control of breath, Pratyahara
(withdrawing from objects of pleasure), Dharana (fixing the mind on
one object), the seventh Ahga Dhyana (abstract contemplation) and
Samadhi (perfect absorption of the mind in the Supreme Spirit), the
eighth—this is the order (of successive steps) in Yoga.
11. Among them nonviolence, celibacy, truth, non-stealing and
non-possession—these five are Yamas. They are to be practised with
effort.
12. Purity, penance, contentment, study of Vedas and worship of
Visnu—these five Niyamas constitute the second AAga.
13. Giving up unsteadiness of the body and maintaining it in a
comfortable position as in Svastika and other postures is called Asana
and it conquers the mental distress from pairs of opposites (such as
pleasure and pain).
14. Holding at one place the vital breaths that wander everywhere,
according to the method advised by the spiritual preceptor, is called
Prandydma (‘breath control’).
15-16. When the wind (i.e. vital breath) is unsteady, the mind gets
unsteady. When it (i.e. the vital breath) is steady, the mind gets steady.
This should always be practised in a pure place by means of Puraka
(inhalation), Kumbhaka (i.e. holding within the inhaled air), Recaka
(exhalation).
The backward pull of the mind and the propensities of the sense-
organs from their respective objects is called Pratyahara.
17. Fixation of the mind along with the vital breath in the form
of Vasudeva in different places (i.e. Yogic plexuses) from the navel
{Mulddhdra Cakra) to other places is called Dharana.
18. The (progressive) meditation on each part of the Lord’s person
separately beginning from his lotus-feet is called Dhyana.
19. The absorption (holding in) of the vital breath and the mind
in Hari with deep love is called Samadhi. It is very much coveted by
Yogins.
Шх.30.20-32 343

20. This Yoga is accomplished by men who have been trained in


these eight Ahgas by spiritual preceptors who themselves have been
Siddhas (‘Masters of Yoga’). It consists of perfection of Samadhi.
21. О Narada! Know that there is no other proper means of con­
trolling the mind like this in case of men desirous of liberation from
Samsara.
22. There is absolutely no fear to Yogins from Madana (‘god of
Love’) who is the arch-enemy of performers of penance and the agi­
tator of the universe.
23. A knower of Yoga avoids the coming time of death and quite
independently gives up his body by (entering into) Samadhi.
24. By pressing the anus by both of his heels and gradually draw­
ing up the vital breath between the two feet, he takes it to the position
of death (Mrtyu).
25. Meditating upon Kesava with his mind and muttering his six-
syllabled Mantra (i.e. kesavaya namah), he takes his vital breath to the
position of Prajdpati (in his own body).
26. A knower of Yoga, a devotee of Vasudeva draws the breath
up to the navel, heart, chest, and throat and the (middle of the) eye­
brows. (These parts of the body indicate the different Yogic plexuses,
Cakras, in the body from Muladhara to Ajna Cakra.)
27. A Yogi practices withholding (control) and releasing of Prana
(vital breath), mind and senses in these six places (Cakras) one by one
till he has that independence (and ability to do so).
28. Conquering each place one by one and leaving it behind, he
proceeds to the next (higher) post. He who has reached the sixth place
(i.e. Ajnacakra) has no trouble and fatigue in that practice.
29. After closing down the seven apertures and bringing the vital
breath accompanied with the senses and mind to the crown of the
head,1a knower of Yoga advances to (the aperture in the crown of the
head called) Brahma-randhra.
30. Then after giving up desires for all Mayic objects, he iden­
tifies his mind with Vasudeva and abandons his mortal coil.
31. Then coming to the abode of Lord Krsna which is beyond
darkness, he, endowed with a celestial body, lives in bliss, serving the
Lord.
32. Thus, О Brahmana, the epitome of the science of Yoga has

I. I have thus translated Talu on the basis of Yogic Texts, even though the
dictionary meaning of Talu is Palate.
344 Skanda Purana

been narrated to you. Conquering your mind thereby propitiate him


forever.

CHAPTER THIRTYONE

Eulogy ofNara and Narayana

Skanda said:
1. Having heard properly (and faithfully) all this sacred (consis­
tent with the sacred Law) speech of the Lord (Narayana), the sage, all
whose doubts were resolved, spoke to him with his palms folded in
reverence.

Narada said:
2. All my doubts have been cleared with your favour, О revered
Sir. The greatness of Vasudeva has been easily grasped by me.
3. For some time, I shall perform penance here along with you,
and always hear (discourses on) knowledge. Thereby I shall make myself
mature.

Skanda said:
4. After saying this and having been permitted by him (Narayana),
Narada stayed there for one thousand celestial years, performing pen­
ance.
5. Everyday, as permitted by time, he heard from Hari’s (Narayana’s)
mouth (discourses on) Dharma, knowledge etc. The king of Yogis at­
tained maturity there.
6. He developed extreme affection for Snkrsna, the soul abiding
in all. That leader of Bhagavatas became always engaged in singing
(in praise of) the good qualities of the Lord.
7. The Lord (Narayana) being pleased (with Narada) spoke to the
accomplished Yogin who had attained the deepest faith and highest
proficiency in devotion (Bhakti), words which were conducive to the
(spiritual) welfare of all.

Sri Narayana said:


8. О great sage! You have now become a Siddha (i.e. a perfect
n.ix.31.9-16 345

or accomplished one). Go and work for the welfare of the people. It


behoves you to propagate Ekanta Dharma everywhere.

Skanda said:
9. Obeying this order of the preceptor of the world with (i.e.
bowing down) his head, while (i.e. before) departing from that place,
he stood there eulogizing him (Narayana), paying obeisance to him
with hands folded in reverence.

Narada said:
10. Repeated obeisance to you, О Lord, the preceptor of the world,
О Narayana of supernatural divine form. You are the mine of infinite
beneficent and auspicious qualities. Be always specially affectionate
to me, your slave.
11. You are Vasudeva, the Abode (Bearer) of the universe; you
perform penance for the welfare of the world. You are the Lord of the
masters of Yoga, stabilized in quiescence. You are the Lord of those
who seek pleasure in spiritual pursuits. You are the great preceptor of
Paramahamsas (ascetics of the highest order).
12. You are all-pervading, the most prominent one among sages;
you are the imperishable soul, the controller of JIvas (living beings)
and gods; you are the witness (of everything), the great Person, the
self-dependent one (not controlled by others). Kala (Time, the destroyer
of all) became great by (a mere gesture of) your eyebrow.
13. О Lord, you indulge in the sport of creation etc. of the world
as the soul of Maya-Purusa but still you are not the doer; you are
devoid of attributes, aggregate of all beings, Supreme Brahman, greater
than the great.
14. You are the Truth. You are self-luminous; your power is be­
yond comprehension or reasoning capacity; your form is worthy of being
contemplated by those whose selves are identified with Brahman. You
are the preceptor of Brhadvrata (i.e. Mahavrata). You are the chief of
great sages, О subduer of the pride of the god of Love by your prowess.
15. It is because of your brilliance and prowess that anger, addic­
tion, envy, greed which are the chief enemies of performers of penance,
are never capable of even entering yoUT hermitage.
16. You are constituted of the Vedas, of knowledge; you are the
path of immortality ; you consist of Dharma; you are the support of the
creation of Dharma; you have uprooted the source (or creation) of
346 SkandaPurdna

Adharma (sinfulness); you are immutable, imperishable, invisible kinsman.


17. You are attributeless and of flawless form. All your acts become
attributeless. You are worthy of being adored by those who are desirous
of achieving (the objectives in life, viz.) Dharma (Virtue), Wealth and
Love as well as by those who aspire after Moksa. You are the sover­
eign ruler (of the universe), О Lord.
18. You are the only one capable of protecting from the great fear
arising from Kala, Maya, Yama (god of Death) and Samsara. You are
extremely compassionate and ignore the faults (and sins) committed
by your devotees. You are verily affectionate to your devotees.
19. He who remembers simply the name or form of your incarna­
tions at the time of death, instantly becomes completely absolved of
the great flood of sins and goes quickly to heaven.
20. Abandoning you, a deluded man who becomes attached to his
body constituted of three constituent substances, things connected with
the body, to wife, children, kinsmen and wealth is deceived by Maya.
21. The human body is proper (medium) for performing your de­
votion which even the residents of heaven seek. I know, the pleasures
of heaven devoid of devotion to you are comparable to hell.
22. You perform penance for the happiness of the three worlds.
Still it is a much greater favour done to the residents of Bharata that
you have taken incarnatioq here and shine here by your movements.
23. Those who do not resort here to you, who are of the above
description, are regarded as ungrateful ones in the &astras. Hence may
you show favour unto me who firmly resort to you exclusively.

CHAPTER THIRTYTWO

Text-transmission of Vasudeva-Mahatmya

Skanda said:
1. After eulogizing the Lord (Narayana) Narada went away from
that place and arrived at first at Vyasa’s hermitage called $amyaprasa.
1 He was affectionately honoured there by rising up from the
seat to welcome him, offering a seat and other formalities. He ex­
pounded the Ekantika Dharma to him (Vyasa) who was desirous to
know it.
3. The sage then went to the assembly of God Brahma. There he
Шх.32.3-16 347

taught it to Devas, Pitrs and great sages who attended it (i.e. the assembly)
while God Brahma listened to it.
4. Sun-god who was present there, again heard the whole of that
Dharma from Narad a as he had heard it from Narayana formerly.
5. He respectfully narrated it to Valakhilyas who go ahead of
him. They told Devas like Indra and others who assembled on Mount
Meru.
6. Having heard this Dharma from them, Sage Asita narrated it
to Pitrs when he happened to go to the world of manes, О excellent
Brahmana.
7. The Pitrs including Aryama and others told it to King Santanu
who narrated it accurately to his son Bhlsma.
8. At the end of the Bharata War, he (Bhlsma) while lying on
a bed of arrows, narrated it to Dharmaraja who enquired about it in a
big assembly.
9. Even Narada who respectfully attended that assembly heard
it and narrated it to Sankara on Mount Kailasa. He (in his turn) told
me, О excellent sage.
10. О Brahmana, this has been narrated by me to you who abide
by Dharma and enquired about it because my father told me that this
Dharma should be given (i.e. taught) to the deserving ones.
11. By whomsoever was this glory of the Lord of Sattvatas
(Vasudeva) heard, he (spontaneously) had great faith in it (leading to)
his personal liberation from Samsara.
12. On hearing the greatness of the son of DevakT (Krsna) as
glorified by Bhlsma, even the royal sage Yudhisthira along with his
brothers was delighted.
13. On learning that his maternal uncle’s son (Krsna) was the
cause of all causes, the highly intelligent one was merged in the ocean
of wonder.
14. The king regarded that the Vyuhas (manifestations) such as
Vasudeva (Sankarsana, Pradyumna and Aniruddha) and all the incarna­
tions like the Divine Boar and others were those of the Lord of Rama.
15. Then the king (Yudhisthira) along with his younger brothers
became extremely devoted to Krsna of divine (yet) human body, О
excellent Brahmana.
16. On hearing this story (i.e. exposition of this Dharma) even all
Brahmanical, royal and divine sages who were present in that assem­
bly became wonder-struck.
17. Having come to know that Krsna was veritable Supreme Brah­
348 SkandaPurana

man in a human form, they, bowing down to him with reverence, betook
themselves to his devotion.
18. This is his greatness. Hence, О piously disposed one, yoy also
resort to that Vasudeva with whole-hearted devotion.
19. The glory of &ri Vasudeva which results in the mitigation (and
final extinction) of evil desires and which enhances devotion unto the
Lord, has been narrated by me to you.
20-21. Whatever episodes in this Purana have been narrated, their
essence has been (as if) churned and extracted and it is this, О Brahmana.
It is the essence of Vedas and Upanisads, of Sarikhya and Yoga, of
Pancaratra and entire Dharmagastra.
22. This extremely auspicious song sung by the Lord himself confers
wealth, fame, long life and is destructive of everything that is inaus­
picious.
23. Whoever listens to this meritorious (Mahatmya), glorifies it
(to others) or reads it, his pure mind will be steadfast in Vasudeva.
24. Those men will be his Ekantika Bhaktas (i.e. devotees exclu­
sively devoted to him), become identical with Brahman and in the end
go to the world of Brahman which is beyond darkness.
25. (Hereby) one desirous of Dharma will attain Dharma; a person
desirous (of any object) will get his desired object; a person covetous
of wealth will obtain wealth; one having the object of getting Moksa,
will attain excellent release from Samsara.
26. A student will get learning (or his desired lore); a sick person
will be relieved of his ailment. By merely hearing it all sins will get
annihilated.
27. A Brahmana will attain Brahmanic lustre, a Ksatriya king-
ship, a Vaigya wealth and a &udra happiness by listening to this
(Mahatmya).
28. A king who goes to battle after hearing this will win. A woman
will get the good fortune of the life-long firm devotion and favour of
her husband; a girl will secure her desired groom.
29. Whatever desire a man cherishes will he obtain from listening
to and glorifying this Mahatmya which is the crest-jcwel of all £astras.
30. Hence, О excellent Brahmana, you always read this with de­
votion. And resort physically, verbally, mentally with devotion to the
Lord who is affectionate to his devotees.

Sauti said:
31. After drinking the nectarine speech emanated from the lotus-
H.ix.32.31-33 349

mouth of Mahasena (i.e. Skairda), Savarni performed devotion unto the


son of Vasudeva, who is Brahman in a human form and auspicious to
all.
32. You all who are established in your own Dharma (religious
duties) and are conversant with Vedas and Agamas, take recourse to
Sri Vasudeva who is favourable to Brahmanas, is the Lord worth re­
sorting to and is of distinguished reputation.
33. Obeisance to Vasudeva, the Lord of the world called Goloka,
whose form is constituted of a mass of lustre, and who enhances the
delight of devotion.

:: End of Vasudeva-Mahatmya ::
INDEX TO SECTION VII

ablution in the month of Vailakha, 3 Brahma Pralaya, 101


abode of God Brahma, 55 Bfhaspati, 121, 123
abodes of the heaven-dwellers, 53 buttermilk, 10
Agni, 38, 39,40
Aksaya, 123 camphor, 24
Aksaya Tftlya, 79, 120 Candrakantalila, 104
Amaravatl, 122, 124 charitable gifts, 15, 112
Amavasya (new-moon day) in the month check on the tongue, 113
of Caitra, 119 Chinnakarna, 68
Arhbarisa, 137 Citragupta, 53
Anarta, 112 Citraketu, 75
applying oil to the body, 104 coconuts, 9
arecanuts, 9 conflict in Puranas, 65
Alija, 121 conquest of the god of Death, 54
assembly of God Brahma, 55 construction of Prapas, 24
association with good people, 9 construction of shady places. 24
Alunyalayana, 35, 36, 41,42, 43 cooked rice, 24, 25
Alvattha, 21 cooked rice mixed with curds, 24
attachment to Visnu, 67 cool shady places, 104
Avidya, 97 cool water, 5
avoidance of oil bath, 24 cot, 7
Ayana, 100 curb on the penis. 113
curds, 10
Bah, 120, 122
bath in a nver, 12 Dainaihdma Pralaya, 100, 101
bath in the month of Vailakha, 4 Dak?a, 28, 95, 96
bath in wells, 12 Dantila, 84, 85
betel leaves, 9 Darla (new-moon day) in the month of
Bhagavad-GIta, 133 Caitra, 120
Bhagavata, 134 Dalarna, 108
Bhagavata Dharmas, 103, 104 daughter of Mena and Himalaya, 32
Bhagavatas, 103, 104 day of Brahma, 100
Bharata, 93 defects and blemishes of sinners, 115
Bhlmarathl, 82 Ddvala, 91
Bhfgu, 30 Devavrata, 126
Bhuriyaias, 70 Devendra, 112
birth of a son, 115 devotees of Vasudeva, 61
birth of Kumara. 41 devotion to Vi$nu, 5 1,62
birth of Valmlki, 110 Dhan alarms, 136
bitch, 128 Dharmaraja, 64, 105
blanket, 8 Dharmas of Sittvika nature, 48
blue lotus, 9 Dharmas of Niskama (desireless) type, 48
BrahmS, 31, 48, 51,56,61,62,64,100. Dharmas of R&jasa and TSmasa types, 48
101 Dharmavama. 113, 115. 116, 117. 118
Brahma extols the glory of Vi$nu, 60 Dhifana, 122
Brahman, 93 Dhfttadyumna, 75
Brahmerfvara, 66,69 Dhfttaklrti, 75
352 Skanda P u ran a

Dhyana, 67 gift of cows and of gingelly seeds, 104


digging of tanks, 104 gift of Damana, 24
digging of wells, 24 gift of dried ginger mixed with jeggery, 24
DTrghatamas, 121 gift of flowers, 104
DTrghatapas, 121 gift of footwear, 24
Discus, 55.62 gift of mats, blankets and cots, 104
dominance of Rajas, 99 gift of Prapas, 74
drinking water, 25 gift of rice and vegetables, 24
Durvisas, 66 gift of sweet concoction, 104
Dutapati, 54 gift of sweet drinks, 104
duties pertaining to Vaigakha, 59 gift of treacle juice, 24
Dvadaglday ofVailakha, 124, 126, 131 gift of umbrella and shoes, 104
dying in Prayaga, 58 gift of water, 4, 9
gift of water pot, 24
early bath in the month of Vaigakha, 66 gingelly seeds in honey, 24
early bath in Tfrthas, 134 goat-beard, 31
early morning bath, 24, 58 goat-head of Daksa, 31
eating forbidden food, 11,60 Godavari, 8 1, 83
efficacy of the month of Vaigakha, 70 good holy rites, 112
EkadagT, 112, 124 good stones, 15
employee, 61 Goroca, 8
employer. 61 grass-mat, 8
erection of shelters for pedestrians, 24 greatness of Vai£akha ntes, 60
eulogy of Visnu, 76 gruesome picture of the Kali age, 114
evil spirits, ghosts and vampires, 114
Нага, 31
famine, 115 harlots, 115
fan, 5 hearing the Vaigakha Vratas, 106
fanning, 24, 104 Hemakanta, 44, 45, 46, 47
fans, 24 Hemahga, 19
fine arts, 114 heretics, 114
food and clothing, 7 holy bath. 7. 15,64, 105, 112
food in a bell-metal vessel, 14 holy bath in Vaigakha, 51,53
footwear. 6 holy Bhagavata rites, 23
form of Visnu, 92 holy rites destructive of sms, 104
free-water booths, 104 holy rites of Vailakha, 57, 58. 62. 118
friendship with saintly people, 67 Нота, 112
house-lizard, Hemahga bom as a, 19
Gartga. 39,40
Gaucja land, 72 image of Lord Madhusudana, 64, 105
Gaya, 61, 83 Indra, 96
ghee, 10 inherent Gunas and Karmas, 100
gift of a £aligrama, 125 Itihasas, 93
gift of umbrella, 46
gift of beds and cots, 24 Jagarana, 125
gift of betel leaves, 24, 104 J^ata, 121
gift of buttermilk, 104 Janaka, 136
gift of camphor and sweet scents, 104 jasmine, 9
gift of coconuts, 24 Jayakfti, 102
gift of cooked food, 6,9 Jayanta, 95, 96, 107
Index to Section VII 353

JTmQtavahana, 131 men observing the Vai&kha rites, 63


juice of JaihbTra, 10 men of Sattvika type. 49
mercifulness, 13
Kakutstha, 22 Meru, 122
Kala, 54 milk-products, 24
Kalpa of Brahma, 100, 102 ----- , gift of, 104
Kama, 34,36 miscarriage in women, 38
Kamyas. 103 mixture of tender cucumber and jaggery, 10
Kan(akacala, 82 monthly Vrata, 105
KantimatJ, 89, 91 morsels of grass to cows, 24
Kanva, 98 Mothers, 40
Karma, 67,69 moustache of the vicious-minded Bhrgu, 31
Karmavada, 99 Mftyu, 54
Karmins, 68 musk. 8,24
Karsana, 73
Ka£T, 58 Naimittikas, 103
Kedara, 83 Nairghfnya, 100
KetakT, 9 Narada, 53. 113, 137
king of Paflcala, 75 Narakas, 53
Klrtiman, 49, 57, 59, 65 narration of (story of Visnu), 69
KIrtimana’s efforts to popularize (even by Nisatyas, 95
compulsion) the Vai£akha Varatas, 52 new-moon day, 124
Kohala, 84,85 Nityas, 103
Kfnu, 110, 111 Nfga, 49
Kfsna, 83
Kfttikas, 40 obeisance offered to Govinda, 60
Kumara, 34 offering of utensils and furniture, 104
Kuruksetra, 60 offering of water pot, 24
Ku*aketu. 44,45, 46,47 offerings of fruits and cooked rice mixed
KusTda, 106 with curds, 24
offerings of incense and light, 24
Lak$ml, 94 opening of the eyes, 102
last three days of Vailakha, 136
life of a householder, 118 Padmabandhu, 128, 130,131
LiAgabhaAga, 102 Pak$a, 100
listening to good holy texts, 9 Paihpi, 81
listening to the story of the Lord, 24, 112 Panaka, 10,11
Paflcila, 75
Mahabharata, 118 Paftcaratra, 93
Mahavi$nu, 46 Paralurima, 83
Mahiratha, 14 Parvatl, 32,37
MalinT, 126 pavilion for rest and recreation, 9
Mamata, 121 penance, 112
Manana, 67 pillow, 7
MSnava Pralaya, 100 planting the seedlings of Alvattha, 9
Manmatha, 33 power of Vi$nu, 93
Menu's Pralaya, 101 Prabhisa, 83
Manidvfdha, 83 Pradyumna, 35
mat, 8 Pralaya, 100
Maya, 102 Pralaya (Annihilation) of three types, 100
354 S kan da P u rdn a

Pramana-granthas, 93 Satyaloka, 101


Prana, 94, 96,97 Satyani$tha, 66,67, 68
Prapa, 4, 5, 9 Satyagila, 126
Prayaga, 83, 134 SauvTra, 128
previous birth of UrvaSI, 131 Sayujya. 102
Pflhu, 63 scriptural texts, 93
Ригалas, 93 self-immolation of the widow, 91
Purandara, 120 semen virile of Sariibhu, 39
Pu$kara, 83 Setu, 83
PuskarinI, 132, 133 Seven GaAgas, 12
Purusottama, 62 sexual intercourse with a Candala woman,
Puruyalas, 70 60
Pusan, 30 sharbat, 24
shelter, 6, 8
Quarters, 95,96 shelter to wayfarers, 24
Sibi, 131
Rajasa and Taraasa types (of people), 48 $ikhini, 70
Rati, 34 six faces, a single body with, 40
record of Karmas, 59 sleeping during day-time, 11
redemption of Rocana, 106 sleeping on a cot, 11
region of Visnu, 53 Smara, 32, 33
release of Chinnakama from the form of smearing the body with oil, 11
Pi£aca, 69 Smrtis, 93
remembering Visnu at the time of death, 60 son, 9
rice, 10 Sraddha, 119
Rocana, 106 Sraddha ntes, 115
Roga, 54 Sravana, 67
Rtu, 100 $rutadeva, 20, 26, 136
Rudra, 30,31,39,96 Srutaklrti, 19
Staiiiba, 89
Sage Matahga, 84 stories of Visnu, 66, 69, 117, 118
Sahya, a hunter on, 72 story of a bitch, 126
3akala, 89 story of burning of Kama, 32 17
£akra, 124 story of Dantila and Kohala, 8 1
Saligrama stone, 118 story of Indra’s rape and subsequent
Salokya, 102 hiding, 121
£aihbhu, 28, 34 subtle body, 97
SamTpya, 102 $udras, 114
sandal paste, 8 &ijdra women, 114
sandals. 5 sugarcane, 24
Sandhya, 103 sugarcane stump, 10, 104
SaAkarsana, 102 Sun. 96
Sartkha, 81,83, 85, 88, 97, 108, 109 Sun-god, 95
Santana, 9 Sunanda, 64
Santi, 102 superiority of Prana, 94
Sarasvatl. 60 supply of cool water, 70
Sarupya, 102 Suryakantalila, 104
Sail, 29, 30, 32, 37 sweet scents, 9, 24
Sattvika Dharma. 103 Syamantaka, 83
Sattvikas, 99
taking bath in the house, 11
Index to Section VII 355

taking food at night, 11 Vasanta, 33


taking food in a bell-metal vessel, 11 Vasistha, 19, 22
taking food on leaves, 24 Vasisfhas, 49
taking food twice a day, 11 Vasudeva, 102
Tamasas, 99 Vatsara, 100
Tariibtila, 10 Vedas, 93
Taponistha, 66, 68,69 Veda£arma, 108
Taraka, 32 Vena, 63, 65
tasty mango fruit, 24 Vidya, 114
teeth of Pusan, 31 Vijaya, 75
ten incarnations of Lord Visnu, 101 VTrabhadra, 31
things to be avoided by a devotee, 105 Visnu, 51, 54, 100
Trita, 45 Visnu-Gayatri, 42
Tftlya, 124 Visnu-sahasra-nama, 133
TulasT, 118, 125 Visvaksena, 46, 47
TulasT leaves, 15 Vratas in Vai£akha, 5 1
TulasT plant, 67 Vyuhas, 102
twelfth day in the auspicious bright half cf
VaiSakha, 124 washing of the feet of Brahmanas, 24, 104
two rich and brilliant Valyas, 73 water, 18
White Yajurvcda, 98
umbrella, 5, 24,46 Wind-god, 56
unguents, 8, 24 Wink of the Lord, 102
Unmesa, 102 wiping off of the records (of Karmas), 59
Upayajaka, 7 1. 74 womanish fickleness, 29
Urvatf, 131 world of Visnu, 58, 59
Utathya, 121, 122 worship of Madhusiidana, 105
worship of A^vattha, 125
Vahm, 96 worship of the Deity, 112
Vaikuntha, 59 worshipping Han by means of sprouts etc.
Vairaja body, 95 pcculair to the season, 24
VaiSakha, 60
Vai&ikha holy rites, 52 Yaja, 71, 74
Vailakha rites, 65, 80 Yajnavalkya, 98
Vai£arhpayana, 98 Yama, 53, 54, 55, 56, 61,62, 64
Vaisamya, 100 Yama consoled, 60
Vailvadeva, 118 Yama’s city becomes vacant, 62
Valmiki, 111 Yama’s lamentation, 57
Varaha, 43 Yama’s share, 64
Vanina, 96 Yoginl, 127
INDEX TO SECTION VIII

abode of Sage Mandavya, 213 Durvasas, 154, 171


Adhislma Кода, 140 Dvaraka, 139, 140
Agastya, 142, 143, 144
Agnihotra, 184 GaAga, 143,218
Amftakurujta, 216 GaAgadvara, 209
annual festival of Lord Candrahari, 160 Gayakupa, 211,212
Arbuda, 140 Gharghara, 179
Amndhatl, 196 Ghosa, 200
Asita, 145 Ghosarka Kunda, 199, 202
Atiratras, 184 glory of Gopratara Tirtha, 180, 187
AvantT, 139,218 Gocara, 192
Ayodhya, 139,141,209,219 Godavari, 140
Gopratara, 145, 179, 180, 183. 187, 189,
Badarika£rama, 140 190
Band!, 204,221 Great Departure (Mahaprasthana), 185
Ba(uka, 221 Guptahari, 174, 178, 180, 188, 190
Bhairava, 214
Bharadvaja, 140 Hanuman, 184
Bharata, 184,207.215 Hanumalkunda, 208
Bharata, 139 Hari, 149
Bharatakunda, 210,215 Harigcandra, 194
Brahma, 149, 186 Harismfti. 174, 176
Brahmakunda, 149, 150,210, 221 hermitage of Sage Cyavana, 214
Bfhaspati, 192 hermitage of Sage Gautama, 214
Bfhaspati Kunda, 192
impoverished person, 200
Cakrahari, 175, 177, 179, 180, 210, 221 impurity of the mind, 220
Cakratlrtha, 149, 221 Indriya-nigraha, 220
Cakravapi, 183
Candrahari, 161 Jaihbu, 140
Candra-sahasra>vrata, 160, 161, 164 Jafakunda, 216
confluence of Sarayu and Jaya, 139
Gharghari, 180, 182, 183 Jhanatlrtha, 220
confluence of TilodakI and Sarayii, 172
Cu<JakI, 205 Kacchapa, 195
Kala, 154.203
Dag^aka, 140 KilinadT, 142
Dalaratha, 191 Kamadhenu, 207
descendant of Kakutstha, 172 КаЛсТ, 139, 140
Dhanayaksa, 193. 195 Kandarpakumpa, 203
Dhanrnt, 164, 165 Kanti, 140
Dharmahari, 164, 166, 167, 210, 221 Кatf, 139, 159
Dharmanidhi, 208 Kaiyapa, 168
Dftadvati, 139 Kaufilya, 140
Dugdheivara, 207, 208 Kautsa, 167, 169, 170, 172
Durbhara, 205, 206 Kharva, 195
Index to Section VIII 357

Kratubhuk, 191 Phala^ruti, 222


Kf$na Dvaipayana, 142,144 Pindaraka, 217
Ksamallrtha, 220 Pi^acamocana, 212
Kslrakunda, 207 place of the birth of Rama, 217
K$Irodaka, 191 Pramanthura, 194
Kubera, 170 Prayaga, 218
Kunda, 195 Prayagaraja, 188
Kuruk?etra, 139,181,209,221 prayer pleasing to Sun, 200
Kusumayudha Kunda, 203 procedure for the pilgrimage from the
beginning to Ayodhya, 219
Laksmana, 153, 154.155, 207, 216, propitiation of Lak$ml, 195
Laumaia, 218 propitiation of Rati and Kama, 203
leper, 200 propitiation of Rukminl and &npati, 193
Lomala, 151, 152 propitiation of the Yoginls, 197
Puranic etymology of Ayodhya, 144
Mahabhara, 205,206
Puri, 139
Mahakala, 183
Purusottama, 218
Mahapadma, 195
Puskara, 209,218,220
Maharatna, 205
Putresti, 191
Mahavidya. 206,210,221
Mahendra mountain, 140
Raghu, 167, 170
Makara, 195
Raibhya, 197, 198
Manasa (Mental) TTrthas, 219
Rama, 154,184,203,207,216
Manikarnika, 183
Rati Kunda, 202,203
Mantrelvara, 203, 204, 221
Ravana, 207
man with festering sores and wounds, 200
Romaharsana, 140
Mathura, 139, 140
Rnamocana, 151, 152
Maya, 139
^namocanaka, 210
Mayapuri, 140
Rukminl, 193
Mental TTrthas, 220, 221
Rukminl Kunda. 192
Mohana, 206
Rukminl TIrtha, 211
Moon-god, 160
Mountains, 185
Sagara Kunda, 197
Mukunda, 195
Sahasra-Candra, 161
NagapaficamI, 153 Sahasradhara, 145, 153, 154, 155.156
Naimisa, 209, 221 Sakela, 139
Naimi$a Forest, 140 Samata, 145
Nandigrama, 215 £ahkha, 195
Navaratris, 217 Santanika, 187
Nidhis, 195 Sarayu. 142. 143, 172, 179, 187, 217,
Nila, 195 218, 221
Narada, 142 Sarayu and Tama&a, 145
NirvSna, 185 Sarva-Bhuta-daya TTrtha, 220
£atrughna, 184, 185
Oriikara, 185 Satyatlrtha, 220
Satyavadita, 220
Padma, 195 Sautramani YajAa, 172,189
Papamocana, 152, 153 S&vitri. 185
Papamocanaka, 210 $e$a, 154, 155
ParSsara, hermitage of, 214 Siddhapl(ha, 206
358 Skan da P u ran a

Siddhasthana, 206 Upavasa, 210


sight of Garuda, 182 Urvafi, 198
STta, 207 Urvalikunda, 197
Sltakunda, 173,174,191,207, 208
$7tala, 204,221 Vajapeyas, 184
Skanda. 142, 143, 180 Vamadeva, 168
smallpox, 204 Varanasi, 140, 159
story of Lord Vi^nuhari, 149 Vasajkara, 185
SudarSana, 145 Vasistha, 168,196,207,211,218
Sugriva, 208, 211 Vasisfha, 218
Sun-god, 201,202 Vasistha Kunda, 196
Suta, 140 Veda, 185
Svarnakhani, 167, 170 Vedha, 192
Svargadvara, 157,158,159,167, 185. Vibhlsana, 184,208,211
186, 187, 190,221 Vibhlsana Saras, 208
SvetadvTpa, 175 VighneSvara, 215,218,221
Vindhya, 140
Tamasa, 214 VIra, 216,221
Tapastlrtha, 220 Visnuhari, 145.148,174,210,221
Taponidhi, 208 VisnuSarma, 145
TilodakT, 172. 173 Vi$vajit, 168
Vtfvamitra, 169, 171,172, 194
Uccatana, 206
worship of Nidhis and LaksmI, 196
Udyapana, 162
UjjayinT, 140 Yogml Kunda, 197
INDEX TO SECTION IX

A.B. Keith. 253 Atri, 287, 312


absence of rainfall for twelve years. 255 Atri in company of Anasuya, 330
Acchoda, 247 attainment of heaven, 227
acts of charity, 234 attainment of Jana (Loka) and other higher
Adharma, 253, 288, 313 worlds, 227
Aditya, 312 Atyantika Pralaya, 316
Adityas, 313 Auduihbara, 307
Adrika, 246 auspicious days, 302
Agamic procedure of Visnu worship, 325 auspicious times, 301
Aharhkara, 310 Ayodhya, 301
Atoms! (non-violence) as the supreme Ayu, 238
Dharma, 242
Airavata, 261, 267 bad people, 296
Aja, 243, 252 Badari, 230
AjnaCakra, 342 Badaryairama, 230
Aksara Purusas, 237 Bahuda, 308
alms from a person who is a forest-hermit, Bala, 329
307 Balarama, 287
Amavasu, 238 Bali, 286
Amrta, 263 beasts, 313
Anasuya, 287 betrothal, 268
AAga-devatas, 333 BhaglrathT, 301
AAgiras, 313 Bhakti, 321
Aiigiras with Sraddha, 330 Bhargava Rama, 286
Anima, 329 Bhautya, 317
animal-slaughter, 241 Bhlsma, 228, 347
Amruddha, 261, 285, 287, 318, 347 Bhlsmaka, 287
AAjana, 267 Bhfgu, 312, 332
Anviksikl, 287 Bhrgu associated with Khyati, 330
Apad-dharma, 254 Bhiirloka. 313
Apad Dharmas, 295 Bhuvarloka, 313
Apsaras, 262 birds, 313
Ardha-narilvara, 325 blessings of widowed women, 301
Aijuna, 288 blue-throated, 260
Ary ama, 347 boar, 286
Asana, 342 Brahma, 255, 269, 311. 312, 315
Asila, 347 Brahmacarya, 313
association with devotees of the Lord, 300 Brahmacari, 298
association with the good, 296 Brahmana, 313
Astaka, 302 Brahmanas and cows, 297
Astahga, 339 Brahmanas are worthy of receiving
Asura type of prosperity, 296 religious gifts, 302
Asuras, 313 Brahmanas (this-worldly) forms of Visnu,
Agvamedha, 253 297
Atharvan, 313 Brahmancjas, 310
Atharvaveda, 329 Brahma-randhra, 343
360 Skan da Р и г а м

Brahma-Savarni, 317 Dharmadeva, 288


bravery, 295 Dharmaraja, 347
bride, 300 fn. Dharma^astra, 329
Buddha. 286, 288, 327 Dharma to be followed in adversity, 252
Buddhi, 310 Dhyana, 342
Budha, 332 dignity, 295
bulbous roots, 306 Divine Boar, 286
drought, 252
Cakras, 343 drought (a rain-less period) of a hundred
C£ksu$a (Manu), 317 years, 319
Canda, 329 Durvasas, 250,251, 257
Candika, 311 Dussaha, 311
Candrayana, 305 duties of Celibates, 298
Ciranas, 313 duties of Householders, 299
Caturmasya, 308 duties of a king, 295
celibacy, 294 duties of K§atriyas, 295
characteristics of Vairagya, 316 duties of a VaiSya, 295
churning of the ocean, 257 duties of women, 304
clouds, 313 duty of a Sudra, 295
company with evil persons, 296
compassion, 313 earning of wealth in a just way, 232
consumption of liquor, 243 eating of flesh, 243
contact with women, 309 egg-born, 317
contact with a woman, wealth, ornaments, eight-syllabled Narayana Mantra, 333
garment, 308 eight-syllabled Vasudeva Mantra, 334
control of the mind. 341 EkadaH Vrata, 294
corn from tilled soil, 306 Ekanta Dharma, 333
corn prescribed for sages, 306 Ekantabhakta, 248
courage, 295 Ekantika Dharma, 248,293,320,321,
curse of Durvasas, 255 322, 340, 346
Ekantika devotees, 234
Dak$a, 230, 313 emergency, 295, 296
Dak$a-Savami, 317 enmity, 300
Dak$ina, 297 equanimity, 232
Da£arathi Rama, 286 esoteric matter, 231
Datta, 286,287
Dattatreya, 328 faith in Vedas, 295
day of the Creator, 317 fall of Uparicara Vasu, 241
deification of Brahmanas, 297 false (heretic) £asiras, 308
deities, 310 fasting and starvation, 252
DevahutT, 286 feet of Dhanna, 313
DevakI, 287 fue of destruction, 319
Deva type of affluence, 296 Fire-god, 330
Devendra, 254 firmness of devotional service, 234
devotees of the Lord, 302 Fish, 286, 328
devotion to the Lord, 295 fitness to be a refuge, 295
Dhanvantari. 263, 328 five-syllabled Hari Mantra, 334
Dharana, 342 five Tamitras, 310
Dharma, 230, 347 food and (medicinal) herbs, 3 13
Dharma (duty) common to all men, 294 food which is boiled on fire or heated in
Index to Section IX 361
the sun, 306 idolofKfsna, 323
forbearance, 232 idol of LaksmF, 324
forest-hermitship, 313 imperishable fruit, 230
forgiveness, 295 imperishable ones, 237
four primeval sages, 312 incarnations, 286
fourSanas, 312 indifference to worldly objects, 232
fourVarnas. 295 Indra, 238, 250, 258, 266
fniits grown in the forest, 306 Indus, 301
functions of the three Vyuhas, 285 Uita, 329
Itihasa, 313
Gandhamadana, 290
Gandharvas, 313 Jagannatha, 301
Gaftgadvara, 301 Jagannathapuri, 301
garments made of grass or leaves, 306 Japa, 323
Garuda, 245, 246, 258, 328 Jaya, 329
GaudT, 240 Jayanta, 329
Gautama, 251 Jfiana-yajna, 232
Gaya&ras, 301
generosity, 295 Kacchapa, 252
germinating beings, 317 Kala, 316
Godavari, 301 Kalagni, 318
Goddess Wine, 262 Kalakufa, 260
Goloka, 277 Kali, 247
Gomatl, 301 Kalki, 286, 288
Go-medha, 253 Kalkin. 327
GopFcandana, 163 Kalpa, 317, 319
Govardhana, 301 Kama, 313
gratification of deities, 227 Kamavasayila, 329
Guardians of the eight Quarters, 332 Kapila, 286
Guru. 333 Kardama, 286, 313
Karmas under Pravftta category, 232
Halahala, 260 Karmas under Nivftta category, 232
Hamsa, 308, 328 Kaustubha, 262
Нага, 311 Kaveri, 301
Havirdhani, 261 Kavya, 313, 314
Havya, 313, 314 Kharva, 252
Hayagriva, 327 killing a beast contrary to Dharma, 242
hermitage of Kapila, 301 killing animals, 253
hermitage of Pulaha, 301 killing of animals in Yajna, 254
Hirhsa, 241 king of Cedi, 240
Hiranyakagipu, 286 kingdom of Cedi, 239
Hiranyaksa, 286 knowledge of Brahman, 295
Нота, 323 Kolala, 288
honouring guests, 253 Kratu, 313
householdership, 313 Kratu with Kriya, 330
human beings, 313 Kfcchra, 305
human-sacrifice, 253 Kriya-Yoga, 322
husband should always be served as a god, Kf$na. 232, 287
304 Kf$na Dvaipiyana, 286, 288
Kftayajfia, 247
362 Skan da P u ran a

Kfli. 238 Mathura, 287, 301


Ksatriyas, 313 Maya, 310
Ksetra, 315 merciful Siva, 260
Ksetrajna, 315 MerudevT, 287
Kubera, 252, 331 Meru-Savami, 317
Kurfibhaka, 342 Mohinl, 264, 265
Kumuda. 267, 329 Moon, 261
Kumudaksa, 329 moon, 252
Kuruksetra, 229, 301 Moon-god, 332
Kulosthall (Dvaraka), 301 moral law, 314
KufTcaka, 308 mountains, 313
Mount Mandara, 258, 258
Laghima, 329 Mrtyu, 343
Laksmi, 287, 305 Mukunda. 252
liberation, 227 Muladhara Cakra, 342, 343
life-span of Brahma, 319 muttenng a mantra, 232
lightnings, 313
liquor, meat, intoxicants (narcotics), Nabhi, 287
gambling, 301 Naimisaranya, 301
listening to the stones of Visnu, 308 Naimittika (periodic) Dissolution, 3 16 ,3 17
livelihood prescribed for a Brahmana, 295 Nairrta, 331
Lord in the form of a tortoise, 259 Naisthika, 299
Nanda, 252, 312, 329
Madakala, 250 Nara and Narayana, 230, 265
MadhvI, 240 Nara-medha, 253
Mahapadma, 252 Narada, 229, 235, 278, 283, 290, 346, 347
Mahat, 310, 315 Narayana, 232. 235, 261, 288, 293, 311,
Mahayuga, 318 319, 347
Mahendra, 301 Narayana, the son of Dharma, 289
Muhima, 329 natural duties of a Brahmana, 295
Makara, 252 Nectar. 257,313
Malaya, 301 Nectar snatched away by the Daityas, 263
malice against living beings, 301 NTIa, 252
Man-Lion, 286 nine treasures, 252
Manas, 310 nine types of Bhakti, 320
Mandara, 261, 286 Ninti, 313
Mantra of Visnu, 307 Nitya Pralaya, 3 16, 317
Manu, 252 Nivrtta Dharma, 232, 233
Manus, 313, 317 Nivrtti Dharma, 319
Manvantaras, 318 Niyama, 342
Maiici, 312 non-injury, 294
Marici associated with (his wife) Kala, non-taking, 294
330 non-vegetarian diet, 302
marriage between individuals of the same Nrsimha, 328
caste, 253
marriage-ceremony of Laksmi and observance of the birthday of Han, 294
Narayana. 266 Ocean-god, 268
marrying a woman, 232 offensive behaviour towards the good, 257
Mars, 332
Maruts, 313 Padma, 252
Index to Section IX 363

painting of a woman, 308 Pulaha in association with Gati, 330


Pai$p, 240 Pulastya, 312
Pancagni-Sadhana, 306 Pulastya with Havirbhu, 330
Paficajana, 262 Pundarika, 267
Pancajanya, 262 Piiraka, 342
Pancaratra, 330 Puranas, 313
Para, 319 purification, 294
paraka, 307 purificatory acts. 323
Paramahamsa, 308 purity, 295, 313
Paramahariisya, 287 Purusas, 310
Parardha, 319 Puskara, 301
Paraiara, 247, 288 Puspabhadra, 250
Paragurama, 327 Puspadanta, 267, 329
Parijala, 261
path of Nivftti, 318 quiescence. 295
penance, 232, 294,295,313
performance of duties pertaining to gods Radha, 287
and ancestors, 232 Radhika, 324
performance of one’s respective Dharrnas, Radhakrsna, 334
229 Rahu, 265, 332
performance of penance, 235 Rahu’s head, 265
performance of sacrifices, 235, 295 Raivata, 301,317
period of menstruation, 305 Rajas, 310
perverse interpretation of the Vedas, 252 Raksasas, 313
Phenapa, 307 Rama, 287
piece of cloth for straining water, 307 Raucya, 160
Pitrs, 313, 347 Ravana, 287
Prabala, 329 Recaka, 342
Prabhasa, 301 recitation of the Vedas, 232
Pracanda, 329 religious gifts, 301
practice of Yoga, 235 religious observance, 301
Pradhanas, 310 religious restraints to be observed by
Pradyumna, 261, 285, 287, 347 forest-hermits, 306
Pruhlada, 287 renuciation of wife, 232
Prajapatis, 312 residence with the teacher, 298
Prakamya, 329 Rgvcda 329
Prakrta Pralaya, 319 rivers, 313
Prakrtika Pralaya, 316 Romaharsana, 225
Pralaya, Naimittika, 317, 319 Rsiloka, 318
Pralaya, Atyantika, 320 Rudra, 313, 318
Pralayas, 316 Rudra in his half-man-half-woman form,
Prapti, 329 331
Pratyahara, 343 Rudra-Savarni, 160
Pravrtta Dharma, 232, 233 RukminT, 287
Prayaga, 301
propitiation of Brahma, 227 sacred lands, 301
propitiation of God, 227 sacred places, 297
protection of cows, Brahmanas and saints, sacrifices, 232, 313
295 sacrifices involving Himsd. 249, 254
Pulaha, 312 Sadhyas, 313
364 Skan da P u ran a

sages, 313 species of beings, 317


Sahasraijuna, 287 Speech, 313
saintly persons, 296 Sraddha, 304
£aktis, 314 £raddhadeva, 317
Salagrama, 324 Sri, 133, 265, 157
Samadhi, 342 Sndama. 283
Samavartana, 299 £rikr$na, 229
Sarhnyasa, 307 ^riranga, 301
Saihvartaka, 319 Srutadeva, 329
Sarhvartaka clouds, 318 staff, 307
Saihvartaka Sun 318 stay in a forest, 232
Samyaprasa, 346 Sthapana Mudra, 336
Sanatkumara, 328 storage of wealth, 308
Sandhya, 323 stones and exploits of the incarnations of
Sandhya prayer, 298 Hari, 301
Sandlpani, 262 strength, 295
ЗаАкага, 255, 347 study or recitation of the Vedas, 235
Sartkarsana, 258,260, 285,287,319,347 Sudha, 263
SaAkha, 252 Sudra. 296, 313
SaAkhya, 286, 330 Sumali, 250
Sannyasa, 313 Sun, 332
£antanu, 347 Sunanda, 329
Sarasvatl, 301 Supratlka, 267
Sarayu, 301 Sura, three kinds of, 240
SarAga, 262 Svadharma, 293, 294
Sarvabhauma, 267 Svarloka, 313
Satlva, 310 Svastika, 342
Sattvata, 329 Svayambhuva, 313,317
Saturn, 332 £vetadv?pa, 237, 248, 290
Saunaka, 225 $veta-Mukta, 285, 290
Sauti, 225 sweat-bom, 317
Savarni, 225,226, 228,317
Savitri, 311 taking food once, 307
seas, 313 Tamas, 310
self-control, 232,295 Tamasa, 317
serpents, 313 Tarksya, 312
seven Kulaparvatas, 301 tasteless meal, 308
sexual intercourse of animals, 299 ten organs (of sense and action), 310
sexual union of animals, 305 three Gunas, 310
showing the mirror, 338 three kinds of Sura, 240
Siddhapada, 301 three types of Ahamkara, 320
Siddhas, 313 Time, 310
Siddhi^deities, 329 Tortoise, 286,328
sight of a woman’s form, 308 trees, 313
STta, 287 Truth, 294, 313
Siva. 313 TulasT, 323
six defects, 309 Tulaslleaf, 338
six-syllabled KeSava Mantra, 334 Tva$}§, 266
six-syllabled Vi$nu Mantra, 333 twelfth son of Aditi, 286
Skanda, 226 Twelve-syllabled Mantra, 333
Index to Section IX 365

Uddhava, 288 violence (Himsa) prescribed by the Vedas


Ugragravas, 225 not a fault. 252
undivided devotion, 235, 293 Vipracitti, 264
undivided propitiation, 237 Viraf, 311
untrue speech, 245 Viraja, 278
Uparicara, 244 Vi^ala Badari, 289. 290
Uparicara Vasu, 238 ViSvedcvas, 313
Uuama, 317 Vivasvan, 293
uttering the mantras, 323 viviparous, 317
Vrihi, 242
VaijayantT, 239 Vrndavana, 277, 301
Vaikhanasa, 307 Vrsabha, 286
Vaikun(ha, 311 Vrsabhanu, 287
Vairaja Purusa, 315 vulgar speech, 308
Vaisnava type of initiation, 163 Vyuhas, 347
Vaigvadeva, 339 Vyasa, 328
Vai$ya, 296
Vailyas, 313 waterpot of gourd, 307
Vaivasvata, 317 Whitehorse, 261
Valakhilya, 307 White Island (Sveta-DvTpa), 235
Valakhilyas, 347 widow, 300, 304
Valmlki, 287 wild com, 306
Vamana, 267, 286, 327 Wind, 330
Varanasi, 301 Wind-god, 331
Varalia, 327 wine and meat, 313
Varuna, 254, 331 wines of eleven kinds, 240
Varum, 262 works of personal piety, 232
Vasisfha, 313 works of public utility, 232
Vasisfha in company of Arundhatl, 330 worldly knowledge, 295
Vagita, 329 worthy recipients, 301
Vasu, 245
Vasu an EkSntin devotee of Vasudeva, 239 YajAa involving violence not proper, 243
Vasudeva, 287 Yajiia which does not involve any
Vasudeva. 230.232.237.239,310, violence, 242
312, 314,315, 319, 347 Yajurveda, 313, 329
Vasuki. 257, 258, 261 Yak?*, 313
Vasus, 313 Yama, 330, 342
Vijaya, 329 Yamuna, 301
Visnu, 232,255,258,262, 268,311.315 year of God Brahma, 319
Visnu Gayatri, 333 Yoga, 330
VisnU'Sahasranama, 337 Yoga-yajfla, 232
Vi$vaksena, 328 Yudhisthira, 228

You might also like